Skip to main content

Full text of "A portraiture of Quakerism : taken from a view of the education and discipline, social manners, civil and political economy, religious principles and character, of the Society of Friends"

See other formats


■/3- 


3 


Q^{)6^t6a^> 


X.  I B  R  A^  R  Y 

OP  THE 

Theological   Seminary, 

PRINCETON,    N.J. 
Case, ^^^^  ---  C«^ 

i-va. 


r 


/ 


if^U^^   <^  (y^/t.^'t-j'u  I 


A 

PORTRAITURE  of  QUAKERISM. 

TAKEN  FROM  A  VIEW 

OF    THE 

EDUCATIOX  AND  DISCIPLINE, 

SOCIAL  MANNERS, 

CIVIL  AND  POLITICAL  ECONOMY, 

RELIGIOUS  PRINCIPLES, 

AND 

CHARACTER, 

OF    THE 

%mtt^  (If  jTrienD^t 

BY  THOMAS  CLARKSO^\  M.  A. 

AUTHOR    OF    SEVERAL    ESSAYS    ON    THE    SLAVE    TRADE. 

VOL.  II. 


PUBLISHED    BY    SAMUEL    STANSBURY,   NO.    Ill,   WATER-STREET. 

1806. 
HOPKINS  AND  SEYMOUR,  PRINTERS. 


Digitized  by  tine  Internet  Archive 

in  2011  witii  funding. from 

Princeton  Tineological  Seminary  Library 


Iittp://www.arcliive.org/details/portraiturequa02clar 


CONTENTS 


SECOND  VOLUME. 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Sect.  i. — Marriage — /Regulations  and  example  of  George  Fox, 
relative  to  Marriage — Present  regidati07is^  aiul  manner  of 
the  celebration  of  it  among  the  i^iakers^  p.     ,     .     .  1 

Sect,  h Those  who  marry  out  of  the  societi/^  are  disowned 

— Various  reasons  for  such  a  measure — Objection  to  it — 
Rcply>  P 8 

Sect.  hi. — But  the  disowned  may  be  restored  to  member- 
ship— Terms  of  their  restoration— -these  terms  censured — 
Reply,  p 15 

Sect.  iv. — More  xvomen  disowned  on  this  account  than  men 
— Probable  causes  of  this  difference  of  number,  p.     .     19 

CHAPTER  II. 

Sect.  i. — Funerals — Extravagance  and  pageantry  of  ancient 

and  modern  funerals — These  discarded  by  the  l^iakers 

Plain  manner  in  -which  they  inter  their  dead,  p.  .     .       22 

Sect.  ii. — ^mkers  use  no  tomb-stones,  nor  monumental  in- 
scriptions— Various  reasons  of  their  disuse  of  these,  p.      27 

Sect.  hi. — Neither  do  they  use  mourning  garments — ReasoJis 
why  they  thus  differ  from  the  world — These  reasons  farther 
elucidated  by  considerations  on  Court-mourning,  p.    .       SZ 

CHAPTER  III. 

Occupations — Agriculture  declining  among  the  fakers-— 
Causes  and  disadvantages  of  this  decline,  p.     .     ,     ,       39 


iv  ^         CONTENTS. 

'■  ■>*' 

CHAPTER  IV. 

Sect.  i. — Trade — !^iaka-s  vinv  trade  as  a  moral  question — 
Prohibit  a  varitty  of  trades  and  dealings  on  this  account — 
various  other  xvholesome  regulatioJis  concerning  it^  p.       46 

Sect.  ii. — But  though  the  ^takers  thus  prohibit  many  trades^ 
they  are  found  in  some  xvhich  are  considered-objectionable  by 
theivorld — These  specified  and  examined^  p.     ...     55 

CHAPTER  V. 

Settlement  of  differences — Abstain  from  duels — and  also  from 
law— ^ Have  recourse  to  arbitration — Their  rules  concenwig 
arbitration — An  account  of  an  Arbitration  Society  at  Nexv- 
castle  upon  Tyne^  on  §>uaker-principles^    p.     .     ..     .       67 

CHAPTER  VI. 

Sect.  i. — Poor — No  beggars  among  the  ^takers — 3Ianner 
of  relieving  and  providing  for  the  poor^  p.     ...        78 

Sect.  ii. — Education  of  the  children  of  the  poor  provided  for 
— Observations  on  the  number  of  the  "^laker-poor — and  on 
their  character,    p 83 


RELIGION. 
INTRODUCTION. 

■Invitation  to  a  perusal  of  this  part  of  the  work — The  necessity 
of  humility  and  charity  i7i  religion  on  account  oj  the  limited 
powers  of  the  human  understanding — Object  of  this  invita- 
tion, p 91 

CHAPTER  I. 

Cod  has  given  to  all,  besides  an  intellectual,  a  spiritual  under- 
sta.:di,:g — Some  have  had  a  greater  portio7i  of  this  spirit 
than  others,  such  as  dbraham,  and  Mj^^es,  and  the  prophets, 
and  Apostles — Jesus  Christ  had  it  zoithcut  limit  or  mea- 
iure,  p 98 


C0NTENTf5. 


CHAPTER  II. 


£xcept  a  ?jian  has  abortion  of  the  mtne  spirit^  wJi'ich  Jcsu.s^ 
and  the  Prophets^  and  the  Apoatlcs  had^  he  cannot  hioxv  npi- 
ritual  things — This  doctrine  confirmed  by  St.  P^id — And 
ehicidated  bif  a  comparison  bctivcen  the  faculties  of  men  ami 
of  brutes^  p lOt 

CHAPTER  III. 

Neither  except  he  has  a  portion  of  the  same  spirit^  can  he  hioxv 
the  scriptures  to  be  of  divine  origin^  nor  can  he  spiritually 
understand  them — Objection  to  this  doctrine — Reply  ^  p.  113 

CHAPTER  IV. 

This  spirit^  xvhich  has  been  thus  given  to  men  iti  different  de- 
grees^ has  been  given  them  as  a  teacher  or  guide  in  their  spi- 
ritual co7icerns — IFay  in  xvhich  it  teaches^  p.     .     .       123 

CHAPTER  V. 

This  spirit  77Uiy  be  considered  as  the  primary  and  infallible 
guide — and  the  scriptures  but  a  secondary  means  of  instruc- 
tion— but  the  ^lakers  do  not  undervalue  the  latter  on  this 
account — Their  opinion  concerning  the7n,  p.    .     .     .     130 

CHAPTER   VI. 

This  spirit^  as  a  primary  and  infallible  guide,  has  been  give)!  to 
men  ziniversally — Fro)n  the  creation  to  Moses — 'From  Moses 
to  Christ — From  Christ  to  the  present  day,  p.     .     .       137 

CHAPTER  VII. 

Sect.  i. — And  as  it  has  been  given  universally  to  men,  so  it  has 
been  given  them  sufficiently — Tiiose  who  resist  it,  quench  it 
— Those  who  attend  to  it,  are  in  the  xvay  of  redemption,  p.  1 53 

Sect.  ir. — This  spirit  then  besides  its  office  of  a  spiritual 
guide,  performs  that  of  a  Redeemer  to  men — Redemption  out- 
ward and  inward — Inward  effected  by  this  spirit,  p.      158 

Sect.  hi. — Inxcard  redemption  produces  a  nerv  birth — and 
leads  to  perfection — 77//s  inxvard  redemption  possible  to 
ail,  p , 164 

Sect.  iv. — Nezu  birth  and  perfection  more  particularly  ex- 


VI  CONTENTS. 

plained — Neiv  h'lrth  as  real  from  "  the  sp'iritual  seed  of  the 
kingdom^''  as  that  of  plants  arid  vegetables  Jrom  their  seeds  In 
the  natural  world — and  goes  on  in  the  same  manlier  pro- 
gressively to  maturity^  p 175 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

Sect.  i. — Possibility  of  redemption  to  all  denied  by  the  fa- 
vourers of  "  Election  and  Reprobation  " — leaker-refutation 
of  the  latter  doctrine^  p 185 

Sect.  ii. — ^akcr  refutation  continued^    p.       .     .     ,     192 

CHAPTER  IX. 

Recapitulation  of  all  the  doctrines  advanced — Objection  that  the 
fakers  make  every  thing  of  the  Spirit  and  but  little  of  fe- 
sus  Christ — Attempt  to  shozv  that  Christians  often  differ 
xuithout  a  just  ccfuse — Or  that  there  is  7io  material  differ- 
ence between  the  creeds  of  the  §>uakers  and  that  of  the  ob- 
jectors on  this  subject^  p •     .     .     .     206 

CHAPTER  X. 

Sect.  i. — Ministers  of  the  Gospel — 'fakers  conceive  that  the 
spirit  of  God  alone  can  qualify  for  the  ministry — Women 
equally  qualified  with  men — Way  in  xvhich  ministers  are  cal- 
led and  acknowledged  among  tJie  ^lakers^    p.     .     .     216 

Sect.  ii. — ^aker-miiiisters^  xvhcn  acknowledged.,  engage  In 
family  visits — Nature  of  these — and  sometimes  i7i  missions 
through  England — and  sometimes  in  foreign  parts.,  p,     231 

CHAPTER  XI. 

Elders — Their  origin  and  their  office — These  are  not  to  meddle 
with  the  discipline,  of  the  church.,  p 23S 

CHAPTER  XII. 

Sect  i. — Worship — is  usually  raade  to  consist  of  prayer  and 
preaching — But  iieithcr  of  these  are  considered  by  the  ^w 
kers  to  be  effectual  xvithout  the  aid  of  the  spirit — Hence  no 
liturgy  or  studied  for  m^  of  words  among  the  ^lakcrs — Re- 
puted ma/iner  and  character  of  ^akcr-preaching — Observa- 
tioJis  upon  these,  p 243 

Srx.T.  \U'-— Silent  worship — Manner  ofk — Worship  notneces- 


CONTENTS.  Vli 

sarihf  coniiected  ivit/i  words — Advantages  of  this  mode  of 

xvorship^  j) 257 

Sect.  hi. — :^iakers  discard  every  thing  formal  and  .super- 
stitious from  their  xvorship — No  consecrated  ground — No 
priest's  garments — No  psalmody — No  one  day  esteemed  by 
them  holier  than  another — Reasons  for  these  singulari- 
ties, p 266 

CHAPTER  XIII. 

Miscellaneous  particularities — ^takers  seldom  use  the  -words 
"•  original  sin^"*  or  '*  Trinitij^''  and  never  "  the  word  of 
God^"*  for  the  Scriptures — Believe  in  the  manhood  and  divin- 
ity of  Christ — In  the  resurrection — Their  ideas  on  sanctifi- 
cation  and  Justif  cation.,    p 275 

CHAPTER  XIV. 

Quakers  reject  baptism  and  tJie  Lord''s  supper — Indulgence  sO' 
licited  for  them  on  account  of  the  dijf'culties  connected  with 
these  subjects — These  diffculties  explained,    p.     .     .     283 

CHAPTER  XV. 

Skct.  I. — Txvo  baptisms^  that  of  John  and  of  Christ — That 
of  John  was  by  xuater — and  a  Jewish  ordinance — fohn  the 
prophet  left  under  the  law,    p 301 

Sect.  ii. — Baptism  of  Christ  was  by  the  Spirit — This  the 
baptism  of  the  Gospel — Authorities  on  xuhich  this  distinction 
between  the  txvo  is  founded,  p 305 

Sect,  lu.—^iakers  conceive  it  was  not  the  baptism  of  John 
■which  Jesus  included  in  the  Great  Commission,  when  he  or- 
dered his  disciples  to  go  into  all  nations,  and  to  teach  them, 
baptizing  in  the  name  of  the  Father^  and  of  the  Son,  and  of 
the  Holy  Ghost — This  shoxvn  from  expressions  taken  from 
St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul — and  from  the  object  and  nature  of 
this  baptism,  p.  ............     210 

Sect.  iv. — But  that  itrvas  the  baptism  of  Christ — This  shown 
from  a  critical  examination  of  the  words  in  the  commission 
itself— And  from  the  commission,  as  explained  by  St.  Mark, 
St.  Luke,  and  St.  Paul,    p 317 

Sect.  v. — Practice  of  Jesus  and  the  Apostles  a  confirmation 
of  this  opinion,  p 326 


Viil  CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  XVI. 


Sect.  i. — Two  suppers^  the  07ie  histituted  by  Moses^  the  other 
hj  Jesus  Christ — The  first  called  the  passover — Ancient  and 
modern  manner  of  its  celebration^    p 338 

Sect.  ii. — Second,  enjoined  by  Jesus  at  Capernaum — This 
zvholly  of  a  spiritual  nature — Way  in  xvhich  this  may  be 
enjoyed,  p.     ,     , 348 

Sect.  hi. — S^nakers  say  that  Jesus  instituted  no  new  supper 
distinct  from  that  of  the  passover,  and  zvhich  was  to  render 
null  and  void  that  enjoined  at  Capernaum,  as  a  rite  of  the 
Christian  church — No  such  institution  to  be  collected  from  St. 
Matthew,  St.  Mark,  or  St.  John,  p 356 

Sect.  iv. — Nor  from  St.  Luke — St.  Luke  onhj  says,  that  all 
future  pass-overs  of  the  Disciples  with  Christ  were  to  be  spi- 
ritual— but  if,  as  Jews,  they  coxdd  not  all  at  once  abdicate 
the  passover  to  which  they  had  been  educated,  they  were  to 
celebrate  it  xvith  a  new  meaning — But  no  acknoxvledged per^ 
mission  of  it  to  others,  p 360 

Sect.  v. — Nor  from  St.  Paul — St.  Paul  only  says  that  tlie 
passover,  as  spiritualized  by  Jesus,  was  alloxveJd  to  his  dis- 
ciples, or  to  the  Jewish  converts,  who  coidd  not  alt  at  once 
lay  ande  their  prejjidices  concerning  it,  but  that  it  was  to 
last  only  for  a  time — Diff'erent  opinions  about  this  time — 
That  of  the  ^takers  concerning  it,  p 368 

Sect.  vi. — Had  a  new  supper,  distinct  fro)n  that  of  the  pass- 
over,  been  intended  as  a  ceremonial  of  the  Christian  church, 
it  would  have  been  commanded  to  others  besides  the  disciples, 
and  its  duration  would  not  have  been  limited — Reasons  from 
St.  Paul,  to  shoxv  that  he  himself  did  not  probably  consider  It 
as  a  Christian  ordinance — Whereas  the  supper  enjoined  at  Ca- 
I  pernautn,  7 vat  to  be  eternal — and  universal — and  an  essejitial 
'   xvith  all  Christians,  p 376 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS 


OF  THE 


QUAKERS. 


(COJVTIJ\rUEI).) 


VOL.   II.  B 


PiillTDJSTUH 


QGTC 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS 


Q  UA  K  ERS. 

— — »^» 

CHAP.  I. 

SECTION   I. 

Marriage — Quakers  differ  in  many  respects  from 
otherS)  on  the  subject  of  Marriage — George  Fox 
introduced  Regulations  concerning  it — Protested 
against  the  usual  manner  of  the  celebration  of  it — 
— Gave  an  example  of  what  he  recommended — 
Present  regulations  of  the  Quakers  on  this  subject. 

In  the  continuation  of  the  Customs  of  the  Qua- 
kers, a  subject  which  I  purpose  to  resume  in  the 
present  volume,  I  shall  begin  with  that  of  Mar- 
riage. 

The  Quakers  differ  from  others  in  many  of  their 
regulations  concerning  this  custom.  They  differ 
also  in  the  manner  of  the  celebration  of  it.  And, 
as  they  differ  in  these  respects,  so  they  experience 
generally  a  different  result.     The  Quakers,  as  a 

VOL.   II.  B 


2  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

married,  may  be  said  to  be  a  happy,  people. 
Hence  the  detailers  of  scandal,  have  rarely  had  it 
in  their  power  to  promulgate  a  Quaker  adulter}^ 
Nor  have  the  lawyers  had  an  opportunity  in  our 
public  courts  of  proclaiming  a  Quaker  divorce. 

George  Fox  suggested  many  regulations  on  this 
subject.  He  advised,  among  other  things,  when 
persons  had  it  in  contemplation  to  marry,  that  they 
should  lay  their  intention  before  the  monthly 
meetings,  both  of  the  men  and  women.  He  ad- 
\  ised  also,  that  the  consent  of  their  parents  should 
be  previously  obtained,  and  certified  to  these. 
Thus  he  laid  the  foundation  for  greater  harmony 
in  the  approaching  union.  He  advised  again, 
that  an  inquiry  should  be  made,  if  the  parties  were 
clear  of  engagements  or  promises  of  marriage  to 
others,  and,  if  they  were  not,  that  they  should  be 
hindered  from  proceeding.  Thus,  he  cut  off  some 
of  the  causes  of  the  interruption  of  connubial  hap- 
piness, by  preventing  uneasy  reflections,  or  suits 
at  law,  after  the  union  had  taken  place.  He  ad- 
vised also,  in  the  case  of  second  marriages,  that 
any  offspring  resulting  from  the  former,  should 
have  their  due  rights  and  a  proper  provision  se- 
cured to  them,  before  they  were  allowed  to  be  so- 
lemnized. Thus  he  gave  a  greater  chance  for 
happiness,  by  preventing  mercenary  motives  from 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS,  3 

becoming  the  causes  of  the  union  ol"  husbands 
and  wives. 

But  George  Fox,  as  he  introduced  these  and 
other  salutary  regulations  on  the  subject  of  Mar- 
riage, so  he  introduced  a  new  numncr  of  the  cele- 
bration of  it.  I  le  protested  against  the  manner 
of  the  world,  that  is,  against  the  formal  prayers 
and  exhortations  as  they  were  repeated,  and 
against  the  formal  ceremonies,  as  they  were  prac- 
tised by  the  Parish  Priest.  He  considered  that  it 
was  God,  who  joined  man  and  woman  before  the 
fall ;  and  that  in  Christian  times,  or  where  the 
man  was  truly  renovated  in  heart,  there  could  be 
no  otlier  right  or  honourable  way  of  union.  Con- 
sistently with  this  view  of  the  subject,  he  observed, 
that  in  the  ancient  scriptural  times,  persons  took 
each  other  in  marriage  in  the  assemblies  of  the 
Elders ;  and  there  was  no  record,  from  the  Book 
of  Genesis  to  that  of  Revelations,  of  any  marriage 
by  a  Priest.  Hence  it  became  his  new  society,  i-:s 
a  religious  or  renovated  people,  to  abandon  apos- 
tate usages,  and  to  adopt  a  manner  that  was  more 
agreeable  to  their  new  state. 

George  Fox  gave  in  his  own  marriage,  an  ex- 
ample of  all  that  he  had  thus  recommended  to  the 
society.  Having  agreed  with  Alargaret  Fell,  the 
widow  of  Judge   Fell,  upon  the  propriety  of  their 


4  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

union  as  husband  and  wife,  he  desired  her  to  send 
for  her  children.  As  soon  as  they  were  come,  he 
asked  them  and  their  respective  husbands,  ^  "  If 
they  had  any  thing  against  it,  or  for  it,  desiring 
them  to  speak?  and  they  all  severally  expressed 
their  satisfaction  therein.  Then  he  asked  Marga- 
ret, if  she  had  fulfdled  and  performed  her  hus- 
band's Will  to  her  children  ?  She  replied,  the  chil- 
dren knuw  that.  Whereupon  he  asked  them,  whe- 
ther, if  their  mother  married,  they  should  not  lose 
by  it  ?  And  he  asked  Margaret,  whether  she  had 
done  any  thing  in  lieu  of  it,  which  might  an- 
swer it  to  the  children  ?  The  children  said,  she 
had  aiisivered  it  to  them,  and  desired  him  to  speak 
no  more  about  that.  He  told  them,  that  he  was 
plain,  and  that  he  would  have  all  things  done 
plainly ;  for  he  sought  not  any  outward  advantage 
to  himself.  So,  after  he  had  acquainted  the  chil- 
dren with  it,  their  intention  of  marriage  was  laid 
before  Friends,  both  privately  and  publicly  ;"  and 
afterwards  a  meeting  being  appointed  for  the  ac- 
complishment of  the  marriage,  in  the  public 
Meeting-house  at  Broad  Mead,  in  Bristol,  they 
took  each  other  in  marriage,  in  the  plain  and  sim- 
ple manner  as  then  practised,  and  which  he  him- 
self had  originally  recommended  to  his  followers. 

a  G.  Fox's  Journal,  Vol.  2.  p.  IS/i. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  5 

The  regulations  concerning  marriage,  and  the 
manner  of  the  celebration  of  it,  Avhich  obtained  in 
the  time  of  George  Fox,  nearly  obtain  among  the 
Quakers  of  the  present  day. 

When  marriage  is  agreed  upon  between  two\ 
persons,  the  man  and  the  woman,  at  one  of  the 
monthly  meetings,  publicly  declare  their  intention, 
and  ask  leave  to  proceed.  At  this  time  their  pa- 
rents, if  living,  must  either  appear,  or  send  certi- 
ficates to  signify  their  consent.  This  being  done, 
two  men  are  appointed  by  the  men's  meeting,  and 
two  women  are  appointed  by  that  of  the  women, 
to  wait  upon  the  man  and  woman  respectively,  and 
to  learn  from  themselves,  as  well  as  by  other  in- 
quiry, if  they  stand  perfectly  clear  from  any  mar- 
riage-promises and  engagements  to  others.  At 
the  next  monthly  meeting  the  deputation  make 
their  report.  If  either  of  the  parties  is  reported 
to  have  given  expectation  of  marriage  to  any  other 
individual,  the  proceedings  are  stopped  till  the 
matter  be  satisfactorily  explained.  But  if  they 
are  both  of  them  reported  to  be  clear  in  this  re- 
spect, they  are  at  liberty  to  proceed,  and  one  or 
more  persons  of  respectability  of  each  sex,  are  de-  , 
puted  to  see  that  the  marriage  be  conducted  in  an  • 
orderly  manner. 

In  the  case  of  second  marriages,  additional  in- 


6  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

structions  are  sometimes  given ;  for  if  any  of  the 
parties  thus  intimating  their  intentions  of  marry- 
ing should  have  children  alive,  the  same  persons, 
who  were  deputed  to  inquire  into  their  clearness 
from  all  other  engagements,  are  to  see  that  the 
rights  of  such  children  be  legally  secured. 

When  the  parties  are  considered  to  be  free,  by 
the  reports  of  the  deputation,  to  proceed  upon 
their  union,  they  appoint  a  suitable  day  for  the 
celebration  of  it,  which  is  generally  one  of  the 
week-day  meetings  for  worship.  On  this  day  they 
repair  to  the  Meeting-house  with  their  friends. 
The  congregation,  when  seated,  sit  in  silence. 
Perhaps  some  minister  is  induced  to  speak.  After 
a  suitable  time  has  elapsed,  the  man  and  the  wo- 
man rise  up  together,  and,  taking  each  other  by 
the  hand,  declare  publicly,  that  they  thus  take 
each  other  as  husband  and  wife.  This  constitutes  . 
their  marriage.  By  way,  however,  of  evidence  of 
their  union,  a  paper  is  signed  by  the  man  and  wo- 
man, in  the  presence  of  three  witnesses,  who  sign 
it  also,  in  which  it  is  stated  that  they  have  so  taken 
each  other  in  marriage.  And,  in  addition  to  this, 
though  it  be  not  a  necessary  practice,  another 
paper  is  generally  produced  and  read,  stating  con- 
cisely the  proceedings  of  the  parties  in  their  re- 
spective Meetings  for  the  purpose  of  their  mar- 


PECULIAR    CUSTOMS.  7 

riage,  and  the  declaration  made  by  them,  as  hav- 
ing taken  each  other  as  man  and  wife.  This  is 
signed  by  the  parties,  their  relations,  and  frequent- 
ly by  many  of  their  friends,  and  others  present. 
All  marriages  of  other  Dissenters  are  celebrated 
in  the  established  churches,  according  to  the  ce- 
remonies of  the  same.  But  the  marriages  of  the 
Quakers  are  valid  by  law  in  their  own  Meeting- 
houses, when  solemnized  in  this  simple  manner. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 


SECT.  II. 


Q^uakers,  marrying  out  of  the  Society,  to  be  disown- 
ed— This  regulation  charged  with  pride  and  cru- 
elty— Reasons  for  this  disownment  are — That 
mixed  Marriages  cannot  be  celebrated  zvithout  a 
violation  of  some  of  the  great  Principles  of  the  So- 
ciety— That  they  are  generally  productive  of  dis- 
putes and  uneasiness  to  those  concerned — and  that 
the  discipline  cannot  be  carried  on  in  such  families . 


x\.MONG  the  regulations  suggested  by  George 
Fox,  and  adopted  by  his  followers,  it  was  deter- 
mined that  persons,  belonging  to  the  society, 
should  not  intermarry  with  those  of  other  religious 
professions.  Such  an  heterogeneous  union  was  de- 
nominated a  mixed  marriage ;  and  persons,  en- 
gaging in  such  mixed  marriages,  were  to  be  dis- 
owned. 

People  of  other  denominations  have  charged  the 
Quakers  with  a  more  than  usually  censurable 
pride,  on  account  of  their  adoption  of  this  law. 
They  consider  them  as  looking  down  upon  the 
rest  of  their  fellow-creatures,  as  so  inferior  or  un- 
holy, as  not  to  deign  or  to  dare  to  mix  in  alliance 


PECULIAR    CUSTOMS.  9 

with  them,  or  as  looking-  upon  them  in  the  same 
light  as  the  Jews  considered  the  Heathen,  or  the 
Greeks  the  Barbarian  world.  And  they  have 
charged  tlieni  also  with  as  nnich  cruelty  as  pride, 
on  the  same  account.  "  A  Quaker,  they  say, 
feels  himself  strongly  attached  to  an  accomplished 
woman  ;  but  she  does  not  belong  to  the  society. 
He  wishes  to  marry,  but  he  cannot  marry  her  on 
account  of  its  laws.  Having  a  respect  for  the  so- 
ciety, he  looks  round  it  again,  but  he  looks  round 
it  in  vain.  He  finds  no  one  equal  to  this  woman  j 
no  one,  whom  he  could  love  so  well.  To  marry 
one  in  the  society,  while  he  loves  another  out  of  it 
better,  would  be  evidently  wrong.  If  he  does  not 
marry  her,  he  makes  the  greatest  of  all  sacrifices,  for 
he  loses  that  which  he  supposes  would  constimte  a 
source  of  enjoyment  to  him  for  the  remainder  of 
his  life.  If  he  marries  her,  he  is  expelled  the  so- 
ciety; and  this,  without  having  been  guilty  of  an 
immoral  offence." 

One  of  the  reasons,  which  the  Quakers  give  for 
the  adoption  of  this  law  of  disownment  in  the  case 
of  mixed  marriages,  is,  that  those  who  engage  in 
them  violate  some  of  the  most  important  principles 
of  the  society,  and  such  indeed  as  are  distinguish- 

o 

ing  characteristics  of  Quakerism  from  the  religion 
'>f  the  world. 

It  is  a  religious  tenet  of  the  Quakers,  as  will  be 

VOL.  II.  C 


10  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

shown  in  its  proper  place,  that  no  appointment 
of  man  can  make  a  minister  of  the  gospel,  and 
that  no  service,  consisting  of  an  artificial  form  of 
/  words,  to  be  pronounced  on  stated  occasions,  can 
/  constitute  a  religious  act;  for  that  the  spirit  of  God 
^is  essentially  necessary  to  create  the  one,  and  to 
produce  the  other.  It  is  also  another  tenet  with 
them,  that  no  minister  of  a  christian  church,  ought 
to  be  paid  for  his  Gospel-labours.  This  latter 
tenet  is  held  so  sacred  by  the  Quakers,  that  it  af- 
lords  one  reason  among  others,  why  they  refuse 
payment  of  tithes,  and  other  demands  of  the 
church,  preferring  to  suffer  loss  by  distraints  for 
them,  than  to  comply  with  them  in  the  usual  man- 
Jier.  Now  these  two  principles  are  essential's  of 
Quakerism.  But  no  person,  who  marries  out  of 
the  society,  can  be  legally  married  without  going 
through  the  forms  of  the  established  church. 
Those  therefore  who  submit  to  this  ceremony,  as 
performed  by  a  priest,  acknow  ledge,  according  to 
the  Quakers,  the  validity  of  an  human  appoint- 
ment of  the  ministry.  They  acknowledge  the  va- 
lidity of  an  artificial  service  in  religion.  They  ac- 
knowledge the  propriety  of  paying  a  Gospel-mi- 
nister for  the  discharge  of  his  office.  The  Quakers, 
therefore,  consider  those  who  marry  out  of  the  soci- 
ety, as  guilty  of  such  a  dereliction  of  Quaker-prin- 
ciples, that  they  can  be  no  longer  considered  as 
sound  or  consistent  members. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS,  i  i 

But  independently  of  the  violation  of  these  prin- 
ciples, which  the  Quakers  take  as  the  strongest 
ground  for  their  conduet  on  such  an  occasion,  tliey 
think  themselves  warranted  in  disowning,  from  a 
contemplation  of  the  consequences,  wliich  iia\e 
been  known  to  result  from  these  marriages. 

In  the  first  place,  disownment  is  held  to  be  ne- 
cessary, because  it  acts  as  a  check  upon  such  mar- 
riages, and  because,  by  acting  as  such  a  check,  it 
prevents  the  family-disputes  and  disagreements 
which  might  otherwise  arise ;  for  such  marriages 
have  been  found  to  be  more  productive  of  uneasi- 
ness than  of  enjoyment.  When  two  persons  of 
different  religious  principles,  a  Quaker  for  exam- 
ple, and  a  woman  of  the  church,  join  in  marriage, 
it  is  almost  impossible  that  they  should  not  occa- 
sionally differ.  The  subject  of  religion  arises,  and 
perhaps  some  little  altercation  with  it,  as  the  Sun- 
day comes.  The  one  will  not  go  to  church,  and 
the  other  will  not  go  to  meeting.  These  disputes 
do  not  always  die  with  time.  They  arise,  how- 
ever, more  or  less,  according  to  circumstances.  If 
neither  of  the  parties  set  any  value  upon  their  re- 
ligious opinions,  there  will  be  but  little  occasion 
for  dispute.  If  both  of  them,  on  the  other  hand, 
are  of  a  serious  cast,  much  will  de])end  upon  the 
liberality   of   their    sentiments :    but,    generally 


12  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

speaking,  it  falls  to  the  lot  of  but  few  to  be  free 
from  religious  prejudices.  And  here  it  may  be 
observed,  that  points  in  religion  also  may  occa- 
sionally be  suggested,  which  may  bring  with  them 
the  seeds  of  temporary  uneasiness.'  People  of 
other  religious  denominations  generally  approach 
nearer  to  one  another  in  their  respective  creeds, 
than  the  Quakers  to  either  of  them.  Most  chris- 
tians agree,  for  example,  in  the  use  of  Baptism  in 
some  form  or  other,  and  also  in  the  celebration  of 
the  Lord's  Supper.  But  the  Quakers,  as  will  be 
shown  in  this  volume,  consider  these  ordinances 
in  a  spiritual  light,  admitting  no  ceremonials  in  so 
pure  a  sj^stem  as  that  of  the  Christian  religion. 

But  these  differences,  which  mav  thus  soon  or 
late  take  their  rise  upon  these  or  other  subjects, 
where  the  parties  set  a  value  on  their  respective 
religious  opinions,  cannot  fail  of  being  augmented 
by  new  circumstances  in  time.  The  parties  in 
question  have  children.  The  education  of  these 
is  now  a  subject  of  the  most  important  concern. 
New  disputes  are  engendered  on  this  head,  both 
adhering  to  their  respective  tenets  as  the  best  to  be 
embraced  by  their  rising  offspring.  Unable  at 
length  to  agree  on  this  point,  a  sort  of  compromise 
takes  place.  The  boys  arc  denied,  while  the  girls 
are  permitted,  baptisjn.     The   boys,  again,  are 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  13 

brought  up  to  meeting,  and  the  girls  to  churcli, 
or  they  go  to  church  and  meeting  alternate! \\  In 
the  latter  case,  none  of  the  children  can  have  any 
fixed  principles.  Nor  will  they  be  much  better  oil' 
in  the  former.  There  will  be  frequently  an  oppo- 
sition of  each  other's  religious  opinions,  and  a  con- 
stant hesitation  and  doubt  about  the  consistency 
of  these.  There  are  many  points,  which  tiie  mo- 
thers will  teach  the  daughters  as  right,  or  essential, 
but  which  the  fathers  will  teach  the  sons  as  erro- 
neous or  unimportant.  Thus,  disputes  will  be 
conveyed  to  the  children.  In  their  progress 
through  life  other  circumstances  may  arise,  which 
may  give  birth  to  feelings  of  an  unpleasant  nature. 
The  daughters  will  be  probably  instructed  in  the 
accomplishments  of  the  world.  They  will  be  also 
introduced  to  the  card-room,  and  to  assemblies, 
and  to  the  theatre,  in  their  turn.  The  boys  will 
be  admitted  to  neither.  The  latter  will  of  course 
feel  their  pleasures  abridged,  and  consider  their 
case  as  hard,  and  their  father  as  morose  and  cruel. 
Little  jealousies  may  arise  upon  this  difference  of 
their  treatment,  which  may  be  subversive  of  fdial 
and  fraternal  affection.  Nor  can  religion  be  call- 
ed in  to  correct  them  ;  for  while  the  two  opposite 
examples  of  father  and  mother,  and  of  sisters  and 
brothers,  are  held  out  to  be  right,  there  will  be 


14  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

considerable    doubts    as   to   what    are    religious 
truths. 

The  Quakers  urge  again  in  behalf  of  their  law 
against  mixed  marriages,  that  if  these  were  not 
forbidden,  it  would  be  impossible  to  carry  on  the 
discipline  of  the  society.  The  truth  of  this  may 
be  judged  by  the  preceding  remarks.  For  if  the 
family  were  divided  into  two  parties,  as  has  been 
just  stated,  on  account  of  their  religion,  it  would 
be  but  in  a  kind  of  mongrel-state.  If,  for  instance, 
it  were  thought  right,  that  the  Quaker-part  of  it 
should  preserve  the  simplicity  of  the  Quaker-dress, 
and  the  plainness  of  the  Quaker-language,  how  is 
this  to  be  done,  while  the  other  part  daily  move 
in  the  fashions,  and  are  taught  as  a  right  usage,  to 
persist  in  the  phrases  of  the  world  ?  If,  again,  the 
Quaker-part  of  it  are  to  be  kept  from  the  amuse- 
ments prohibited  by  the  society,  how  is  this  to  be 
effected,  while  the  other  part  of  it  speak  of  them 
from  their  own  experience,  with  rapture  or  de- 
light ?  It  would  be  impossible,  therefore,  in  the 
opinion  of  the  Quakers,  in  so  mixed  a  family,  to 
keep  up  that  discipline,  which  they  consider  as  the 
corner-stone  of  their  constitutional  fabric,  and 
which  may  be  said  to  have  been  an  instrument  in 
obtaining  for  them  the  character  of  a  moral  peo- 
ple. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  l.j 


SECT.  III. 


But  though  person!;  are  thus  disowned,  they  may  be 
restored  to  membej^ship — Generally  understood, 
hozcever,  that  they  must  previously  express  their  re- 
pentance for  their  marriages — This  confession  of 
repentance  censured  by  the  world — But  is  admissi- 
ble zoithout  the  cinminality  supposed— The  word 
repentance  misunderstood  by  the  zvorld. 


ijUT  though  the  Quakers  may  disown  such  as 
many  out  of  their  society,  it  does  not  follow  that 
these  may  not  be  reinstated  as  members.  If  these 
should  conduct  themselves  after  their  disownment 
in  an  orderly  manner,  and,  still  retaining  their  at- 
tachment to  the  society,  should  bring  up  their 
children  in  the  principles  and  customs  of  it,  they 
may,  if  they  apply  for  restoration,  obtain  it,  with 
all  their  former  privileges  and  rights. 

The  children  also  of  such  as  marry  out  of  the 
society,  though  they  are  never  considered  to  be 
members  of  it,  may  yet  become  so  in  particular 
cases.  The  society  advises  that  the  monthly  meet- 
hi£rs  should  exteod  a  tender  care  towards  such 


16  i'ECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

children,  and  that  they  should  be  admitted  into 
membership  at  the  discretion  of  the  said  meetings, 
either  in  infancy  or  in  maturer  age. 

But  here  I  must  stop  to  make  a  few  observations, 
on  an  opinion  which  prevails  upon  this  subject.  It 
is  generally  understood  that  the  Quakers,  in  their 
restoration  of  dispwned  persons  to  membership, 
require  them  previously  and  publicly  to  acknow- 
ledge, that  they  have  repented  of  their  marriages. 
This  obligation  to  make  this  public  confession  of 
repentance,  has  given  to  many  a  handle  for  heavy 
charges  against  them.  Indeed  I  scarcely  know,  in 
any  part  of  the  Quaker-system,  where  people  are 
louder  in  their  censures,  than  upon  this  point.  "  A 
man,  they  say,  cannot  express  his  penitence  for  his 
marriage  without  throwing  a  stigma  upon  his  wife. 
To  do  this  is  morally  wrong,  if  he  has  no  fault  to 
fmd  with  her.  To  do  it,  even  if  she  has  been  in 
fault,  is  indelicate.  And  not  to  do  it,  is  to  forego 
his  restoration  to  membership.  This  law  therefore 
of  the  Quakers  is  considered  to  be  immoral,  be- 
cause it  may  lead  both  to  hypocrisy  and  false- 
hood." 

I  shall  not  take  up  much  time  in  correcting  the 
notions  that  have  gone  abroad  on  this  subject. 

Of  those  who  marry  out  of  the  society,  it  may 
be  presumed  that  there  are  some,  who  were  never 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  1? 

considered  to  be  sound  in  the  Quaker-principles, 
and  these  are  generally  they  who  intermarry  with 
the  world.  Now  they,  who  compose  tliis  class, 
generally  live  after  their  marriages,  as  happily 
out  of  the  society  as  when  they  wexe  m  it.  Of 
course,  these  do  not  repent  of  the  change.  And 
if  they  do  not  repent,  they  never  sue  for  restoration 
to  membership.  They  cannot,  therefore,  incur 
any  of  the  charges  in  question.  Nor  can  the  so- 
ciety be  blamed  in  this  case,  who,  by  never  asking 
them  to  become  members,  never  entice  them  to 
any  objectionable  repentance. 

Of  those  again,  who  marry  out  of  the  society, 
there  may  be  individuals,  so  attached  to  its  com- 
munion, that  it  was  never  imagined  they  would 
have  acted  in  this  manner.  Now  of  these,  it  may 
in  general  be  said,  that  they  often  bitterly  repent. 
They  find,  soon  or  late,  that  the  opposite  opinions 
and  manners,  to  be  found  in  their  union,  do  not 
liarmonize.  And  here  it  may  be  observed,  that  it 
is  very  possible,  that  such  persons  may  say  they  re- 
pent without  any  crimination  of  their  wives.  A 
man,  for  instance,  may  have  found  in  his  wife  all 
the  agreeableness  of  temper,  all  the  domestic  vir- 
tue and  knowledge,  all  the  liberality  of  religious 
opinion,  which  he  had  anticipated  i  but  in  conse- 
ijuence  of  the  mixed  principles  resulting  from 
VOL.  II.  n 


18  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

mixed  marriages,  or  of  other  unforeseen  causes,  he 
may  be  so  alarmed  about  the  unsteady  disposition 
of  his  children  and  their  future  prospects,  that  the 
pain  which  he  feels  on  these  accounts  may  over- 
balance the  pleasure,  which  he  acknowledges  in 
the  constant  prudence,  goodness,  solicitude,  and 
affection,  of  his  wife.  This  may  be  so  much  the 
case,  that  all  her  consolatory  offices  may  not  be 
able  to  get  the  better  of  his  grief.  A  man,  there- 
fore, in  such  circumstances,  may  truly  repent  of 
his  marriage,  or  that  he  was  ever  the  father  of 
such  children,  though  he  can  never  complain  as 
the  husband  of  such  a  wife. 

The  truth,  however,  is,  that  those  who  make  the 
charge  in  question,  have  entirely  misapplied  the 
meaning  of  the  word  repent.  People  are  not  call- 
ed upon  to  express  their  sorrow,  for  having  mar- 
ried the  objects  of  their  choice^  but  for  having  violat- 
ed those  great  tenets  of  tJie  society,  which  have  been 
already  mentioned,  and  which  form  distinguishing 
characteristics  between  Quakerism  and  the  reli- 
gion of  the  world.  Those,  therefore,  who  say  they 
repent,  say  no  more  than  what  any  other  persons 
might  be  presumed  to  say,  who  had  violated  the  re- 
ligious tenets  of  any  other  society  to  which  they 
might  have  belonged,  or  who  had  flown  in  the  face 
of  what  they  had  imagined  to  be  religious  truths 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  19 


SECT.  IV. 


Of  persons,  disoivnedfor  marriage,  the  greater  pro- 
portion is  said  to  consist  of  zoomen — Causes  assign- 
ed for  this  difference  of  number  in  the  two  sexes. 


It  will  perhaps  appear  a  curious  fact  to  the  world, 
but  I  am  told  it  is  true,  that  the  number  of  the  wo- 
men, disowned  for  marrying  out  of  the  society,  far 
exceeds  the  number  of  the  men,  who  are  disowned 
on  the  same  account. 

It  is  not  difficult,  if  the  fact  be  as  it  is  stated,  to 
assign  a  reason  for  this  difference  of  number  in 
the  two  sexes. 

When  men  wish  to  marry,  they  wish,  at  least  if 
they  are  men  of  sense,  to  find  such  women  as  are 
virtuous ;  to  find  such  as  are  prudent  and  domes- 
tic, and  such  as  have  a  proper  sense  of  the  folly  and 
dissipation  of  the  Fashionable  world ;  such  in 
fact  as  will  make  good  mothers  and  good  wives. 
Now  if  a  Quaker  looks  into  his  own  society,  he 
will  generally  find  the  female  part  of  it  of  this  de- 
scription. Female  Quakers  excel  in  these  points. 
But  if  he  looks  into  the  world  at  large,  he  will  in 


20  PECULrAR  CUSTOMS . 

general  find  a  contrast  in  the  females  there.  These, 
in  general,  are  but  badly  educated.  Theyaretaught 
to  place  a  portion  of  their  happiness  in  finery  and 
show :  utility  is  abandoned  for  fashion :  The  know- 
ledge of  the  etiquette  of  the  drawing-room  usurps 
the  place  of  the  knowledge  of  the  domestic  duties : 
A  kind  of  false  and  dangerous  taste  predominates: 
Scandal  and  the  card-table  are  preferred  to  the 
pleasures  of  a  rural  walk  :  Virtue  and  Modesty 
are  seen  with  only  half  their  energies,  being  over- 
powered by  the  noxiousness  of  hovel-reading  prin- 
ciples, and  by  the  moral  taint  which  infects  those 
who  engage  in  the  varied  rounds  of  a  fashionable 
life.  Hence  a  want  of  knowledge,  a  love  of  trifles, 
and  a  dissipated  turn  of  mind,  generally  charac- 
terize those  who  are  considered  as  having  had  the 
education  of  the  world. 

We  see  therefore  a  good  reason  why  Quaker- 
men  should  confine  themselves  in  their  marriasres 
to  their  own  society.  But  the  same  reason,  which 
thus  operates  with  Quaker-men  in  the  choice  of 
Quaker-women,  operates  with  men  who  are  not 
of  the  society,  in  choosing  them  also  for  their 
v/ivcs.  These  are  often  no  strangers  to  the  good 
education,  and  to  the  high  character,  of  the  Qua- 
ker-females. Fearful  often  of  marrying  among  the 
badly  educated  women  of  their  own  persuasion. 


PKCULTAR   CUSTOMS.  Ql 

thev  frequently  address  themselves  to  this  society, 
and  not  unfrcquently  succeed. 

To  this  it  may  be  added,  that  if  Quaker-men 
were  to  attempt  to  marry  out  of  their  own  socie- 
ty, they  would  not  in  general  be  well  received. 
Their  dress  and  their  manners  are  considered  as 
uncouth  in  the  eyes  of  the  female-world,  and  would 
present  themselves  as  so  many  obstacles  in  the 
way  of  their  success.  The  women  of  this  descrip- 
tion generally  like  a  smart  and  showy  exterior. 
They  admire  heroism  and  spirit.  But  neither 
such  an  exterior,  nor  such  spirit,  are  to  be  seen  in 
the  Q,uaker-men.  The  dress  of  the  Quaker-fe- 
males, on  the  other  hand,  is  considered  as  neat 
and  elegant,  and  their  modesty  and  demeanor  as 
worthy  of  admiration.  From  these  circumstances 
they  captivate.  Hence  the  difference,  both  in  the 
inward  and  outward  person,  between  the  men  and 
the  women  of  this  society,  renders  the  former  not 
so  pleasing,  while  it  renders  the  latter  objects  of 
admiration,  and  even  choice. 


22  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

CHAP.  II. 

SECTION   I. 

Funerals — Most  nations  have  paid  extravagant  at- 
tention to  their  dead — The  moderns  follow  their 
example — This  extravagance,  or  the  pageantry  of 
funerals,  discarded  by  the  Quakers — Their  reasons 
for  it^-Plainness  of  Quaker-funerals. 

If  we  look  into  the  history  of  the  world,  we  shall 
find,  from  whatever  cause  it  has  arisen,  whether 
from  any  thing  connected  with  our  moral  feelings, 
such  as  love,  gratitude,  or  respect,  or  from  vanity, 
or  ostentation,  that  almost  all  nations,  where  in- 
dividuals have  been  able  to  afford  it,  have  incurred 
considerable  expense  in  the  interment  of  their 
dead.  The  Greeks  were  often  very  extravagant 
in  their  funerals.  Many  persons,  ornamented 
with  garlands,  followed  the  corpse,  \^hile  others 
were  employed  in  singing  and  dancing  before  it. 
At  the  funerals  of  the  great,  among  the  Romans, 
couches  were  carried,  containing  the  waxen  or 
other  images  of  the  family  of  the  deceased,  and 
hundreds  joined  in  the  procession.     In  our  owi\ 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  23 

times,  we  find  a  ditTerence  in  the  manner  of  fur- 
nishing or  decorating  funerals,  though  but  little 
in  the  intention  of  making  them  objects  of  out- 
ward show.  A  bearer  of  plumes  precedes  the  plro- 
cession.  The  horses  employed  are  dressed  in 
trappings.  The  hearse  follows  ornamented  with 
plumes  of  feathers,  and  gilded  and  silvered  with 
gaudy  escutcheons,  or  the  armorial  bearings  of  the 
progenitors  of  the  deceased.  A  group  of  hired 
persons  range  themselves  on  each  side  of  the 
hearse  and  attendant  carriages,  while  others  close 
the  procession.  These  again  are  all  of  them  clad 
in  long  cloaks,  or  furnished,  in  regular  order, 
with  scarfs  and  hat-bands.  Now  all  these  out- 
ward appendages,  which  may  be  called  the  page- 
antry of  funerals,  the  Quakers  have  discarded, 
from  the  time  of  their  institution,  in  the  practice 
of  the  burial  of  their  dead. 

The  Quakers  are  of  opinion,  that  funeral  pro- 
cessions should  be  made,  if  any  thing  is  to  be 
made  of  them,  to  excite  serious  reflections,  and  to 
produce  lessons  of  morality  in  those  who  see  them. 
This  they  conceive  to  be  best  done  by  depriving  the 
dead  body  of  all  ornaments  and  outward  honours. 
For,  stripped  in  this  manner,  they  conceive  it  to 
approach  the  nearest  to  its  native  worthlessncss  or 
dust.     Such  funerals,  therefore,  may  excite  in  tlic 


'M  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

spectator  a  deep  sense  of  the  low  and  debased 
condition  of  man.  And  his  feelings  will  be  pure 
on  the  occasion,  because  they  will  be  unmixed 
witl.  the  consideration  of  the  artificial  distinctions 
of  human  life.  The  spectator  too  "will  be  more 
likely,  if  he  sees  all  go  undistinguished  to  the 
grave,  to  deduce  for  himself  the  moral  lesson,  that 
there  is  no  true  elevation  of  one  above  another^, 
only  as  men  follow  the  practical  duties  of  virtue 
and  religion.  But  wliat  serious  reflections,  or 
what  lessons  of  morality,  on  the  other  hand,  do 
tlie  funerals  of  the  world  produce,  if  accompanied 
with  pomp  and  splendour  ?  To  those  who  have 
sober  and  serious  minds,  they  produce  a  kind  of 
pity,  that  is  mingled  with  disgust.  In  those  of  a 
ludicrous  turn,  they  provoke  ludicrous  ideas,  when 
they  see  a  dead  body  attended  with  such  extrava- 
gant parade.  To  the  vulgar  and  the  ignorant  no 
one  useful  lesson  is  given.  Their  senses  are  all  ab- 
sorbed in  the  show;  and  the  thoughts  of  the 
worthlessness  of  man,  as  well  as  of  death  and  the 
grave,  which  ought  naturally  to  suggest  themselves 
on  such  occasions,  are  swallowed  up  -in  the  gran- 
deur and  pageantry  of  the  procession.  Funerals, 
therefore,  of  this  kind,  are  calculated  to  throw 
honour  upon  riches,  abstractedly  of  moral  merit.; 
to  m.ake  the  creature  of  as  much  importance  when 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  tS 

dead  as  when  alive;  to  lessen  the  humility  of  man  j 
and  to  destroy,  of  course,  the  moral  and  religious 
feelings  that  should  arise  upon  such  occasions. 
Add  to  which,  that  such  a  conduct  among  chris- 
tians must  be  peculiarh"-  improper  ;  for  the  chris- 
tian dispensation  teaches  man,  that  he  is  "  to  work 
out  his  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling."  It 
seems  inconsistent,  therefore,  to  accompany  with 
all  the  outward  signs  of  honour  and  greatness  the 
body  of  a  poor  wretch,  who  has  had  this  difficult 
and  aw  ful  task  to  perform,  and  who  is  on  his  last 
earthly  journey,  previously  to  his  appearance  be- 
fore the  tribunal  of  the  Almighty  to  be  judged  for 
the  deeds  which  he  has  committed  in  the  flesh. 

Actuated  by  such  sentiments  as  these,  the  Qua- 
kers have  discarded  all  parade  at  their  funerals. 
When  they  die,  they  are  buried  in  a  manner  sin- 
gularly plain.  The  corpse  is  deposited  in  a  plain 
coffin.  When  carried  to  the  meeting-house  or 
grave-yard,  it  is  attended  b}^  relations  and  friends. 
These  have  nothing  different  at  this  time  in  their 
external  garments  from  their  ordinary  dress.  Nei- 
ther man  nor  horse  is  apparelled  for  the  purpose. 
All  pomp  and  parade,  however  rich  the  deceased 
may  have  been,  are  banished  from  their  funeral 
processions.   The  corpse,  at  length,  arrives  at  the 

VOL.  TI.  E 


^(>  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

meeting-house''.  It  is  suffered  to  remain  therein 
the  sight  of  the  spectators.  The  congregation 
then  sit  in  silence,  as  at  a  meeting  for  worship. 
If  any  one  feels  himself  induced  to  speak,  he  de- 
livers himself  accordingly ;  if  not,  no  other  rite  is 
used  at  this  time.  In  process  of  time  the  coffm  is 
taken  out  of  the  meeting-house,  and  carried  to  the 
grave.  Many  of  the  acquaintance  of  the  deceas- 
ed, both  Quakers  and  others,  follow^  it.  It  is  at 
length  placed  by  the  side  of  the  grave.  A  solemn, 
silent  pause,  immediately  takes  place.  It  is  then 
interred.  Another  shorter  pause  then  generally 
follows.  These  pauses  are  made,  that  the  "  spec- 
tators may  be  more  deeply  touched  with  a  sense  of 
their  approaching  exit,  and  their  future  state."  If 
a  minister  or  other  person,  during  these  pauses, 
have  any  observation  or  exhortation  to  make, 
which  is  frequently  the  case,  he  makes  it.  If  no 
person  should  feel  himself  impressed  to  speak,  the 
assembled  persons  depart.  The  act  of  seeing  the 
body  deposited  in  the  grave,  is  the  last  public  act 
of  respect  which  the  Quakers  show  to  their  de- 
ceased relations.  This  is  the  whole  process  of  a 
Quaker-funeral . 

I»  It  is  sometiuies  buried  without  being  cani<;d  there 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 


SECT.  ir. 


Q.iiakers  use  no  vaults  in  their  hnruing-groiinds — 7?f- 
lations  sometiines  buj'ied  near  each  other,  but  of- 
teiwr  otherxcise — Theji  iisejio  tombstones  or  monu- 
mental  inscriptions — Reasons  for  this  disuse — But 
they  sometimes  record  accounts  of  the  lives ,  deaths^ 
and  dying  sayings,  of  their  Ministers. 


1  HE  Quakers,  in  the  infancy  of  their  institution, 
were  buried  in  their  gardens,  or  orchards,  or  in  the 
fields  and  premises  of  one  another.  They  had  at 
that  time  no  grave-yards  of  their  own ;  and  they 
refused  to  be  buried  in  those  of  the  church,  lest 
they  should  thus  acknowledge  the  validity  of  an 
human  appointment  of  the  priesthood,  the  propri- 
ety of  payment  for  gospel-labour,  and  the  peculiar 
holiness  of  consecrated  ground.  This  refusal  to 
be  buried  within  the  precincts  of  the  church,  was 
considered  as  the  bearing  of  their  testimony  for 
truth.  In  process  of  time  they  raised  their  own 
meeting-houses,  and  had  their  respectiv^e  burying 
places.  But  these  were  not  always  contiguous, 
but  sometimes  at  a  distance  from  one  another. 


^28  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

The  Quakers  have  no  sepulchres  or  arched 
vaults  under  ground  for  the  reception  of  their  dead. 
There  has  been  here  and  there  a  vault,  and  there 
is  here  and  there  a  grave  with  sides  of  brick;  but 
the  coffins,  containing  their  bodies,  are  usually 
committed  to  the  dust. 

I  may  observe  also,  that  the  Quakers  are  some-? 
times  buried  near  their  relations,  but  more  fre- 
quently otherwise.  In  places  where  the  Quaker- 
population  is  thin,  and  the  burial  ground  large, 
a  relation  is  burit^d  next  to  a  relation,  if  it  be  de- 
sired. In  other  places,  however,  the  graves  are 
usually  dug  in  rows,  and  the  bodies  deposited  in 
them,  not  as  their  relations  lie,  but  as  they  hap- 
pen to  be  opened  in  succession  without  any  at- 
tention to  family  connexions.  When  the  first 
grave  in  the  row  is  opened  and  filled,  the  person 
who  dies  next,  is  put  into  that  which  is  next  to  it; 
and  the  person  who  dies  next,  occupies  that  which 
is  next  to  the  second *",  It  is  to  many  an  endearing 
thought,  that  they  shall  lie  after  their  death,  near 
the  remains  of  those  whom  they  loved  in  life. 
But  the  Quakers,  in  general,  have  not  thought  it 
right  or  wise  to  indulge  such  feelings.     They  he- 

c  By  tliis  process  a  small  piece  of  ground  is  loiigor  in  filling,  no  room 
ijting  lost,  and  the  danger  and  disagreeable  necessity  of  opening  graves  be- 
ore  the  bodies  in  them  {ire  decayed,  is  avoided. 


PECULIAR    CUSTOMS.  ^2^) 

lieve  that  all  good  men,  however  their  bodies 
may  be  separated  in  their  subterraneous  houses 
of  clay,  will  assuredly  meef^t  the  resurrection  ol 
the  just. 

The  Quakers  also  reject  the  fashions  of  the  world 
in  the  use  of  tomb-stones  and  monumental  inscrip 
tions.  These  are  generally  supposed  to  be  erect- 
ed out  of  respect  to  the  memory  or  character  of 
the  deceased.  The  Quakers,  however,  are  of 
opinion,  that  this  is  not  the  proper  manner  of  ho- 
nouring the  dead.  If  j^ou  wish  to  honour  a  good 
man,  who  has  departed  this  life,  let  all  his  good 
actions  live  in  your  memory;  let  them  live  in 
your  grateful  love  and  esteem ;  so  cherish  them 
in  your  heart,  that  they  may  constantly  awaken 
3^ou  to  imitation.  Thus  you  will  show%  by  your 
adoption  of  his  amiable  example,  that  you  really 
respect  his  memory.  This  is  also  that  tribute, 
which,  if  he  himself  could  be  asked  in  the  other 
world  how  he  would  ha^e  his  memory  respected 
in  this,  he  would  prefer  to  any  description  of  his 
virtues,  that  might  be  given  by  the  ablest  writer, 
or  handed  down  to  posterity  by  the  ablest  monu- 
ment of  the  sculptor's  art. 

But  the  Quakers  have  an  objection  to  the  use 
of  tomb-stones  and  monumental  inscriptions,  for 
other  reasons.     For,   where   pillars   of    marble, 


30  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS- 

aboniidiiig  with  panegyric,  and  decorated  in  a 
splendid  manner,  are  erected  to  the  ashes  of  dead 
men,  there  is  a  danger,  lest,  by  making  too  much 
,  of  these,  a  superstitious  awe  should  be  produced, 
and  a  superstitious  veneration  should  attach  to 
them.  The  early  Christians,  by  making  too 
much  of  the  relics  of  their  saints  or  pious  men, 
fell  into  such  errors. 

The  Quakers  believe,  again,  that  if  they  were 
to  allow  the  custom  of  these  outward  monuments 
to  obtain  among  them,  they  might  be  often  led,  as 
the  world  is,  and  by  the  same  causes,  to  a  devia- 
tion from  the  truth  ;  for  it  is  in  human  nature 
to  praise  those  whom  we  love,  but  more  particu- 
larly when  we  have  lost  them.  Hence,  we  find 
often  such  extravagant  encomiums  upon  the  dead, 
that  if  it  were  possible  for  these  to  be  made  ac- 
quainted with  them,  they  would  show  their  disap- 
probation of  such  records.  Hence  we  find  also, 
that  "  as  false  as  an  epitaph,"  has  become  a  pro- 
verbial expression. 

But  even  in  the  case  where  nothing  more  is 
said  upon  the  tomb-stone  than  what  Moses  said 
of  Seth,  and  of  Enos,  and  of  Cainan,  and  others, 
when  he  reckoned  up  the  genealogy  of  Adam, 
namely,  that  "  they  lived  and  that  they  died,"  the 
Quakers  do  not  approve  of  sucli  memorials.     For 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  31 

these  convey  no  merit  of  the  deceased,  by  which 
his  example  should  be  followed.  They  convey  no 
lesson  of  morality  :  and  in  general  they  are  not 
particularly  useful.  They  may  serve  perhaps  to 
point  out  to  surviving  relations,  the  place  where 
the  body  of  the  deceased  was  buried,  so  that  they 
may  know  where  to  mark  out  the  line  for  their 
own  graves.  But  as  the  Quakers  in  general  have 
overcome  the  prejudice  of  ''  sleeping  with  their 
fathers,"  such  memorials  cannot  be  so  useful  to 
them. 

The  Quakers,  however,  have  no  objection,  if  a 
man  has  conducted  himself  particularly  well  in 
life,  that  a  true  statement  should  be  made  concernr 
ing  him,  provided  such  a  statement  would  operate 
as  a  lesson  of  morality  to  others ;  but  they  think 
that  the  tomb-stone  is  not  the  best  medium  of  con- 
veying it.  They  are  persuaded  that  very  little 
moral  advantage  is  derived  to  the  cursory  readers 
of  epitaphs,  or  that  they  can  trace  their  improve- 
ment in  morals  to  this  source.  Sensible,  however, 
that  the  memorials  of  good  men  may  be  made  ser- 
viceable to  the  rising  generation,  ("  and  there  are 
no  ideas,  says  Addison,  which  strike  more  forci- 
bly on  our  imaginations,  than  those  which  are 
raised  from  reflections  upon  the  exits  of  great  and 
excellent  men,'"*   thev  are  willins:i-  to  receive  ac- 


32  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

counts  of  the  lives,  deaths,  and  remarkable  dying 
sayings,  of  those  ministers  in  their  own  society, 
who  have  been  eminent  for  their  labours.  These 
are  drawn  up  by  individuals,  and  presented  to  the 
monthly  meetings,  to  which  the  deceased  belong- 
ed. But  here  they  must  undergo  an  examination 
before  they  are  passed.  The  truth  of  the  state- 
ment, and  the  utility  of  the  record,  must  appear. 
It  then  falls  to  the  quarterly  meetings  to  examine 
them  again,  and  these  may  alter,  or  pass,  or  reject 
'them,  as  it  may  appear  to  be  most  proper.  If 
/  these  should  pass  them,  they  are  forwarded  to  the 
yearly  meeting.  Many  of  them,  after  this,  are 
printed ;  and,  finding  their  way  into  the  book- 
cases of  the  Quakers,  they  become  collected  essays 
of  morality,  and  operate  as  incitements  to  piety  to 
the  rising  youth.  Thus  the  memorials  of  men 
are  made  useful  by  the  Quakers  in  an  unobjec- 
tionable manner ;  for  the  falsehood  and  flattery  of 
epitaphs  are  thus  avoided;  none  but  good  men 
having  been  selected,  whose  virtues,  if  they  are 
recorded,  can  be  perpetuated  with  truth. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  33 


SECT.  Ill 


They  discard  also  mourning  garments — These  are 
only  emblems  of  sorrow — and  often  make  men  pre- 
tend to  be  what  they  are  not — 77//V  contrary  to 
Christianity — Tlius  they  may  become  little  better 
than  disguised  pomp,  or  fashionable  forms — This 
instanced  in  the  changes  and  duration  of  common 
mourning — and  in  the  custom  also  of  co art-mourn-' 
ing — Ramijications  of  the  latter. 


As  the  Quakers  neither  allow  of  the  tomb- 
stones, nor  the  monumental  inscriptions,  so  they 
do  not  allow  of  the  mourning  garments  of  the 
world. 

They  believe  there  can  be  no  true  sorrow  but  in 
the  heart,  and  that  there  can  be  no  other  true  out- 
ward way  of  showing  it  than  by  fulfilling  the  de- 
sires, and  by  imitating  the  best  actions,  of  those 
whom  men  have  lost  and  loved.  "  The  mourning, 
says  William  Penn,  which  it  is  fit  for  a  Christian 
to  have  on  the  departure  of  beloved  relations  and 
friends,  should  be  worn  in  the  mind,  which  is  only 
VOL.  ir.  F 


S4  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

sensible  of  the  loss.  And  the  love  which  men 
have  had  to  these,  and  their  remembrance  of  them, 
should  be  outwardly  expressed  by  a  respect  to 
their  advice,  and  care  of  those  they  have  left  be- 
hind them,  and  their  love  of  that  which  they  lov- 
ed." 

But  mourning  garments,  the  Quakers  contend, 
are  only  emblems  of  sorrow.  They  will  therefore 
frequently  be  used,  where  no  sorrow  is.  Many 
persons  follow  their  deceased  relatives  to  the 
grave,  whose  death,  in  point  of  gain,  is  a  matter  of 
real  joy;  witness  young  spendthrifts,  who  have 
been  raising  sum  after  sum  on  expectation,  and 
calculating  with  voracious  anxiety,  the  probable 
duration  of  their  relations'  lives.  And  yet  all  these 
follow  the  corpse  to  the  grave,  with  white  hand- 
kerchiefs, mourning  habits,  slouched  hats,  and 
dangling  hat-bands.  Mourning  garments,  there- 
fore, frequently  make  men  pretend  to  be  what 

/they  are  not.    But  no  true  or  consistent  Christian 
f 
can  exhibit  an  outward  appearance  to  the  world, 

which  his  inward  feelings  do  not  justify. 

It  is  not  contended  here  by  the  Quakers,  that 

because  a  man  becomes  occasionally  a  hypocrite, 

this  is  a  sufficient  objection  against  any  system  ; 

for  a  man  may  be  an  Atheist  even  in  a  Quaker's 

garb.     Nor  is  it  insinuated,  that  individuals  do  not 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  So 

sometimes  feel  in  their  hearts,  the  sorrow  whicii 
they  purpose  to  signify  by  their  clothing.  But 
it  is  asserted  to  be  true,  that  men  who  use  mourn- 
ing habits  as  they  are  generally  used,  do  not  wear 
them  for  those  deceased  persons  only  whom  they 
loved,  and  abstain  from  the  use  of  them  where 
they  had  no  esteem,  but  that  the}^  wear  them  pro-  , 
miscuously  on  all  the  occasions  which  have  been 
dictated  by  fashion.  Mourning  habits  therefore, 
in  consequence  of  a  long  system  of  etiquette, 
have  become,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  but\ 
little  better  than  disguised  po?np,  or  fashionable. 
forms. 

I  shall  endeavour  to  throw  some  light  upon  this 
position  of  the  Quakers,  by  looking  into  the  prac- 
tice of  the  world. 

In  the  first  place,  there  are  seasons  there,  when 
full  mourning,  and  seasons  when  only  half  mourn- 
ing, is  to  be  worn.  Thus  the  habit  is  changed, 
and  for  no  other  reason,  than  that  of  conformity 
M'ith  the  laws  of  fashion.  The  length  of  this  time  ' 
also,  or  season  of  mourning,  is  made  to  depend 
upon  the  scale  of  men's  affinity  to  the  deceased  j 
though  nothing  can  be  more  obvious,  than  that 
men's  affection  for  the  living,  and  that  their  sor- 
row for  them  when  dead,  cannot  be  measured 
hy  this  standard.     Hence  the  very  time  that  a 


36  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

man  shall  mourn,  and  the  very  time  that  he  shall 
only  half-mourn,  and  the  very  time  that  he  shall 
cease  to  mourn,  is  fixed  for  him  hy  the  world, 
whatever  may  be  the  duration  of  his  own  sorrow. 
In  court-mourning  also,  we  have  an  instance  of 
men  being  instructed  to  mourn,  where  their  feel- 
ings are  neither  interested  nor  concerned.  In 
this  case,  the  disguised  pomp,  spoken  of  by  the 
Quakers,,  will  be  more  apparent.  Two  princes 
have  perhaps  been  fighting  with  each  other  for  a 
considerable  portion  of  their  reigns.  The  blood 
of  their  subjects  has  been  spilled,  and  their  trea- 
sures have  been  exhausted.  They  have  probably 
had,  during  all  this  time,  no  kind  disposition  one 
towards  another,  each  considering  the  other  as  the 
aggressor,  or  as  the  author  of  the  war.  When  both 
have  been  wearied  out  with  expense,  they  have 
made  peace.  But  they  have  still  mutual  jea- 
lousies and  fears.  At  length  one  of  them  dies. 
The  other,  on  receiving  an  express  relative  to  the 
event,  orders  mourning  for  the  deceased  for  a  giv- 
en time.  As  other  potentates  receive  tiic  intelli- 
gence, they  follow  the  example.  "J  heir  several 
levees  or  drawing-rooms,  or  places  of  public  audi- 
ence, are  filled  with  mourners.  Every  individual 
of  each  sex,  who  is  accustomed  to  attend  them,  is 
now  liabited  in  black.     Thus  a  round  of  mourning 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  iJ? 

is  Ivept  up  by  the  courtiers  of  Europe,  not  by 
means  of  any  sympathetic  beating  of  the  lieart,  but 
at  tlie  sound,  as  it  were,  of  the  postman's  horn. 

But  let  us  trace  this  species  of  mourning  far- 
ther, and  let  us  now  more  particularly  look  at  the 
jexamplc  of  our  own  country  for  the  elucidation 
of  tlie  point  in  question.  The  same  Gazette, 
ivliich  gave  birth  to  this  black  influenza  at  court, 
spreads  it  still  farther.  The  private  gentlemen  of 
the  land  undertake  to  mourn  also.  You  see  them 
accordingly  in  the  streets,  and  in  private  parties, 
and  at  public  places,  in  their  mourning  habits. 
Nor  is  this  all.  Military  oflicers,  who  have 
fought  against  the  armies  of  the  deceased,  w'ear 
black  crapes  over  their  arms  in  token  of  the  same 
sorrow. 

But  the  fever  does  not  stop  even  here.  It  still 
spreads,  and  in  tracing  its  progress,  we  find  it  to 
have  attacked  our  merchants.  Yes,  the  disorder 
has  actually  got  upon  change.  But  what  have  I 
said  ?  Mourning  habits  upon  change  !  Where 
the  news  of  an  army  cut  to  pieces,  ])roduces  the 
most  cheerful  countenances  in  many,  if  it  raises 
the  stocks  but  an  half  per  cent.  Mourning  habits 
upon  change,  where  contracts  are  made  for  human 
flesh  and  blood  !  AVhere  plans  that  shall  consign 
cargoes  of  human  beings  to  misery  and  untimely 


38  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

death,  and  their  posterity  to  bondage,  are  delibe 
rately  formed  and  agreed  upon  !  O  sorrow,  sor- 
row !  what  hast  thou  to  do  upon  change,  except 
in  the  case  of  commercial  losses,  or  disappointed 
speculation  !  But  to  add  to  this  disguised  pomp,  as 
the  Quakers  call  it,  not  one  of  ten  thousand  of  the 
mourners,  ever  saw  the  deceased  prince ;  and  per- 
haps ninety  nine  in  the  hundred,  of  all  who  heard 
of  him,  reprobated  his  character  when  alive. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  39 


CHAP.  III. 

Occupations  of  the  Quakers — Agriculture  declining 
among  tJiem — Probable  reasons  of  this  decline — 
Country  congenial  to  the  quietude  of  mind  requir- 
ed l)ij  their  religion — Sentiments  of  Coivper — Con- 
genial also  to  the  improvement  of  their  moral 
feelings — Sentiments  of  William  Penn — Particu- 
larly suited  to  them  as  lovers  of  the  animal  crea- 
tion. 


1  HE  Quakers  generally  bring  up  their  children 
to  some  employment.  They  believe  that  these, 
by  having  an  occupation,  may  avoid  evils,  into 
which  they  might  otherwise  fall,  if  they  had  upon 
their  hands  an  undue  proportion  of  vacant  time. 
"  Friends  of  all  degrees,  says  the  book  of  extracts, 
are  advised  to  take  due  care  to  breed  up  their 
children  in  some  useful  and  necessary  emi3lov- 
ment,  that  they  may  not  spend  their  precious  time 
in  idleness,  which  is  of  evil  example,  and  tends 
much  to  their  hurt." 

The  Quakers  have  been  described  to  be  a  do- 
mestic people,  and  as  peculiarly  cherishing  do- 
mestic happiness.     Upon  tliis  principle  it  is,  com- 


tiO  PECULIAR    CUSTOMS. 

i  billed  with  the  ties  of  their  discipline  and  peculiar 

customs,  that  we  scarcely  find  any  of  this  society 

I  quitting  their  country,  except  for  America,  to  re- 

side in  foreign  parts.  If  it  be  a  charge  against 
the  Quakers,  that  they  are  eager  in  the  pursuit  of 

.  wealth,  let  it  at  least  be  mentioned  in  their  favour, 

I  that,  in  their  accumulation  of  it,  they  have  been 

careful  not  to  suffer  their  knowledge  to  take  ad- 
vantage of  the  ignorance  of  others,  and  to  keep 
their  hands  clear  of  the  oppression,  and  of  the 
blood  of  their  fellow-creatures. 

In  looking  among  the  occupations  of  the  Qua- 
kers, we  shall  find  some,  who  are  brought  up  as 
manufacturers  and  mechanics ;   but  the  number 
•of  these  is  small. 

Others,  but  these  are  few,  follow  the  sea. 
There  may  be  here  and  there  a  mate  or  captain 
in  the  coasting  employ.  In  America,  where  they 
have  great  local  and  other  advantages,  there  may 
be  more  in  the  seafaring  line.  But,  in  general, 
the  Quakers  are  domestic  characters,  and  prefer 
liome. 

There  are  but  few  also,  who  follow  the  profes- 
sions. Their  education  and  their  religion  exclude 
them  from  some  of  these.  Some,  however,  are  to 
be  found  in  the  dejjartmei>t  of  medicine  :  and 
others,  «s  conveyancers,  in  the  law. 


l'i:CULI\K   CUSTOMS.  41 

Several  of  the  Quakers  follow  agriculture.  But 
tln'se  are  few,  com]>ared  with  the  rest  of  the  so- 
eiet}-,  or  compared  with  the  number  of  those 
who  formerly  followed  a  rural  life.  Almost  all 
the  Quakers  were  originally  in  the  country,  and 
but  few  of  them  in  the  towns.  But  this  order  of 
things  is  reversing  fast.  They  are  flocking  into 
the  towns,  and  are  abandoning  agricultural  pur- 
suits. 

The  reasons,  which  may  be  given  for  this 
change,  may  be  the  following.  It  is  not  at  all 
unlikely  but  that  tithes  may  have  had  some  influ- 
ence in  producing  it.  I  am  aware,  however,  it 
will  be  said,  that  a  Quaker,  living  in  the  country, 
and  strongly  principled  against  these,  would  think 
it  a  dereliction  of  his  duty  to  leave  it  on  this  ac 
count,  and  would  remain  upon  the  principle,  that 
an  abode  there,  under  the  annual  exercise  of  his 
testimony,  would,  in  a  religious  point  of  view,  add 
strength  to  his  strength.  But  it  must  be  observed, 
on  the  other  hand,  that  where  men  are  not  obliged 
to  remain  under  grievous  evils,  and  can  get  rid  ol 
them,  merely  by  changing  their  occupation  in  life, 
and  this  honourably,  it  is  in  human  nature  to  do 
it.  And  so  far  tithes,  I  believe,  have  had  an  in- 
lluence,  in  driving  the  Quakers  into  the  tovvns. 
Of  later  years,  as  the  society  has  grown  thinner 

VOL.  II.  G 


42  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

in  the  country,  I  believe  new  reasons  have  sprung 
up ;  for  the  Quakers  have  had  less  opportunity 
of  society  with  one  another.  They  have  been  sub  - 
jected  also  to  greater  inconvenience  in  attending 
their  religious  meetings.  Their  children  also  have 
been  more  exposed  to  improper  connexions  in 
marriage.  To  which  it  may  be  added,  that  the 
large  and  rapid  profits  frequently  made  in  trade, 
compared  with  the  generally  small  and  slow  re- 
turns from  agricultural  concerns,  may  probably 
have  operated  with  many,  as  an  inducement  to 
such  a  change. 

But  whatever  reasons  may  have  induced  them  to 
quit  the  country,  and  to  settle  in  the  towns,  no 
temporal  advantages  can  make  up  to  them,  as  a 
society,  the  measure  of  their  loss.  For  when  we 
consider  that  the  Quakers  never  partake  of  the 
amusements  of  the  world;  that  their  worldly  plea- 
sures are  chiefly  of  a  domestic  nature  ;  that  calm- 
ness, and  quietude,  and  abstraction  from  worldly 
thoughts,  to  which  rural  retirement  is  peculiarly 
favourable,  is  the  state  of  mind  which  they  them- 
selves acknowledge  to  be  required  by  their  reli- 
gion, it  would  seem  that  the  country  was  peculiar- 
ly the  place  for  their  habitations. 

It  would  seem  also  as  if,  by  this  forsaking  of  the 
country,  they  had  deprived  themselves  of  manv 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  iS 

opportunities  of  the  highest  enjoyment  of  which 
they  are  capable  as  Quakers.  The  objects  in  the 
country  are  peculiarly  favourable  to  the  improve- 
ment of  morality  in  the  exercise  of  the  spiritual 
feelings.  The  bud  and  the  blossom,  the  rising 
and  the  falling  leaf,  the  blade  of  corn  and  the  ear, 
the  seed  time  and  the  harvest,  the  sun  that  warms 
and  ripens,  the  cloud  that  cools  and  emits  the  fruit- 
ful shower;  these,  and  an  hundred  objects,  afford 
daily  food  for  the  religious  growth  of  the  mind. 
Even  the  natural  man  is  pleased  with  these. 
They  excite  in  him  natural  ideas,  and  produce  in 
him  a  natural  kind  of  pleasure.  But  the  spiritual 
man  experiences  a  sublimer  joy.  He  sees  none  of 
these  without  feeling  both  spiritual  improvement 
and  delight.  It  is  here  that  he  converses  with  the 
Deity  in  his  works :  It  is  here  that  he  finds  him- 
self grateful  for  his  goodness — that  he  acknowledg- 
es his  wisdom — that  he  expresses  his  admiration 
of  his  power. 

The  poet  Cowper,  in  his  contemplation  of  a 
country  life,  speaks  forcibly  on  this  subject. 

"  O  friendly  to  tlie  best  pursuits  of  man. 
Friendly  to  tkoi/g/tt,  to  virtue,  aud  to  peace, 
Domestic  life,  in  rural  leisure  pass'd  ! 
Few  know  thy  value,  and  few  taste  thy  sweets ; 
Though  many  boast  thy  favours,  and  affect 
To  understand  and  choose  thee  for  their  own. 


44  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

But  foolish  man  foresrops  his  proper  bIJss, 
Ev'n  as  his  first  progenitor,  and  quits, 
Though  piac'd  in  Paridise,  (for  earth  has  still 
Some  traces  of  her  youtliful  beauty  left,) 
S'lhsiantial  happiness  for  transient  joy. 
Scenes  form'd  for  contemplation,  and  to  nurse 
The  groiving  seeds  of  ivisdovi,  that  suggest 
By  every  pleasing  image  they  present, 
Reflections,  such  as  meliorate  the  heart. 
Compose  the  passions,  and  exalt  the  viiml, 

William  Penn,  in  the  beautiful  letter  whicli  he 
left  his  wife  and  children  before  his  first  voyae^eto 
America,  speaks  also  in  strong  terms  upon  the 
point  in  question. 

"  But  agriculture,  says  he,  is  especially  in  my  eye. 
Let  my  children  be  husbandmen  and  housewives. 
This  occupation  is  industrious,  healthy,  honest, 
and  of  good  example.  Like  Abraham  and  the 
holy  ancients,  who  pleased  God,  and  obtained  a 
good  report,  this  leads  to  consider  the  zvorks  of 
God,  and  nature  of  things  that  are  good,  and  diverts 
the  mind  from  being  taken  up  with  the  vain  arts  and 
inventions  cf  a  luxurious  worlds  And  a  little  far- 
ther on  he  sa^^s,  "  Of  cities  and  towns,  of  concourse 
bczva)x\  The  zvorld  is  apt  to  stick  close  to  those, 
Avho  have  lived  and  got  ivealth  there.  A  country 
life  and  estate,  I  like  best  for  my  children.  I  pre- 
fer a  decent  mansion  of  a  hundred  pounds  a  year, 
to  ten  thousand  pounds  in  London,  or  such  like 
place,  in  the  ivay  of  trade. '^ 


I 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  45 

To  these  observations  it  may  be  added,  that  the 
country,  independently  of  the  opportunity  it  af- 
fords for  calmness  and  quietude  of  mind,  and  the 
moral  improvement  of  it  in  the  exercise  of  the 
spiritual  feelings,  is  peculiarly  fitted  for  the  habit- 
ation of  the  Quakers,  on  account  of  their  peculiar 
lov  e  for  the  animal  creation.  It  would  afford  them 
a  wide  range  for  the  exercise  of  this  love,  and  the 
improvement  of  the  benevolent  affections.  For 
tenderness,  if  encouraged,  like  a  plant  that  is  duly 
watered,  still  grows.  What  man  has  ever  shown 
a  proper  affection  for  the  brute  creation,  who  has 
been  backward  in  his  love  of  the  human  race  ? 


46  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

CHAP.   IV. 

SECT.  I. 

Trade — Trade  seldom  considered  as  a  question  of 
morals — But  Quakers  view  it  in  this  light — Pro- 
hibit the  slave-trade — Privateering — Manufacto- 
ries of  weapons  of  war — Also  trade  where  the  re- 
venue is  defrauded — Hazardous  enterprises — Fic- 
titious paper — Insist  upon  punctuality  to  ivords 
and  engagements — Advise  an  annual  inspection  of 
their  own  affairs — Regulations  in  case  of  bank- 
ruptcy. 


1  STATED  in  the  last,  chapter,  that  some  of  the 
Quakers,  though  these  were  few  in  number,  were 
manufaclurers  and  mechanics  ;  that  others  follow- 
ed tlie  sea;  that  others  were  to  be  found  in  the 
medical  profession,  and  in  the  law ;  and  that  others 
were  occupied  in  the  concerns  of  a  rural  life.  I 
believe  w  ith  these  few  exceptions,  that  the  rest  of 
the  society  ma}-  be  considered  as  engaged  in  trade. 
Trade  is  a  subject,  which  seldom  comes  under 
the  discussion  of  mankind  as  a  moral  question.  If 
men  who   follow  it,  arc  honest  and  punctual  in 


TECULIAR    CUSTOMS.  47 

their  dealings,  little  is  thought  of  the  nature  of 
their  occupations,  or  of  the  influence  of  these 
upon  their  minds.  It  will  hardly,  however,  be 
denied  by  moralists,  that  the  buying  and  selling 
of  commodities  for  profit,  is  surrounded  with  temp- 
tation, and  is  injurious  to  pure,  benevolent,  or 
disinterested  feelings;  or  that  where  the  mind  is 
constantly  intent  upon  the  gaining  of  wealth,  by 
traffic,  it  is  dangerously  employed.  Much  less 
will  it  be  denied,  that  trade  is  an  evil,  if  any  of 
the  branches  of  it  through  wdiich  men  acquire 
their  wealth,  are  productive  of  mischief  either  to 
themselves  or  others.  If  they  are  destructive  to 
the  health  of  the  inferior  agents,  or  to  the  morality 
of  any  of  the  persons  concerned  in  them,  they  can 
never  be  sanctioned  by  Christianity. 

The  Q'lakers  have  thought  it  their  duty,  as  a 
religious  body,  to  make  several  regulations  on  this 
subject. 

In  the  first  place  they  have  made  it  a  rule,  that 
no  person,  acknow  ledged  to  be  in  profession  with 
them,  shall  have  any  concern  in  the  slave-trade. 

The  Quakers  began  to  consider  this  subject,  as 
a  Christian  body,  so  early  as  in  the  beginning  of 
the  last  century.  In  the  year  1727,  they  passed 
a  public  censure  upon  this  trade.  In  the  year 
1758,  and  afterwards  in  the  year  1761,  they  warn- 


48  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

ed  and  exhorted  all  in  profession  with  them  "  to 
keep  their  hands  clear  of  this  unrighteous  gain  of 
oppression."  In  the  yearly  meeting  of  1763,  they 
renewed  their  exhortation  in  the  foUovvins:  words: 
"  We  renew  our  exhortation,  that  Friends  every 
where  be  especially  careful  to  keep  their  hands 
clear  of  giving  encouragement  in  any  shape  to  the 
slave-trade  ;  it  being  evidently  destructive  of  the 
natural  rights  of  mankind,  who  are  all  ransomed 
by  one  Saviour,  and  visited  by  one  divine  light  in 
order  to  salvation ;  a  traffic  calculated  to  enrich 
and  aggrandize  some  upon  the  miseries  of  others  j 
in  its  nature  abhorrent  to  every  just  and  tender 
sentiment,  and  contrary  to  the  whole  tenour  of 
the  Gospel." 

In  the  same  manner,  from  the  year  1765,  they 
have  publicly  manifested  a  tender  concern  for  the 
happiness  of  the  injured  Africans,  and  they  have- 
not  only  been  vigilant  to  see  that  none  of  their 
own  members  were  concerned  in  this  impious 
traffic,  but  they  have  lent  their  assistance  with 
other  Christians  in  promoting  its  discontinuance. 

They  have  forbidden  also  the  trade  of  privateer- 
ing in  war.  The  Quakers  consider  the  capture 
of  private  vessels  by  private  persons,  as  a  robbery 
committed  on  the  property  of  others,  which  no 
human  authority  can  make  reconcileable  to  the 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  49 

consciences  of  honest  individuals.  And  upon  this 
motive  they  forbid  it,  as  well  as  upon  that  of  their 
know  M  j)rofessioii  aQ:aiiist  war. 

They  forhid  also  the  trade  of  the  manufacturing 
of  gun-powder,  and  of  arms  or  weapons  of  war, 
such  as  swords,  guns,  pistols,  bayonets,  and  the 
like,  that  they  may  stand  clear  of  the  charge  of 
having  made  any  instrument,  the  avowed  use  of 
which  is  the  destruction  of  human  life. 

They  have  forbidden  also  all  trade,  that  has  for 
its  object  the  defrauding  of  the  king  either  of  his 
customs  or  his  excise.  They  are  not  only  not  to 
smuggle  themselves,  but  they  are  not  to  deal  in 
such  goods  as  they  know,  or  such  as  they  even 
suspect,  to  be  smuggled;  nor  to  buy  any  article  of 
this  description,  even  for  their  private  use.  This 
prohibition  is  enjoined,  because  all  christians 
ought  "  to  render  to  Caesar  the  things  that  are 
Ctcsars,"  in  all  cases  where  their  consciences  do 
not  sull'er  by  doing  it :  because  those,  w  ho  are  ac- 
cessary to  smuggling,  give  encouragement  to  per- 
jury and  bloodshed,  these  being  frequently  the 
attendants  of  such  unlawful  practices ;  and  be- 
cause they  do  considerable  injury  to  the  honest 
trader. 

They  discourage  also  concerns  in  "  hazardous 
enterprises,"  in  the  way  of  trade.  Such  enterpris- 
\-X)L.  ir.  H 


50  PECULIAR    CUSTOMS*. 

ses  are  apt  to  disturb  the  tranquillity  of  the  mind, 
and  to  unfit  it  for  religious  exercise.  They  may 
involve  also  the  parties  concerned,  and  their  fa- 
milies, in  ruin.  The^-  may  deprive  them  again  of 
the  means  of  paying  their  just  debts,  and  thus 
render  them  injurious  to  their  creditors.  Mem- 
bers, therefore,  are  advised  to  be  rather  content 
with  callings  Miiich  may  produce  small  but  cer- 
tain profits,  than  to  hazard  the  tranquillity  of 
their  minds,  and  the  property  of  themselves  and 
others. 

In  the  exercise  of  those  callings  which  are 
deemed  lawful  by  the  society,  two  things  are  in- 
sisted upon  :  first,  that  their  members  "  never  raise 
and  circulate  any  fictitious  kind  of  paper  credit, 
with  endorsements  and  acceptances,  to  give  it  an 
appearance  of  value  without  an  intrinsic  reality." 
secondly,  that  they  should  be  particularly  atten- 
tive to  their  words,  and  to  the  punctual  perform- 
ance of  their  engagements,  and  on  no  account  de- 
lay their  payments  beyond  the  time  they  have 
promised.  The  society  have  very  much  at  heart 
the  enforcement  of  the  latter  injunction,  not  only 
because  all  christians  ar^  under  an  obligation  to 
do  these  things,  but  because  they  wish  to  see  the 
high  reputation  of  their  ancestors,  in  these  re- 
spects, preserved  among  thos^  of  their  own  day. 


I'ECriJAR  CUSTOMS.  51 

The  earlv  Quakers  were  noted  i'ov  a  sei-ui)uloii.s  ai- 
tention  to  tlieir  duty,  as  Christians,  in  their  com- 
mercial eoncerns.  One  ot"  the  great  chnnour.s 
against  them,  in  the  infancy  ot"  their  institution, 
was,  that  they  would  get  all  the  trade.  It  was  no- 
thing but  their  great  honour  in  their  dealings, 
arising  from  religious  principle,  that  gave  biith 
to  this  uproar,  or  secured  them  a  more  than  or- 
dinary portion  of  the  custom  of  the  world  in  the 
line  of  their  respective  trades. 

Among  other  regulations  made  by  the  Quakers 
on  the  subject  of  trade,  it  is  advised  publicly  to 
the  members  of  the  society,  to  inspect  the  state  of 
their  affairs  once  a  year.  And  lest  this  advice 
should  be  disregarded,  the  monthly  meetings  are 
directed  to  make  annual  appointments  of  suitable 
Friends  to  communicate  it  to  the  members  indi- 
vidually. But  independently  of  this  public  recom- 
mendation, they  are  earnestly  advised  by  their 
book  of  extracts,  to  examine  their  situations  fre- 
quently. This  is  done  with  a  view,  that  they  may 
see  how  they  stand  with  respect  to  themselves  and 
the  world  at  large  ;  that  they  may  not  launch  out 
into  commercial  concerns  beyond  their  strength, 
nor  live  beyond  their  income,  nor  go  on  longer  in 
their  business  than  they  can  pay  their  debts. 

If  a  Quaker,  after  this  inspection  of  his  aflairs. 


52  PECl^LIAR  CUSTOMS. 

should  find  himself  unable  to  pay  his  just  debts, 
Jie  is  immediate]}^  to  disclose  his  affairs  to  some 
judicious  members  of  the  society,  or  to  his  prin- 
cipal creditors,  and  to  take  their  advice  how  he  is 
to  act  j  but  to  be  particularly  careful  not  to  pay 
one  creditor  in  preference  to  another. 

When  a  person  of  the  society  becomes  a  bank- 
rupt, a  committee  is  appointed  by  his  own  month- 
ly meeting,  to  confer  with  him  on  his  affairs.  If 
the  bankruptcy  should  appear,  by  their  report,  to 
have  been  the  result  of  misconduct,  he  is  disown- 
ed. He  may,  however,  on  a  full  repentance,  (for 
it  is  a  maxim  with  the  society,  that  "  tru^  repen- 
tance washes  out  all  stains,")  and  by  a  full  pay- 
ment of  every  man  his  own,  be  admitted  into 
membership  again  ;  or  if  he  has  begun  to  pay  his 
creditors,  and  has  made  arrangements  satisfactory 
to  the  society  for  paying  them,  he  may  be  receiv- 
ed as  a  member,  even  before  the  whole  of  the 
debt  is  settled. 

If  it  should  appear,  on  the  other  hand,  that  tl)e 
bankruptcy  was  the  unavoidable  result  of  misfor- 
tune, and  not  of  imprudence,  he  is  allowed  to  con- 
tinue in  the  society. 

lh]\  iii  cither  of  these  cases,  that  is,  where  a  man 
is  disowned  and  restored,  or  where  he  has  not 
been  (:li50v,ned  at  nil,  he  is  never  considered  as  a 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  53 

member,  entitled  to  every  privilege  of  the  society, 
till  he  has  |)aid  the  whole  oithe  debts.  And  the 
Quakers  are  so  striet  upon  this  point,  that  if  a 
person  has  ]Kiid  ten  sinllings  in  the  })ound,  and 
his  creditors  have  accepted  the  composition,  and 
the  law  has  given  hiin  his  discharge,  it  is  insisted 
npon  that  he  pays  the  remaining  ten  as  soon  as 
he  is  able.  No  distance  of  time  will  be  any  ex- 
cuse to  the  society  for  his  refusal  to  comply  with 
this  honourable  law.  Nor  will  he  be  considered 
as  a  full  member,  as  I  observed  before,  till  he  has 
paid  the  uttermost  farthing  ;  for  no  collection  for 
the  poor,  nor  any  legacy  for  the  poor,  or  for  other 
services  of  the  society,  will  be  received  from  his 
purse,  while  any  thing  remains  of  the  former  debt. 
This  rule  of  refusing  charitable  contributions  on 
such  occasions,  is  founded  on  the  principle  that 
money,  taken  from  a  man  in  such  a  situation,  is 
taken  from  hrs  lawful  creditors ;  and  that  such  a 
man  can  have  nothing  to  give,  while  he  owes'  any 
thing  to  another. 

It  may  be  observed  of  this  rule  or  custom,  that 
as  it  is  founded  in  moral  principle,  so  it  tends 
to  promote  a  moral  end.  AVhen  persons  of  this 
description  see  their  ow*n  donations  dispensed 
with,  but  those  of  the  rest  of  the  meeting  taken, 
they  are  reminded  of  their  own   situation,  and   of 


54  PECULIAR    CUSTOMS. 

the  desirableness  of  making  the  full  satisfaction 
required.  The  custom,  therefore,  operates  as  a 
constant  memento,  that  their  debts  are  still  hang- 
ing over  them,  and  prompts  to  new  industry  and 
anxious  exertion  for  their  discharge.  There  are 
many  instances  of  Quakers,  who  have  paid  their 
composition  as  others  do,  but  who,  after  a  lapse 
of  many  years,  have  surprised  their  former  cre- 
ditors by  bringing  them  the  remaining  amount  of 
their  former  debts.  Hence  the  Quakers  are  often 
enabled  to  say,  what  few  others  can  say  on  the 
same  subject,  that  they  are  not  ultimately  hurtful 
to  mankind,  either  by  their  errors,  or  by  their 
misfortunes. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  -^^ 


SECT.  ir. 


But  though  the  Quakers  have  made  these  regulations. 


^!r> 


the  world  Ji ml  fault  icifh  maiuj  of  their  trades  or 
callings—  Several  of  these  specif ed — Standard  pro- 
posed bij  ichicli  to  examine  them — Some  of  these 
censurable  by  this  standard — and  given  up  by  many 
Quakers  on  this  account,  though  individuals  may 
still  follow  them. 


BrT  though  tlie  Quakers  have  made  these  beau- 
tiful regulations  concerning  trade,  it  is  manifest 
that  the  world  are  not  wholly  satisfied  with  their 
conduct  on  this  subject.  People  charge  them 
with  the  exercise  of  improper  callings,  or  of  oc- 
cupations inconsistent  with  the  principles  they 
profess. 

It  is  well  known  that  the  Quakers  consider 
themselves  as  a  highly  professing  people ;  that 
they  declaim  against  the  follies  and  vanities  of  the 
world ;  and  that  they  bear  their  testimony  against 
civil  customs,  and  institutions,  even  to  personal 
suffering.     Hence,  professing  more  than  others. 


•>0  PFXULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

more  is  expected  from  them.  George  Fox  en- 
deavoured to  inculcate  this  idea  into  his  new  so- 
ciety. In  his  letter  to  the  yearly  meeting  in  1  679, 
he  expresses  himself  as  follows  :  "  The  world  also 
does  expect  more  from  Friends  than  from  other 
people,  because  they  profess  more.  Therefore 
you  should  be  more  just  than  others  in  your  words 
and  dealings,  and  more  righteous,  holy,  and  pure, 
in  your  lives  and  conversations  ;  so  that  your  lives 
and  conversations  may  preach.  For  the  world's 
tongmes  and  mouths  have  preached  long  enough; 
but  their  lives  and  conversations  have  denied  what 
their  tongues  have  professed  and  declared."  I 
may  observe,  therefore,  that  the  circumstance  of 
a  more  than  ordinary  profession  of  consistency, 
and  not  any  supposed  immorality  on  the  part  of 
the  Quakers,  has  brought  them,  in  the  instances 
alluded  to,  under  the  censure  of  the  world.  Other 
people,  found  in  the  same  trades  or  occupations, 
are  seldom  noticed  as  doing  wrong.  But  when 
men  are  set  as  lights  upon  a  hill,  blemishes  will  be 
discovered  in  them,  which  will  be  overlooked 
among  those  who  walk  in  the  vale  below. 

The  trades  or  occupations  which  are  usually 
condemned  as  impro])er  for  Quakers  to  follow, 
are  numerous.  I  shall  not  therefore  specify  them 
all.      Those,  however,  which  I  purpose  to  select 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  57 

for  mention,  I  shall  accompany  with  all  the  dis- 
tinctions wiiich  equity  demands  oh  the  occasion. 

The  trade  of  a  distiller,  or  of  a  spirit-merchant, 
is  considered  as  objectionable  if  in  the  hands  ol 
a  Quaker. 

That  of  a  cotton  manufacturer,  who  employs  a 
number  of  poor  children  in  the  usual  way,  or  in  a 
A\  av  which  is  destructive  to  their  morals  and  to 
their  health,  is  considered  as  equally  deserving  of 
censure^. 

There  is  a  calling  which  is  seldom  followed  by 
itself:  I  mean  the  furnishing  of  funerals,  or  the 
serving  of  the  pall.  This  is  generally  in  the  hands 
of  Cabinet-makers,  or  of  Upholsterers,  or  of  wool- 
len-drapers. Now  if  any  Quaker  should  be  found 
in  anv  of  these  occupations,  and  if  he  should  unite 
with  these  that  of  serving  the  pall,  he  would  be 
considered  by  such  an  union,  as  following  an  ob- 
jectionable trade.     For  the  Quakers  having  dis- 


ci Poor  cliildren  are  frequently  sent  by  parislies  to  cotton-mills.  Little 
or  no  care  is  taken  of  their  morals.  The  men,  when  grown  up,  frequently 
become  drunken,  and  the  girls  debauched.  But  the  evil  does  not  stop  here. 
Tiie  progeny  of  these,  vitiated  by  the  drunkenness  and  debauchery  of  their 
parents,  have  generally  diseased  and  crippled  constitutions,  which  they 
perpetuate  to  a  new  generation  ;  after  which  the  whole  race,  I  am  told, 
generally  becomes  extinct.  What  Christian  can  gain  wealth  at  the  ex- 
gense  of  the  health,  morals,  and  happiness  of  his  fciiuu-freatirre's? 
VOL.    II.  I 


58  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

carded  all  the  pomp,  and  parade,  and  dress,  con- 
nected with  funerals,  from  their  own  practice,  and 
this  upon  moral  principles,  it  is  insisted  upon,  that 
they  ought  not  to  be  accessary  to  the  promotion 
of  such  ceremonials  among  others. ' 

The  trade  of  a  printer,  or  bookseller,  when  ex- 
ercised by  a  Quaker,  has  not  escaped  the  animad- 
versions of  the  world.  A  distinction,  however, 
must  be  made  here.  They  who  condemn  this 
calling,  can  never  do  it  justly,  but  in  supposed  ca- 
ses. They  must  suppose,  for  example,  that  the 
persons  in  question  follow  these  callings  generally, 
or  that  they  do  not  make  an  exception  with  re- 
spec^  to  the  printing  or  selling  of  such  books  as 
may  convey  poison  to  the  morals  of  those  who 
read  them. 

A  Quaker-tailor  is  considered  as  a  character, 
which  cannot  consistently  exist.  But  a  similar 
distinction  must  be  made  here  as  in  a  former  case. 
The  world  cannot  mean  that  if  a  Quaker  confines 
himself  to  the  making  of  clothes  for  his  own  socie- 
ty, he  is  reproachable  for  so  doing ;  but  only  if 
he  makes  clothes  for  every  one  without  distinc- 
tion, following,  as  he  is  ordered,  all  the  varying 
fashions  of  the  world. 

A  Quaker-hatter  is  looked  upon  in  the  same 
light  as  a  Quaker-tailor.     But  here  a  distinction 


PFXULIAR  CUSTOMS.  59 

suggests  itself  again.  If  he  make  only  j^lain  ami 
useful  hats  for  the  community  and  for  other  Qua- 
kers, it  cannot  be  understood  that  he  is  aetino:  in- 
consistently with  his  religious  profession.  Tlie 
charge  can  only  lie  against  him,  where  he  furnisli- 
es  the  hat  with  the  gold  and  the  silver-lace,  or  the 
lady's  riding-hat  with  its  ornaments,  or  the  mili- 
tary hat  with  its  lace,  cockade,  and  plumes.  In 
this  case  he  will  be  considered  as  censurable  by 
many-,  because  he  will  be  looked  upon  as  a  dealer 
in  the  superfluities  condemned  by  his  ov\  n  reli- 
gion. 

The  last  occupation  I  shall  notice  is  that  of  a 
silversmith.  And  here  the  censure  will  depend 
upon  a  contingency  also.  If  a  Quaker  confines 
himself  to  the  selling  of  plain  silver  articles  for 
use,  little  objection  can  be  raised  against  his  em- 
ploy. But  if,  in  addition  to  this,  he  sells  gold- 
headed  canes,  trinkets,  rings,  ear-rings,  bracelets, 
jewels,  and  other  ornaments  of  the  person,  he  will 
be  considered  as  chargeable  with  the  same  incon- 
sistency as  the  follower  of  the  former  trade. 

In  examining  these  and  other  occupations  of 
the  Quakers,  with  a  view  of  seeing  how  far  the  ob- 
jections which  have  been  advanced  against  them 
are  valid,  I  own  I  have  a  diflicult  task  to  perform. 
For  what  standard  shall  I  fix  upon,  or  wliat  limits 


60  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

shall  I  draw  upon  this  occasion  ?  The  objections 
are  founded  in  part  upon  the  principle,  that  Qua- 
kers ought  not  to  sell  those  things,  of  which  their 
own  practice  shows  that  they  disapprove.  But 
shall  I  admit  this  principle  without  any  limitation 
or  reserve  ?  Shall  I  say  without  any  reserve,  that 
a  Quaker-woman,  who  discards  the  use  of  a  sim- 
ple ribbon  from  her  dress,  shall  not  sell  it  to  an- 
other female,  who  has  been  constantly  in  the  habit 
of  using  it,  and  this  without  any  detriment  to  her 
mind  ?  Shall  I  say  again,  without  any  reserve,  that 
a  Quaker-man  who  discards  the  use  of  black  cloth, 
shall  not  sell  a  yard  of  it  to  another  ?  And,  if  I 
should  say  so,  where  am  I  to  stop  r  Shall  I  not  be 
obliged  to  go  over  all  the  colours  in  his  shop,  and 
object  to  all  but  the  brown  and  the  drab  ?  Shall  I 
say  again,  without  any  reserve,  that  a  Quaker  can- 
not sell  any  thing  which  is  innocent  in  itself, 
without  inquiring  of  the  buyer  its  application  or 
its  use  ?  And  if  I  should  say  so,  might  I  not  as  well 
say,  that  no  Quaker  can  be  in  trade  ?  I  fear  that 
to  say  this,  would  be  to  get  into  a  labyrinth,  out 
of  which  there  would  be  no  clew  to  guide  us, 

Diflicult,  however,  as  the  task  may  seem,  I 
think  I  may  lay  down  tliree  positions,  which  will 
probably  not  be  denied,  and  which,  if  admitted, 
will  assist  us  in  the  determination  of  the  question 


PECULIAR  etJSTOMS.  61 

before  us.  The  first  of  these  is,  that  no  Quaker 
can  be  concerned  in  the  saU;  of  a  thing,  which  is 
evil  in  itself.  Secondly,  that  he  cannot  encourage 
the  sale  of  an  article,  which  he  knows  to  he  essen- 
tially, or  very  generally,  that  is,  in  seven  cases 
out  often,  productive  of  evil.  And,  thirdly,  that 
he  cannot  sell  things  wliich  he  has  discarded  from 
his  own  use,  if  he  has  discarded  them  on  a  belief 
that  they  are  specifically  forbidden  by  Christiani- 
ty, or  that  they  are  morally  injurious  to  the  hu- 
man mind. 

If  tliese  positions  be  acknowledged,  they  will 
give  ample  latitude  for  the  condemnation  of  many 
branches  of  trade. 

A  Quaker-bookseller,  according  to  these  posi- 
tions, cannot  sell  a  profane  or  improper  book. 

A  Quaker  spirit-merchant  cannot  sell  his  liquor 
but  to  those  whom  he  believes  will  use  it  in  mo- 
deration, or  medicinally,  or  on  proper  occasions. 
A  Quaker,  who  is  a  manufacturer  of  cotton, 
cannot  exercise  his  occupation  but  upon  an 
amended  plan. 

A  Quaker-silversmith  cannot  deal  in  any  splen- 
did ornaments  of  the  person. 

The  latter  cannot  do  this  for  the  following  rea- 
sons. The  Quakers  reject  all  such  ornaments, 
because  they  believe  them  to  be  specifically  con- 


62  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

demned  by  Christianity.  The  words  of  the  apos- 
tles Paul  and  Peter,  have  been  quoted  both  by 
Fox,  Penn,  Barcla}^,  and  others,  upon  this  subject. 
But  surely,  if  the  Christian  religion  positively  con- 
demns the  use  of  them  in  one,  it  condemns  the 
use  of  them  in  another.  And  iiovv  can  any  one, 
professing  this  religion,  sell  that,  the  use  of  which 
he  believes  it  to  have  forbidden?  The  Quakers  also 
have  rejected  all  ornaments  of  the  person,  as  we 
find  by  their  own  writers,  on  account  of  their  im- 
moral tendency  j  or  because  they  are  supposed  to 
be  instrumental  in  puffing  up  the  cieature,  or  in 
the  generation  of  vanity  and  pride.  But  if  they 
have  rejected  the  use  of  them  upon  this  principle, 
they  are  bound,  as  Christians,  to  refuse  to  sell 
them  to  others.  Christian  love,  and  the  Christian 
obligation  to  do  as  we  would  wish  to  be  done  by, 
positively  enjoin  this  conduct.  For  no  man,  con- 
sistently with  this  divine  law  and  obligation,  can 
sow  the  seeds  of  moral  disease  in  his  neighbour's 
mind.  '^ 

And  here  I  may  observe,  that  though  there  arc 
trades,  \\hich  may  be  innocent  in  themselves,  yet 
Quakers  may  make  them  objectionable  by  the 
manner  in  which  they  may  conduct  themselves  in 
disposing  of  the  articles  which  belong  to  them. 
They  can  never  pass  them  off,  as  other  people  do. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  63 

bv  the  declaration  that  they  are  the  fashionable 
articles  of  the  day.  Such  words  ought  never  to 
come  out  of  Quakers'  mouths;  not  so  nnich  be- 
cause their  own  lives  are  a  li\  inc^  protest  against 
the  fashions  of  the  world,  as  because  they  cannot 
knowingly  be  instrumental  in  doing  a  moral  inju- 
ry to  others.  For  it  is  undoubtedly  the  belief  of 
the  Quakers,  as  I  had  occasion  to  observe  in  a  for- 
mer volume,  that  the  following  of  such  fashions 
begets  a  worldly  spirit,  and  that  in  proportion  as 
men  indulge  this  spirit,  they  are  found  to  follow 
the  loose  and  changeable  morality  of  the  world, 
instead  of  the  strict  antl  steady  morality  of  the 
gospel. 

That  some  such  positions  as  these  may  be  fix- 
ed upon  for  the  farther  regulation  of  commercial 
concerns  among  the  Quakers,  is  evident,  when  we 
consider  the  example  of  many  estimable  persons 
in  this  society. 

The  Quakers,  in  the  early  times  of  their  institu- 
tion, were  very  circumspect  about  the  nature  of 
their  occupations,  and  particularly  as  to  dealing 
in  superfluities  and  ornaments  of  the  person. 
Gilbert  Latey  w^as  one  of  those  who  bore  his  pub-' 
lie  testimony  against  them.  Though  he  was  only 
a  tailor,  he  was  known  and  highly  respected  by 
king   James  the  Second.      He  would  not  allow 


64  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

his  servants  to  put  any  corruptive  finery  upon  the 
clothes  which  he  had  been  ordered  to  make  for 
others.  From  Gilbert  Latey  I  may  pass  to  Johit 
Woolman.  In  examining  the  Journal  of  the  lat- 
ter I  find  him  speaking  thus :  "  It  had  been  my 
general  practice  to  buy  and  sell  things  really  use- 
ful. Things  that  served  chiefly  to  please  the  vain 
mind  in  people,  I  was  not  easy  to  trade  in;  seldom 
did  it;  and  whenever  I  did,  I  found  it  weaken  me 
as  a  Christian."  And  from  John  Woolman  I 
might  mention  the  names  of  many,  and,  if  delica- 
cy did  not  forbid  me,  those  of  Quakers  now  living, 
who  relinquished  or  regidated  their  callings,  on  an 
idea,  that  they  could  not  consistently  follow  them 
at  all,  or  that  they  could  not  follow  them  accord- 
ing to  the  usual  manner  of  the  world.  I  knew 
the  relation  of  a  Quaker-distiller,  who  left  otf  his 
business  upon  principle.  I  was  intimate  with  a 
Quaker-bookseller.  He  did  not  give  up  his  occu- 
pation, for  this  was  unnecessary  ;  but  he  was  scru- 
pulous about  the  selling  of  an  improper  book. 
Another  friend  of  mine,  in  the  society,  succeeded 
but  a  few  years  ago  to  a  draper's  shop.  The  fur- 
nishing of  funerals  had  been  a  profitable  part  of 
the  employ.  But  he  refused  to  be  concerned  in 
this  branch  of  it,  wholly  owing  to  his  scruples 
about  it.      Anotiier  had  been  established  as  a  sil- 


PFXULIAR    CUSTOMS.  66 

versmith  for  many  years,  and  had  traded  in  tlie 
ornamental  part  of  tlie  busincbs,  but  lic  left  it 
wholly,  thougii  advantageously  situated,  for  the 
same  reason,  and  betook  himself  to  another  trade. 
I  know  other  Quakers,  who  have  held  other  oecu- 
pations,  not  usually  objectionable  by  the  world, 
who  have  become  uneasy  about  them,  and  have  re- 
linquished them  in  their  turn.  These  noble  in- 
stances of  the  dereliction  of  gain,  where  it  has  in- 
terfered with  principle,  I  feel  it  only  justice  to 
mention  in  this  place.  It  is  an  homage  due  to 
Quakerism  ;  for  genuine  Quakerism  will  always 
produce  such  instances.  No  true  Quaker  will  re- 
main in  any  occupation,  which  he  believes  it  im- 
proper to  pursue.  And  I  hope,  if  there  are  Qua- 
kers, who  mix  the  sale  of  objectionable  with  that 
of  the  other  articles  of  their  trade,  it  is  because 
they  have  entered  into  this  mixed  business,  with- 
out their  usual  portion  of  thought,  or  that  the  oc- 
cupation itself  has  never  come  as  an  improper  oc- 
cupation before  their  minds. 

Upon  the  whole,  it  must  be  stated  that  it  is 
wholly  owing  to  the  more  than  ordinary  profes- 
sions of  the  Quakers,  as  a  religious  body,  that  the 
charges  in  question  have  been  exhibited  against 
such  individuals  among  them,  as  have  been  found 
in   particular  trades.     If  other  people  had  b^en 

VOL.  II.  K 


6'6  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

found  in  Ihe  same  callings,  the  same  blemishes 
would  not  have  been  so  apparent.  And  if  others 
had  been  found  in  the  same  callings,  and  it  had 
been  observed  of  these,  that  they  had  made  all  the 
beautiful  regulations  which  I  have  shown  the  Qua- 
kers to  have  done  on  the  subject  of  trade,  these, 
blemishes  would  have  been  removed  from  the  usu- 
al range  of  the  human  vision.  They  would  have 
been  like  the  spots  in  the  sun's  disk,  which  are 
hid  from  the  observation  of  the  human  eye,  be- 
cause they  are  lost  in  the  superior  beauty  of  its 
blaze.  But  when  the  Quakers  have  been  looked 
at  solely  as  Quakers,  or  as  men  of  high  religious 
profession,  these  blemishes  have  become  conspicu- 
ous. The  moon,  when  it  eclipses  the  sun,  appears 
as  a  blemish  in  the  body  of  that  luminary.  So  a 
public  departure  from  publicly  professed  princi- 
ples will  always  be  noticed,  because  it  will  be  an 
excrescence  or  blemish,  too  large  and  protuberant, 
to  be  overlooked  in  the  moral  character. 


PtCUI.IAR   CUSTOMS.  6? 

-  • 

CHAP.  y. 

•Stt/lemefit  of  differences — ':li(akers,  ivJien  (lie}i  differ, 
abstain  from  violence — Xo  inshiuce  of  a  duel — 
George  Fox  prolcsfed  against  going  to  laic,  and 
recommoidcd  arlalrafion — Laics  relative  to  arbi- 
tration— Jccount  of  an  arbitration-society,  at 
Newcastle  upon  Tyne,  on  ^Quaker-principles — Its 
dissolution — Such  societies  might  be  usefnIJy  pro- 
moted. 


JVIen  are  so  constituted  by  nature,  and  their  mu- 
tual intercourse  is  such,  that  circumstances  must 
unavoidably  arise,  vviiich  will  occasion  difterences. 
These  differences  will  occasionally  rouse  the  pas- 
sions ;  and,  after  all,  they  w  ill  still  be  to  be  settled. 
The  Quakers,  like  other  men,  have  their  differen- 
ces. But  you  rarely  see  any  disturbance  of  the 
temper  on  this  account.  You  rarely  hear  intem- 
perate invectives.  You  arc  witness  to  no  blows. 
If  in  the  courts  of  law  you  have  never  seen  their 
characters  stained  by  convictions  for  a  breach  of 
the  marriage-contract,  or  the  crime  of  adultery; 
so  neither  have  you  seen  them  disgraced  by  con- 
victions for  brutal  violence,  or  that  most  barbar- 
ous of  all  Gothic  customs,  the  duel. 


68  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

It  is  a  lamentable  fact,  when  we  consider  that 
we  live  in  an  age,  removed  above  eighteen  hundred 
years  from  the  first  promulgation  of  Christianity, 
one  of  the  great  objects  of  which  was  to  insist  upon 
the  subjugation  of  the  passions,  that  our  children 
should  not  have  been  better  instructed,  than  that 
we  should  now  have  to  behold  men,  of  apparent- 
ly good  education,  settling  their  disputes  by  an 
appeal  to  arms.  It  is  difficult  to  conceive  what 
preposterous  principles  can  actuate  men,  to  in- 
duce them  to  such  a  mode  of  decision.  Justice  is 
the  ultimate  wish  of  every  reasonable  man  in  the 
termination  of  his  casual  differences  with  others. 
But,  in  the  determination  of  cases  by  the  sword, 
the  injured  man  not  unfrequentiy  falls,  while  the 
aggressor  sometimes  adds  to  his  olfence,  by  mak- 
ing a  widow  or  an  orphan,  and  by  the  murder  of 
of  a  felloAv-creature.  But  it  is  possible  the  duellist 
may  conceive  that  he  adds  to  his  reputation  by 
decisions  of  this  sanguinary  nature.  But  surely 
he  has  no  other  reputation  with  good  men,  than 
that  of  a  weak,  or  a  savage,  or  an  infatuated  crea- 
ture; and,  if  he  falls,  he  is  pitied  by  these  on  no 
other  motive  than  that  of  his  folly  and  of  his 
crime.  Wiiat  philosopher  can  extol  his  courage, 
who,  knowing  the  bondage  of  the  mind  while  un- 
der the  dominion  of  fashion,  believes  that  more 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  (39 

coura.i?e  is  necessary  in  refusing  a  ehallcngo,  tlian 
in  going  into  the  field  ?  Wluit  legislator  ean  ap- 
pland  his  patriotism,  when  he  sees  him  violate  the 
laws  of  his  country  ?  What  Christian  his  religion, 
when  he  relleets  on  tlio  relative  duties  of  man,  on 
the  law  of  love  and  benevolence  that  should  have 
guided  him,  on  the  principle  that  it  is  more  noble 
to  suller  than  to  resist,  and  on  the  cireumstaiK^e, 
that  he  may  put  himself  into  the  doubly  criminal 
situation  of  a  nmrderer  and  a  suicide  by  the  same 
act? 

George  Fox,  in  his  doctrine  of  the  influence  of 
the  spirit  as  a  divine  teacher,  and  in  that  of  the 
necessity  of  the  subjugation  of  the  passions  in  or- 
der that  the  inward  man  might  be  in  a  fit  state  to 
receive  its  admonitions,  left  to  the  society  a  sys- 
tem of  education,  which,  if  acted  upon,  could  not 
fail  of  producing  peaceable  and  quiet  characters; 
but  foreseeing  that  among  the  best  men  differen- 
ces would  unavoidably  arise  from  their  intercourse 
'in  business  and  other  causes,  it  was  his  desire 
that  these  should  be  settled  in  a  Christian  manner. 
He  advised  therefore  that  no  member  should  ap- 
peal to  law;  but  that  he  should  refer  his  diflerence 
to  arbitration,  by  persons  of  exemplary  character 
in  the  society.  This  mode  of  decision  appeared  to 
him  to  be  consistent  with  the  spirit  of  Christianity, 


70  PECULIAR    CUSTOMS. 

and  with  the  advice  of  the  a})ostle  Paul,  who  re- 
commended that  all  the  differences  among  the 
Christians  of  his  ovvn  time  should  be  referred  to 
the  decision  of  the  saints,  or  of  such  other  Chris- 
tians, as  were  eminent  for  their  lives  and  conver- 
sation. 

This  mode  of  decision,  which  began  to  take 
place  among  the  Quakers  in  the  time  of  George 
Fox,  has  been  continued  by  them  to  the  present 
day.  Cases,  where  property  is  concerned  to  the 
amount  of  many  tliousands,  are  determined  in  no 
other  manner.  By  this  process  the  Quakers  ob- 
tain their  verdicts  in  a  way  peculiarly  satisfac- 
tory. For  law-suits  are  at  best  tedious.  They 
often  destroy  brotherly  love  in  the  individuals, 
while  they  continue.  They  excite  also,  during 
this  time,  not  unfrequently,  a  vindictive  spirit, 
and  lead  to  family-feuds  and  quarrels.  They  agi- 
tate the  mind  also,  hurt  the  temper,  and  disquali- 
fy a  man  for  the  proper  exercise  of  his  devotion. 
Add  to  this,  that  the  expenses  of  law  are  frequent- 
ly so  great,  that  burthens  are  imposed  upon  men 
for  matters  of  little  consequence,  which  they  feel 
as  evils  and  incumbrances  for  a  portion  of  their 
lives;  burthens  which  guilt  alone,  and  which  no 
indiscretion,  could  have  merited.  Hence  the  Qua- 
kers experience  advantages  in  the  settlement  of 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  71 

their  difTerences,  which  are  known  but  to  few 
others. 

Tlie  Quakers,  when  any  difference  arises  about 
things  tliat  are  not  of  serious  moment,  generally 
settle  it  amicably  between  themselves;  but  in 
matters  that  are  intricate  and  of  weighty  concern, 
thev  have  recourse  to  arbitration.  If  it  should 
happen,  that  they  are  slow  in  proceeding  to  arbi- 
tration, overseers,  or  any  others  of  the  society, 
who  may  come  to  the  knowledge  of  the  circum- 
stance, are  to  step  in  and  to  offer  their  advice. 
If  their  advice  is  rejected,  complaint  is  to  be  made 
to  their  own  monthly  meeting  concerning  them ; 
after  which  they  will  come  under  the  discipline 
of  the  society,  and  if  they  still  persist  in  refusing 
to  settle  their  differences  or  to  proceed  to  arbitra- 
tion, they  may  be  disowned.  I  may  mention 
here,  that  any  member  going  to  law  with  another, 
without  having  previously  tried  to  accommodate 
matters  between  them  according  to  the  rules  of 
the  society,  comes  under  the  discipline  in  like 
manner. 

When  arbitration  is  determined  on,  the  Quakers 
are  enjoined  to  apply  to  persons  of  their  own  so- 
ciety to  decide  the  case.  It  is  considered,  how- 
ever, as  desirable,  that  they  should  not  trouble 
their  ministers,  if  they  can  help  it,  on  the«e  oc- 


72  PECULI/VR   CUSTOMS. 

casions,  as  the  minds  of  these  ought  to  be  drawn 
out  as  little  as  possible  into  worldly  concerns. 
If  Quakers,  however,  should  not  find  among  Qua- 
kers such  as  they  would  choose  to  emply  for  these 
purposes,  or  such  as  may  not  possess  skill  in  re- 
gard to  the  matter  in  dispute,  they  may  apply  to 
others  out  of  the  society,  sooner  than  go  to  law. 

The  following  is  a  concise  statement  of  the  rules 
recommended  by  the  society,  in  the  case  of  arbi- 
trations. 

Each  party  is  to  choose  one  or  two  friends  as 
arbitrators,  and  all  the  persons,  so  chosen,  are  to 
agree  upon  a  third  or  a  fifth.  The  arbitrators  are 
not  to  consider  themselves  as  advocates  for  the  par- 
ty by  whom  they  were  chosen,  but  as  men,  whose 
duty  it  is  to  judge  righteously,  fearing  the  Lord. 
The  parties  are  to  enter  into  engagements  to  abide 
by  the  award  of  the  arbitrators.  Every  meeting 
of  the  arbitrators  is  to  be  made  known  to  the  par- 
ties concerned,  till  they  have  been  fully  heard. 
No  private  meetings  are  allowed  between  some 
of  the  arbitrators,  or  with  one  party  separate  from 
the  other,  on  the  business  referred  to  them.  No 
representation  of  the  case  of  one  party,  either  by 
writing  or  otherwise,  is  to  be  admitted,  without 
its  being  fully  made  known  to  the  other  ;  and,  if 
required,  a  copy  of  such  representation  is  to  be 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  73 

delivered  to  the  other  party.  The  arbitrators  are 
to  hear  both  parties  fully,  in  the  presence  of  each 
other,  uhilst  cither  has  any  fresh  matter  to  otVer, 
for  a  time  mutually  limited.  In  the  case  of  any 
doubtful  point  of  hnv,  the  arbitrators  arc  jointly 
to  agree  upon  a  rase,  and  consult  counsel.  It  is 
recommended  to  arbitrators  to  propose  to  the  par- 
ties, that  they  should  give  an  acknowledgment 
in  writing,  before  the  award  is  made,  that  they 
have  been  candidly  and  fully  heard. 

In  the  same  manner  as  a  Quaker  proceeds  with 
a  Quaker  in  the  case  of  any  difference,  he  is  led 
by  his  education  and  habits  to  proceed  with 
others,  Avho  are  not  members  of  the  same  society. 
A  Quaker  seldom  goes  to  law  with  a  person  of 
another  denomination,  till  he  has  proposed  arbi- 
tration. If  the  proposal  be  not  accepted,  the 
Quaker  has  then  no  remedy  but  the  law.  For  a 
person,  who  is  out  of  the  society,  cannot  be  oblig- 
ed upon  pain  of  disovvnraent,  as  a  Quaker  may,  to 
submit  to  such  a  mode  of  decision,  being  out  of 
the  reach  of  the  Quaker-discipline, 

I  shall  close  my  observations  upon  this  subject, 
by  giving  an  account  of  an  institution  for  the  ac- 
commodation of  differences,  which  took  place  in 
the  year  1793,  upon  Quaker  principles. 

In  the  town  of  Newcastle  upon  Tyne,  a  num- 

VOL.  II.  J^ 


*74  FtCULlAU  CUSTOMS. 

ber  of  disputes  were  continually  arising  on  the 
subject  of  shipping  concerns,  which  were  referred 
to  the  decision  of  the  laws.  These  decisions  were 
often  grievously  expensive.  They  were,  besides, 
frequently  different  from  what  sea-faring  persons 
conceived  to  be  just.  The  latter  circumstance 
was  attributed  to  the  ignorance  of  lawyers  in  ma- 
ritime affairs.  Much  money  was  therefore  often 
expended,  and  no  one  satisfied.  Some  Quakers, 
in  the  neighbourhood,  in  conjunction  with  others, 
came  forward  with  a  view  of  obviating  these  evils. 
They  proposed  arbitration  as  a  remedy.  They 
met  with  some  opposition  at  first,  but  principally 
from  the  gentlemen  of  the  law.  After  having, 
however,  shown  the  impropriety  of  many  of  the 
legal  verdicts  that  had  been  given,  they  had  the 
pleasure  of  seeing  their  plan  publicly  introduced 
and  sanctioned.  For  in  the  month  of  June,  1793, 
a  number  of  gentlemen,  respectable  for  their  know- 
ledge in  mercantile  and  maritime  affairs,  met  at 
the  Trinity-hall  in  Newcastle,  and  associated  them- 
selves for  these  and  other  purposes,  calling  them- 
selves "  The  Newcastle  upon  Tyne  Association 
for  general  Arbitration." 

This  association  was  to  have  four  general  meet- 
ings in  the  year,  one  in  eiich  quarter,  ;it  wliich 
they  were  to  receive  cases.     For  uuy  uvgent  mat- 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS.  75 

tcr,  however,  uhich  might  occur,  the  clerk  was 
to  have  the  power  of  calling  a  special  meeting. 

Each  person,  on  delivering  a  case,  was  to  pay 
a  small  fee.  Out  of  these  fees  the  clerk's  salary 
and  incidental  expenses  were  to  be  paid.  But  the 
surplus  was  to  be  given  to  the  poor. 

The  parties  were  to  enter  into  arbitration- 
bonds,  as  is  usual  upon  svich  occasions. 

Each  party  was  to  choose  out  of  this  association 
or  standing  committee,  one  arbitrator  for  himself, 
and  the  association  were  to  choose  or  to  ballot 
for  a  third.  And  here  it  will  be  proper  to  observe, 
that  this  standing  association  appeared  to  be  ca- 
pable of  affording  arbitrators  equal  to  the  deter- 
mination of  every  case.  For,  if  the  matter  in  dis- 
pute between  the  two  parties  were  to  happen  to 
be  a  mercantile  question,  there  were  merchants  in 
the  association  :  If  a  question  relative  to  shipping, 
there  were  ship-owners  in  it :  If  a  question  of  in- 
surance, there  were  insurance-brokers  also.  A 
man  could  hardly^fail  of  having  his  case  determin- 
ed by  persons  who  were  competent  to  the  task. 

Though  this  beautiful  institution  was  thus  pub- 
licly introduced,  and  introduced  with  considerable 
expectations  and  applause,  cases  came  in  but 
slowly.  Custom  and  prejudice  are  not  to  be  root- 
ed out  in  a  moment.    In  process  of  time,  however. 


76  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

several  were  offered,  considered,  and  decided,  and 
the  presumption  was,  that  the  institution  would 
have  grown  with  time.  Of  those  cases  which 
were  determined,  some,  relating  to  ships,  were 
found  to  be  particularly  intricate,  and  cost  the  ar- 
bitrators considerable  time  and  trouble.  The 
verdicts,  however,  which  were  given,  were  in  all 
of  them  satisfactory.  The  Institution,  at  length 
became  so  popular,  that,  incredi])le  to  relate,  its 
OAvn  popularity  destroyed  it !  So  many  persons 
were  ambitious  of  the  honour  of  becoming  mem- 
bers of  the  committee,  that  some  of  inferior  know- 
ledge, and  judgment,  and  character,  were  too  has- 
tily admitted  into  it.  The  consequence  was,  that 
people  dared  not  trust  their  affairs  to  the  abilities 
of  every  member  :  aad  the  institution  expired,  af- 
ter having  rendered  important  services  to  nume- 
rous individuals  who  had  tried  it. 

When  we  consider  that  this  institution  has  been 
tried,  and  that  the  scheme  of  it  has  been  found 
practicable,  it  is  a  pity  that  its  benefits  should 
have  been  confined,  and  this  for  so  short  a  period, 
to  a  single  town.  Would  it  not  be  desirable,  if, 
in  every  district,  a  number  of  farmers  were  to  give 
in  their  names  to  form  a  standing  committee,  for 
the  settlement  of  disputes  between  farmer  and 
farmer  ?   or  that  there  should  be  a  similar  institu- 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  77 

tion  among  maniiractiircrs,  who  should  decide  be- 
tween one  manufacturer  and  another  ?  Would  it 
not  also  be  desirable,  if,  in  every  parish,  a  number 
of  gentlemen,  or  other  respectable  persons,  were 
to  associate  for  the  purpose  of  accommodating  the 
dirterences  of  each  other?  For  this  beautiful  sys- 
tem is  capable  of  being  carried  to  any  extent,  and 
of  being  adapted  to  all  stations  and  conditions  of 
life.  By  these  means  numerous  little  funds  might 
be  established  in  numerous  districts,  from  the  sur- 
plus of  which  an  opportunity  would  be  afforded  of 
adding  to  the  comforts  of  such  of  the  poor,  as 
were  to  distinguish  themselves  by  their  good  be- 
haviour, whether  as  labourers  for  farmers,  manu- 
facturers, or  others.  By  these  means  also  many 
of  the  quarrels  in  parishes  might  be  settled  to  the 
mutual  satisfaction  of  the  parties  concerned,  and, 
in  so  short  a  space  of  time,  as  to  prevent  them  from 
contracting  a  rancorous  and  a  wounding  edge. 
Those,  on  the  other  hand,  who  M-ere  to  assist  in 
these  arbitrations,  would  be  amply  repaid;  for 
they  would  be  thus  giving  an  opportunity  of 
growth  to  the  benevolence  of  their  affections,  and 
they  would  have  the  pleasing  reflection,  that  the 
tendency  of  their  labours  would  be  to  produce 
peace  and  good  will  amongst  men. 


78  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

CHAP.  VI. 

SFXT.  I. 

Management  of  the  poor — Quakers  never  seen  as 
beggars — George  Fox  began  the  provision  for  the 
Quaker-poor — Monthlij  meetings  appoint  overseers 
— Pej'sojis  passed  over  are  to  apply  for  relief- — 
and  the  disorderly  may  receive  it  in  certain  cases 
•^^Manner  of  collecting  for  the  poor — If  burthen- 
some  in  one  monthly  meetings  the  burthen  shared 
by  the  quarterly — Quakers  gain  settlements  by 
m,onthly  meetings y  as  the  other  poor  of  the  kingdom, 
by  parishes. 


JL  HERE  are  iew  parts  of  the  Quaker-constitution, 
that  are  more  worthy  of  commendation,  than  that 
which  relates  to  the  poor.  AH  the  members  of 
this  society  are  considered  as  brethren,  and  as  en- 
titled to  support  from  one  another.  If  our  streets 
and  our  roads  are  infested  by  miserable  objects, 
imploring  our  pity,  no  Quaker  will  be  found 
among  them.  A  Quaker-beggar  would  be  a  phe- 
nomenon in  the  world. 

It  docs  not,  however,  follow  from  this  account. 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  79 

that  there  are  no  poor  Quakers,  or  that  members 
of  this  society  are  not  born  in  a  dependent  state. 
The  truth  is,  that  there  are  poor  as  well  as  rich, 
but  the  wants  of  the  former  are  so  well  provided 
for,  that  they  are  not  publicly  seen,  like  the  wants 
of  others. 

George  Fox,  as  he  was  the  founder  of  the  reli- 
gion of  the  Quakers,  I  mean  of  a  system  of  reno- 
vated Christianity,  so   he  was  the  author  of  the 
beautiful  system  by  which  they  make  a  provision 
ibr  their  poor.     As  a  Christian,  he  considered  the 
poor  of  every  description,  as  members  of  the  same 
family,  but  particularly  those,  who  were  of  the 
^  household  of  faith.    Consistently  with  this  opinion, 
he  advised  the  establishment  of  general  meetino-s 
in  his  own  time,  a  special  part  of  whose  business 
it  was  to  take  due  care  of  the  poor.     These  meet- 
ings excited  at  first  the  vigilance  and  anger  of  the 
magistrates;  but  when  they  came  to  see  the  regu- 
Jations  made  by  the  Quakers,  in  order  that  none 
of  their  poor  might  become  burthensome  to  their 
parishes,  they  went  away— whatever  they  might 
think  of  some  of  their  new  tenets  of  religion—in 
admiration  of  their  benevolence. 

The  Quakers  of  the  jDresent  day  consider  their 
poor  in  the  same  light  as  their  venerable  elder 
namely,  as  members  of  the  same  family,  who5e 
wants  it  is  their  duty  to  relieve;  and  they  provide 


80  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

for  them  nearly  in  the  same  manner.     They  in- 
trust this  important  concern  to  the  monthly  meet- 
ings, which  are  the  executive  branches  of  the  Qua- 
ker constitution.    The  monthly  meetings  general- 
ly appoint  four  overseers,  two  men  and  two  wo- 
men, over  each  particular  meeting  within  their 
own  jurisdiction,  if  their  number  will  admit  of  it. 
It  is  the  duty  of  these,  to  visit  such  of  the  poor  as 
are  in  membership,  of  the  men  to  visit  the  men, 
but  of  the  women  sometimes  to  visit  both.     The 
reason,  why  this  double  burthen  is  laid  upon  the 
women-overseers,  is,  that  women  know  more  of 
domestic  concerns,  more  of  the  wants  of  families, 
more  of  the  manner  of  providing  for  them,  and  are   V^ 
better  advisers,  and  better  nurses  in  sickness,  than  ^ 
the  men.     A\liatever  these  overseers  fnid  wanting    '^ 
in  the  course  of  their  visits,  whether  money,  clothes,    ^ 
medicine,  or  medical  advice  and  attention,  they    :: 
order  them,  and  the  treasurer  of  the  monthly  meet-  ^ 
ings  settles  the  different  accounts.    I  may  observe 
here,  that  it  is  not  easy  for  overseers  to  neglect 
their  duty ;  for  an  inquiry  is  made  three  times  in 
the  year,  of  the  monthly  meetings  by  the  quarter- 
ly, whether  the  necessities  of  the  poor  are  proper- 
ly inspected  and  relieved ^       I  may  observe  also 

e  In  London  a  committee  is  appointed  for  each  poor  person.  Thus,  for 
example,  two  women  are  appointed  to  attend  to  the  wants  and  comfort  of 
one  poor  old  wsman. 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  81 

that  the  poor,  wlio  may  stand  in  need  of  relief,  are 
always  relieved  privately,  1  mean,  at  their  respec- 
tive homes. 

It  is  however  possible,  that  there  may  be  per- 
sons, who,  from  a  variety  of  unlooked  for  eauses, 
may  be  brought  into  distress,  and  whose  case,  ne- 
ver having  been  suspected,  may  be  passed  over. 
But  persons,  in  this  situation,  are  desired  to  apply 
for  assistance.  It  is  also  a  rule  in  the  society, 
that  even  persons  whose  conduct  is  disorderly, 
aie  to  be  relieved,  if  such  conduct  has  not  been 
objected  to  by  their  own  monthly  meeting.  "  The 
want  of  due  care,  says  the  book  of  Extracts,  in 
■*^'*  watching  diligently  over  the  (lock,  and  in  dealing 
in  due  time  with  such  as  walk  disorderly,  hath 
brought  great  difficulties  on  some  meetings;  for 
we  think  it  both  unreasonable  and  dishonourable, 
when  persons  apply  to  monthly  meetings  for  re- 
lief in  cases  of  necessity,  then  to  object  to  them 
such  otfences  as  the  meeting,  through  neglect  of 
its  own  duty,  hath  suffered  long  to  pass  by,  un- 
reproved  and  unnoticed." 

The  poor  are  supported  by  charitable  collections 
from  the  body  at  large;  or,  in  other  words,  every 
monthly  meeting  supports  its  own  poor.  The  col- 
lections for  them  are  usually  made  once  a  month, 
but  in  some  places  once  a  quarter,  and  in  others 

VOL.    II.  M 


82  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

at  no  stated  times  but  when  the  treasurer  declares 
them  necessary,  and  the  monthly  meeting  ap- 
proves. Members  are  expected  to  contribute  in 
proportion  to  their  circumstances;  but  persons  in 
a  low  situation,  and  servants,  are  generally  excus- 
ed upon  these  occasions. 

It  happens  in  the  districts  of  some  monthly  meet- 
ings, that  there  are  found  only  few  persons  of 
property,  but  a  numerous  poor,  so  that  the  former 
are  unable  to  do  justice  in  their  provision  for  the 
latter.  The  society  have  therefore  resolved,  when 
the  poor  are  too  numerous  to  be  •  supported  by 
their  own  monthly  meetings,  that  the  collection 
for  them  shall  be  made  up  out  of  the  quarterly 
meeting,  to  which  the  said  monthly  meeting  be- 
longs. This  is  the  same  thing  as  if  any  particu- 
lar parish  were  unable  to  pay  the  rates  for  the 
poor,  and  as  if  all  the  other  parishes  in  the  county 
were  made  to  contribute  towards  the  same. 

On  this  subject  I  may  observe,  that  the  Quaker- 
poor  are  attached  to  their  monthly  meetings,  as 
the  common  poor  of  the  kingdom  are  attached  to 
their  parishes,  and  that  they  gain  settlements  in 
these  nearly  in  the  same  manner. 


PECULIAR  CUSTOMS;  83 


SECT.  ir. 

Education  of  the  children  of  the  poor  particularlj/  in- 
sisted upon  and  provided  for  by  tJie  Quakers — The 
boys  usuatlif  put  out  to  apprenticeship — The  girls 
to  service — The  latter  not  sujicienfli/  numerous  for 
the  Quaker-families y  who  want  them — The  rich 
have  not  their  proper  proportion  of  these  in  their 
service — Reasom  of  it — Character  of  the  Quaker- 
poor. 


/Vs  the  Quakers  are  particularly  attentive  to  the 
wants  of  the  poor,  so  they  are  no  less  attentive  to 
the  education  of  their  offspring.  These  are  all  of 
them  to  receive  their  education  at  the  public  ex- 
pense. The  same  overseers,  as  in  the  former 
case,  are  to  take  care  of  it,  and  the  same  funds  to 
support  it.  An  inquiry  is  therefore  made  three 
times  in  the  year  into  this  subject.  "  The  chil- 
dren of  the  poor,  says  the  book  of  Extracts,  are  to 
have  due  help  of  education,  instruction,  and  ne- 
cessary learning.  The  families  also  of  the  poor 
are  to  be  provided  with  Bibles,  and  books  of  the 
society,  at  the  expense  of  the  monthly  meetings. 
And  as  sonie  members  may  be  straitened  in  their 


84  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS. 

circumstances,  and  may  refuse,  out  of  delicacy,  to 
a}3})ly  for  aid  towards  the  education  of  their  chil- 
dren, it  is  earnestly  recommended  to  friends  in 
every  monthly  meeting,  to  look  out  for  persons 
who  may  be  thus  straitened,  and  to  take  care  that 
their  children  shall  receive  instruction  :  and  it  is 
recommended  to  the  parents  of  such,  not  to  re- 
fuse this  salutary  aid,  but  to  receive  it  with  a  wil- 
ling mind,  and  with  thankfulness  to  the  great  au- 
thor of  all  good." 

When  the  boys  have  received  their  necessary 
learning,  they  are  usually  put  out  as  apprentices  to 
husbandry  or  trade.     Domestic  service  is  general- 
ly considered  by  their  parents  as  unmanly,  and  as 
a  nursery  for  idleness.      Boys  too,  who  can  read 
and  write,  ought  to  expect,  with  the  accustomed 
diligence  and  sobriety  of  Quakers,  to  arrive  at  a 
better  situation  in  life.     The  girls,  however,  are 
destined  in  general  for  service  :  for  it  must  be  ob- 
vious, whatever  their  education  may  be,  that  the 
same  number  of  employments  is  not  open  to  wo- 
men as  to  men.     Of  those  again,  which  are  open, 
some  are  objectionable.     A  Quaker-girl,  for  ex- 
ample, could  not  consistently  be  put  an  apprentice 
to  a  Milliner.     Neither  if  a  cotton-manufactory 
were   in  the    neighbourhood,  could   her  parents 
send  her  to  such  a  nursery  of  debauchery  and 


PECULIAR   CUSTOMS.  85 

vice.  From  tliosv.^  and  other  considerations,  and 
because  domestic  employments  belong  to  women, 
their  parents  generally  think  it  advisable  to  l>iing 
them  up  to  service,  and  to  place  them  in  the  i'a- 
mdies  of  friends. 

It  is  a  remarkable  circnmstancc,  when  we  con- 
sider it  to  be  recommended  that  Quaker-masters 
of  families  should  take  Quaker-servants,  that  per- 
sons of  the  latter  description  are  not  to  be  found 
sudicieuily  numerous  for  those  who  w^ant  them. 
This  is  probably  a  proof  of  the  thriving  situation 
of  this  society.  It  is  remarkable  again,  that  the 
rich  have  b\^  no  means  their  proportion  of  such 
servants.  Those  of  the  wealthy,  who  are  exem- 
plary, get  them  if  they  can.  Others  decline  their 
services.  Of  these,  some  do  it  from  good  motives  ; 
for,  knowing  that  it  would  be  dilRcult  to  make  up 
their  complement  of  servants  from  the  society, 
they  do  not  wish  to  break  in  upon  the  customs  and 
morals  of  those  belonging  to  it,  by  mixing  them 
with  others.  The  rest,  who  mix  more  with  the 
world,  are,  as  I  have  been  informed,  fearful  of  hav- 
ing them,  lest  they  should  be  overseers  of  their 
words  and  manners.  For  it  is  in  the  essence  of  the 
Quaker-discipline,  as  I  observed  upon  that  subject, 
that  every  member  should  watch  over  another  for 
liis  good.  There  are  no  exceptions  as  to  persons. 
The  servant  has  as  much  right  to  watch  over  his 
master  with  respect  to  his  religious  conduct  and 


86  PECULIAR   CUSTOMS, 

conversation,  as  the  master  over  his  servant ;  and 
he  lias  also  a  right,  if  his  master  violates  the  dis- 
cipline, to  speak  to  him,  in  a  respectful  manner, 
for  so  doing.  Nor  would  a  Quaker-servant,  if  he 
were  well  grounded  in  the  principles  of  the  socie- 
ty, and  felt  it  to  be  his  duty,  want  the  courage  to 
speak  his  mind  upon  such  occasions.  There  have 
been  instances,  where  this  has  happened,  and 
where  the  master,  in  the  true  spirit  of  his  religion^ 
has  not  felt  himself  insulted  by  such  interference, 
but  has  looked  upon  his  servant  afterwards  a« 
more  worthy  of  his  confidence  and  esteem.  Such 
a  right,  however,  of  remonstrance,  is,  I  presume, 
but  rarely  exercised. 

I  cannot  conclude  this  subject  without  saying  a 
few  words  on  the  character  of  the  Quaker-poor. 

In  the  first  place  I  may  observe,  that  one  of  the 
great  traits  in  their  character  is  independence  of 
mind.  When  you  converse  with  them,  you  find 
them  attentive,  civil,  and  obliging,  but  you  see  no 
marks  of  servility  about  them,  and  you  hear  no 
flattery  from  their  lips.  It  is  not  the  custom  in 
this  society,  even  for  the  poorest  member  to  bow 
or  pull  ofi'  his  hat,  or  to  observe  any  outward 
obeisance  to  another,  who  may  happen  to  be  rich. 
Such  customs  are  forbidden  to  all  on  religious 
principle.  In  consequence,  therefore,  of  the  omis^ 
sion  of  such  ceremonious  practices,  his  mind  has 
never  been  made  to  bend  on  the  approach  of  su- 


PECULUR  CUSTOMS.  87 

perior  rank.  Nor  has  he  seen,  in  his  own  society, 
any  thing  that  could  lessen  his  own  importance 
or  dignity  as  a  man.  lie  is  admitted  into  the 
meetings  of  discipline  equally  with  the  rich.  He 
has  a  voice  equally  with  ihem  in  all  matters  that 
are  agitated  there.  From  these  causes  a  manliness 
of  mind  is  produced,  which  is  not  seen  among 
any  other  of  the  poor  in  the  island  in  which  we 
live. 

It  may  also  be  mentioned  as  a  second  trait,  that 
the}'^  possess  extraordinary  knowledge.  Every 
Quaker-boy  or  girl,  who  comes  into  the  world, 
must,  however  poor,  if  the  discipline  of  the  society 
be  kept  up,  receive  an  education.  All,  therefore, 
who  are  born  in  the  society,  must  be  able  to  read 
and  write.  Thus  the  keys  of  knowledge  are  put 
into  their  hands.  Hence  we  fnid  them  attaining  a 
superior  literal  and  historical  knowledge  of  the 
scriptures,  a  superior  knowledge  of  human  nature, 
and  a  knowledge  that  sets  them  above  many  of  the 
superstitions  of  those  in  their  own  rank  in  life. 

Another  trait  conspicuous  in  the  character  of 
the  Quaker-poor,  is  the  morality  of  their  lives. 

This  circumstance  may  easily  be  accounted  for. 
For,  in  the  first  place,  they  are  hindered  in  com- 
mon with  other  Quakers,  by  means  of  their  disci- 
pline, from  doing  many  things,  that  arc  morally 
injurious  to  themselves.  The  poor  of  the  world 
are  addicted  to  profane  swearing.      But  no  per- 


88  PECULIAR  CUSTOMS. 

son  can  bring  the  name  of  the  creator  of  the  Uni- 
verse into  frequent  and  ordinary  use,  without 
losing  a  sense  of  the  veneration  that  is  due  to  him. 
The  poor  of  the  world,  again,  frequently  spend 
their  time  in  public  houses.  They  fight  and  quar- 
rel with  one  another.  They  run  after  horse- 
racings,  bull-baitings,  cock-fightings,  and  the  still 
more  unnatural  battles  between  man  and  man. 
But,  by  encouraging  such  habits,  they  cannot  but 
obstruct  in  time,  the  natural  risings  of  benevo- 
lence both  towards  their  fellow-creatures  and  to 
those  of  the  animal  creation.  Nor  can  they  do 
otherwise  than  lose  a  sense  of  the  dignity  of  their 
own  minds,  and  weaken  the  moral  principle.  But 
the  Quaker-poor,  who  are  principled  against  such 
customs,  can  of  course  suffer  no  moral  injury  on 
these  accounts.  To  which  it  may  be  added,  that 
their  superior  knowledge  both  leads  and  attaches 
them  to  a  superior  conduct.  It  is  a  falj>e,  as  well 
as  a  barbarous  maxim,  and  a  maxim  very  injuri- 
ous both  to  the  interests  of  the  rich  and  poor,  as 
well  as  of  the  states  to  which  they  belong,  that 
knowledge  is  unpropitious  to  virtue. 


RELIGION 


OF  THB 


QUAKERS. 


VOL.  II. 


RELIGION 


OF 


THE   (QUAKERS. 


INTRODUCTION. 

Religion  of  the  Quakers— Invitation  to  a  patient  pe- 
rusal of  this  part  of  the  ivork — No  design,  by  this 
invitation^  to  proselyte  to ^Quakerism-^AU  systems 
of  Religion,  that  are  founded  on  the  principles  of 
Christianitij,  are  capable,  if  heartily  embraced,  of 
producing  present  and  future  happiness  to  man — 
No  censure  of  another  s  Creed  zvarrantable,  inas- 
much as  the  human  understanding  is  finite — Ob- 
ject of  this  Invitation. 


flAVlNG  explained  very  difTusively  the  great 
subjects,  the  moral  Education,  Discipline,  and  Pe- 
culiar Customs,  of  the  Quakers,  I  purpose  to  allot 
the  remaining  part  of  this  volume  to  the  considern 
ation  of  their  religion.     ♦ 

I  know  that  persons,  uho  arc  religiously  dii> 


9S  RELIGION. 

posed  will  follow  me  patiently  through  this  divi- 
sion of  my  work,  not  only  because  religion  is  the 
most  important  of  all  subjects  that  can  be  agitated, 
but  because,  in  the  explanation  of  the  religious 
systems  of  others,  some  light  may  arise,  which, 
though  it  be  not  new  to  all,  may  yet  be  new  and 
acceptable  to  many.  I  am  aware,  however,  that 
there  are  some  who  direct  their  reading  to  light 
subjects,  and  to  whom  such  as  are  serious  may 
appear  burthensome.  If  any  such  should  have 
been  induced,  by  any  particular  motive,  to  take 
this  book  into  their  hands,  and  to  accompany  me 
thus  far,  I  entreat  a  continuation  of  their  patience, 
till  I  have  carried  them  through  the  different  parts 
and  divisions  of  the  present  sabject. 

I  have  no  view,  in  thus  soliciting  the  attention 
of  those  who  are  more,  or  of  those  who  are  less 
religiousl}^  disposed,  to  attempt  to  proselyte  to 
Quakerism.  If  men  do  buj;  fear  God,  and  work 
righteousness,  whatever  their  Christian  denomina- 
tion may  be,  it  is  sufficient.  Every  system  of  re- 
ligion  which  is  founded  on  the  principles  of  Chris- 
tianity, must  be  capable,  if  heartily  embraced,  of 
producing  temporal  and  eternal  happiness  to  man. 
At  least,  man  with  his  limited  understanding, 
cannot  pronounce  with  an}'  absolute  certainty, that 
his  own  system  is  so  far  prefera])le  to  that  of  his 


RELIGION.  93 

neighbour,  that  it  is  positively  the   brst,  or  tluit 
there  will  be  any  material  iliiVerencc  in  the  fsitiire 
happiness  of  those  who  follow  the  one   or   the 
other  ;    or  that  the  pnre  professors  of  each  shall 
not  have  their   peculiar  rewards.     The  truth  is, 
that  each  system  has  its  own  merits.      Each  em- 
braces great  and  sublime  objects.     And  if  good 
men  have  existed,  as  none  can  reasonal)ly  deny, 
before  Christianity  was  known,  it  would  be  a  libel 
on  Christianity,  to  suppose  either  that  good  men 
had  not  existed  since,  or  that   good  Christians 
would  not  be  ultimately  happy,  though  following- 
systems  differing  from  those  of  one  another.     In- 
deed, every  Christian  community  has  a  great  deal 
to  say  in  the  defence  of  its  own  tenets.      Almost 
all  Christian  churches  have  produced  great  cha- 
racters ;    and  there  are  none,  I  should  hope,  that 
had  not  been  the  authors  of  religious  good.     The 
church  of  England,  in  attempting  to  purify  her- 
self at  the  reformation,  effected  a  great  work. 
Since  that  time  she  has  produced  at  different  pe- 
riods, and  continues  to  produce,  both  great  and 
good  men.      By  means  of  her  Universities,  she 
has  given  forth,  and  keeps  up  and  disseminates,  a 
ronsiderable  portion  of  knowledge j  and  though 
this,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  is  not  neces- 
sary for  those  who  are  to  become  ministers  of  the 


94.  RELIGION. 

Gospel,  it  cannot  be  denied  that  k  is  a  source  of 
temporary  happiness  to  man  ;  tliat  it  enlarges  the 
scope  of  his  raiional  and  moral  understanding, 
and  that  it  leads  to  great  and  sublime  discoveries, 
which  become  eminently  beneficial  to  mankind. 
Since  that  time  she  has  also  been  an  instrument  of 
spreading  over  this  kingdom  a  great  portion  of 
religious  light,  which  has  had  its  influence  in  the 
production  of  moral  character. 

But  though  1  bestow  this  encomium  upon  the 
established  church,  I  should  be  chargeable  with 
partiality  and  injustice,  if  I  were  not  to  allow,  that 
■among  the  dissenters  of  various  descriptions, 
learned,  pious,  and  great  men,  had  been  regularly 
and  successively  produced.  And  it  must  be  con- 
fessed, and  reflected  upon  with  pleasure,  that 
these,  in  proportion  to  their  numbers,  have  been 
no  less  instrumental  in  the  dissemination  of  reli- 
gious knowledge,  and  in  the  production  of  reli- 
gious conduct.  I  might  go  to  large  and  populous 
towns  and  villages  in  the  kingdom,  and  fully 
prove  my  assertion  in  the  reformed  manners  of 
the  poor,  many  of  whom,  before  these  pious  vi- 
sitations, had  been  remarkable  for  the  profaneness 
of  their  lives. 

Let  us  then  not  talk  l>ut  w  ith  great  deference 
and  humility;  with  great  tenderness  and  charity; 


RELIGION.  95 

with  great  thanktulness  to  the  author  of  every 
good  gift, — when  we  speak  of  the  ditferent  s\^s- 
tems  that  actuate  the  Christian  World.  Wliy 
should  we  consider  our  neigfdjour  as  an  alien, 
and  load  him  with  reproaches,  because  he  happens 
to  differ  from  us  in  opinion  about  an  article  of 
faith  ?  As  long  as  there  are  men,  so  long  will  there 
be  different  measures  of  talents  and  understand- 
ing; and  so  long  will  they  view  things  in  a  differ- 
ent light,  and  come  to  different  conclusions  con- 
cerning them.  The  eye  of  one  man  can  see  farther 
than  that  of  another  :  So  can  the  human  mind,  on 
the  subject  of  speculative  truths.  This  consider- 
ation should  teach  us  humility  and  forbearance 
in  judging  of  the  religion  of  others.  For  who  is 
he,  who  can  say  that  he  sees  the  farthest,  or  that 
his  own  system  is  the  best  ?  If  such  men  as  Mil- 
ton, Whiston,  Boyle,  Locke,  and  Newton,  all 
agreeing  in  the  profession  of  Christianity,  did  not 
all  think  precisely  alike  concerning  it,  who  art 
thou,  with  thy  inferior  capacity,  who  settest  up 
the  standard  of  thine  own  judgment  as  infallible  ? 
If  thou  sendest  thy  neighbour  to  perdition  in  the 
other  world,  because  he  does  not  agree  in  his  creed 
with  thee,  know  that  he  judges  according  to  the 
best  of  his  abilities,  and  that  no  more  will  be  re- 
quired  of  him.       Know    also  that  thou  thyself 


96  RELIGION. 

judgest  like  a  worm  of  the  earth  j  that  thou  dis- 
honourest  the  Ahnighty  by  thy  reptile  notions  of 
him;  and  that  in  making  him  accord  with  thee  in 
condemning  one  of  his  creatures  for  what  thou 
conceivest  to  be  the  misunderstanding  of  a  spe- 
culative proposition,  thou  treattjst  him  like  a  man, 
as  thou  thyself  art,  with  corporeal  organs  ;  with  ir- 
ritable passions,  and  with  a  limited  intelligence. 
But  if,  besides  this,  thou  condemnest  thy  neigh- 
bour in  this  world  also,  and  feelest  the  spirit  of 
persecution  towards  him,  know  that,  whatever  thy 
pretensions  may  be  to  religion,  thou  art  not  a 
Christian.  Thou  art  not  possessed  of  that  charity 
or  love,  vvitho^it  which  thou  art  but  as  sounding 
brass  and  a  tinkling  cymbal. 

Having  therefore  no  religious  prejudices  ^  my- 
self, except  in  favour  of  Christianity;^,  and  holding 
no  communion  with  the  Quakers,  as  a  religious 
society,  it  cannot  be  likely  that  I  should  attempt 
to  proselyte  to  Quakerism.  I  wish  only,  as  I  stat- 
ed in  my  introduction  to  this  work,  to  make  the 
Quakers  better  known  to  their  countrymen  than 
they  are  at  present.     In  this  I  think  I  have  already 

f  Though  I  conceive  a  charitable  allowance  ought  to  be  made  for  the  di- 
versity of  religious  opinious  among  christians,  1  by  -o  leans  intend  to  say, 
that  it  is  not  our  duty  to  value  the  system  of  opinion  which  we  think  moSt:- 
consonant  to  the  Gospel,  and  to  be  wisely  zealous  f»r  its  support, 


RELIGION.  97 

succeeded,  for  I  believe  I  have  coQ^municated  ma- 
ny facts  concerning  them,  which  have  never  been 
related  by  others.  But  no  people  can  be  tho- 
roughly known,  or  at  least  the  character  of  a  peo- 
ple cannot  be  thoroughly  understood,  except  we 
are  acquainted  with  their  religion;  much  less  can 
that  of  the  Quakers,  who  dilfer  so  materially,  both 
in  their  appearance  and  practice,  from  the  rest  of 
their  fellow-citizens. 

Having  thought  it  right  to  make  these  prefato- 
ry observations,  I  proceed  to  the  prosecution  of 
jaay  work. 


VQL.  II.  O 


^8  RELIGION. 


CHAP.  I. 


The  Almighty  created  the  Universe  by  meani  of  his 
spirit — and  also  man- — He  gave  man,  besides  his 
intellect,  an  emanation  from  his  own  spirit,  tJius 
making  him  in  his  oivn  image — But  this  image  he 
lost — A  portion,  however,  of  the  same  spirit  ivas 
continued  to  his  posterity — These  possessed  it  iii 
differ e7it  degrees — Abraham,  Moses,  and  the  pro- 
phets, had  more  of  it  than  some  others — Jesus  pos' 
sessed  it  immeasurably,  and  without  limit — Evan- 
gelists and  apostles  possessed  it,  but  in  a  limited 
manner,  and  in  different  degrees* 


1  HE  Quakers  believe,  that  when  the  Ahuighty 
created  the  Universe,  he  effected  it  by  means  of 
the  life,  or  vital  or  vivifying  energy  that  was  in 
his  own  spirit.  "  And  the  earth  was  without  form, 
and  void ;  and  darkness  was  upon  the  face  of  the 
deep  ;  and  the  spirit  of  God  moved  upon  the  fac^ 
of  the  waters." 

This  life  of  the  spirit  has  been  differently  nam- 
ed, but  is  concisely  stiled  by  St.  John  the  evange- 
list "the  wordy  lor  he  says,  "  in  the  beginning- 
was  the  word,  and  the  word  was  with  God,  and 


RELIGION.  9^ 

the  word  was  God.  All  things  were  made  by 
him,  and  without  him  was  not  any  thing  made, 
that  was  made." 

The  Almighty  also,  by  means  of  the  same  di- 
vine energy  or  life  of  the  spirit  which  had  thus 
created  the  universe,  became  the  cause  also  of 
material  life,  and  of  vital  functions.  He  called 
forth  all  animated  nature  Into  existence ;  for  he 
"  made  the  living  creature  after  his  kind." 

He  created  man  also  by  the  same  power.  He 
made  his  corporeal  and  organic  nature.  He  fur- 
nished him  also  with  intellect,  or  a  mental  under- 
standing. By  this  latter  gift  he  gave  to  man, 
what  he  had  not  given  to  other  animated  nature, 
tlie  power  of  reason,  by  which  he  had  the  superi- 
ority over  it,  and  by  means  of  which  he  was  ena- 
bled to  guide  himself  in  his  temporal  concerns. 
Thus  when  he  made  the  natural  man,  he  made 
him  a  rational  agent  also. 

But  he  gave  to  man,  at  the  same  time,  inde- 
pendently of  this  intellect  or  understanding,  a 
spiritual  faculty,  or  a  portion  of  the  life  of  his  own 
spirit,  to  reside  in  him.  This  gift  occasioned 
man  to  become  more  immediately,  as  it  is  expres- 
sed, the  image  of  the  Almighty.  It  set  him  above 
the  animal  and  rational  part  of  his  nature.  It 
made  him  know  things  not  intelligible  solely  by 
his  reagon.     It  made  him  spiritually  minded.     It 


100  RELIGION. 

enabled  him  to  know  his  duty  to  God,  and  to  hold 
a  heavenly  intercourse  with  his  maker. 

Adam  then,  the  first  man,  independently  of  his 
rational  factdties,  received  from  the  Almighty  in- 
to his  own  breast  such  an  emanation  from  the  life 
of  his  own  spirit,  as  was  sufficient  to  have  enabled 
him  both  to  hold,  and  to  have  continued,  a  spirit- 
ual intercourse  with  his  maker,  and  to  have  pre- 
served him  in  the  state  of  innocence  in  which  he 
had  been  created.  As  long  as  he  lived  in  this  di- 
vine light  of  the  spirit,  he  remained  in  the  image 
of  God,  and  was  perfectly  happy;  but,  not  attend- 
ing faithfully  and  perseveringly  to  this  his  spirit- 
ual monitor,  he  fesl  into  the  snares  of  Satan,  or 
gave  way  to  the  temptations  of  sin.  From  this 
moment  his  condition  became  changed.  For  in 
the  same  manner  as  distemper  occasions  animal 
life  to  droop,  and  to  lose  its  powers,  and  finally 
to  cease,  so  unrighteousness,  or  his  rebellion 
against  the  divine  light  of  the  spirit  that  was  with- 
in him,  occasioned  a  dissolution  of  his  spiritual 
feelings  and  percep'ions;  for  he  became  dead  as 
it  were,  in  consequence,  as  to  any  knowledge  of 
God,  or  enjoyrr.ent  of  his  presence^. 

g  It  was  said  that,  in  the  day  in  which  Adam  should  eat  forbidden  fruit, 
he  should  die;  but  he  ctvI  not  lose  his  animal  life,  or  his  3-ational  nature. 
His  loss  therefore  is  usually  considered  by  the  Quakers  to  liave  been  a  di- 
vine spiritual  principle,  which  had  been  originally  superadd'^d  to  the  animal 
end  rational  faculties. 


RELIGION.  101 

It  pleased  the  Almighty,  however,  not  wholly  to 
abandon  him  in  this  wretched  state,  but  he  com- 
forted him  with  the  cheering  promise,  that  the 
seed  of  the  woman  should  some  time  or  other 
completely  subdue  sin,  or  to  use  the  scriptural 
language,  "  should  bruise  the  serpent's  head  j"  or, 
in  other  words,  as  sin  was  of  a  spiritual  nature,  so 
it  could  only  be  overcome  by  a  spiritual  conqueror; 
and  therefore  that  the  same  holy  spirit,  or  word, 
or  divine  principle  of  light  and  life,  which  had 
appeared  in  creation,  should  dwell  so  entirely  and 
without  limit  or  measure,  in  the  person  or  body 
of  some  one  of  his  descendants,  that  sin  should  by 
him  be  entirely  subdued. 

As  God  then  poured  into  Adam,  the  first  man,\ 
a  certain  portion  of  his  own  spirit,  or  gave  him  a 
certain  portion  of  the  divine  light,  for  the  regula-  \ 
tion  of  his  spiritual  conduct  and  the  power  of  hea-  ' 
venly  intercourse  with  himself,  so  he  did  not  en- 
tirely cease  from  bestowing  his  spirit  upon  his 
posterity;  or,  in  other  words,  he  gave  them  a  por- 
tion of  that  light  which  enlighteneth  every  man 
that  Cometh  into  the  world.  Of  the  individuals 
therefore  who  succeeded  Adam,  all  received  a 
portion  of  this  light.  Sojne,  however,  enjojcd  lar- 
ger portions  of  it  than  others,  according  as  they 
attended  to  its  influences,  or  according   to  the 


102  RELIGION. 

measure  given  them.  Of  those  who  possessed 
the  greatest  share  of  it,  some  were  the  ancient  pa- 
triarchs, such  as  Noah  and  Abraham,  and  others 
were  the  ancient  scriptural  writers,  such  as  Moses 
and  the  prophets.  The  latter  again  experienced 
it  in  different  measures  or  degrees;  and  in  prO' 
portion  as  they  liad  it,  they  delivered  more  or 
less  those  prophecies  which  are  usually  considered 
as  inspired  truths,  from  a  belief  that  many  of 
them  have  been  circumstantially  completed. 

At  length,  in  the  fulness  of  time,  that  is,  when 
all  things  had  been  fulfdled  which  were  previously 
to  take  place,  this  divine  spirit  wdiich  had  appear- 
ed in  creation,  this  divine  word,  or  light,  took 
flesh,  (for,  as  St.  John  the  Evangelist  says,  "  the 
word  was  made  flesh,  and  dwelled  among  us,")  and 
inhabited  "  the  body  which  had  been  prepared  for 
it;"  or,  in  other  words,  it  inhabited  the  body  of 
the  person  Jesus;  but  with  this  difference,  that 
whereas  only  a  portion  of  this  divine  light  or  spi- 
rit had  been  given  to  Adam,  and  afterwards  to  the 
prophets,  it  was  given  without  limit  or  measure  to 
the  man  Jesus ^.  "  For  he  whom  God  hath  sent, 
sa^^s  St.  John,  speaketh  the  words  of  God,  fo?'  God 
S^ivcth  not  the  Spirit  by  measure  unto  him."  And  St. 
Paul  says,  ' "  In  him  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead 

h  JoLn  ':■■'■  i  Co!.  2.  9. 


RELIGION.  laO 

dwelled  bodily."  In  him,  therefore,  the  promise 
given  to  Adam  was  accomplished,  "  that  the  seed 
of  the  woman  should  bruise  the  serpent's  head  i" 
for  we  see  in  this  case  a  human  body,  weak  and 
infirm,  and  subject  to  passions,  possessed  or  occu- 
pied, witliout  limit  or  measure,  by  the  spirit  of 
God.  But  if  the  man  Jesus  had  the  full  spirit  of 
God  within  him,  he  could  not  be  otherwise  than 
perfectly  ho\y.  And  if  so,  sin  never  could  have 
entered,  and  must  therefore,  as  far  as  relates  .to 
him,  have  been  entirely  repelled.  Thus  he  answer- 
ed the  prophetic  character  which  had  been  given 
of  him,  independently  of  his  victory  over  sin  by 
the  sacrifice  of  himself,  or  by  becoming  afterwards 
a  comforter  to  those  in  bondage,  who  should  be 
willing  to  receive  him. 

After  Jesus  Christ  came  the  Evangelists  and 
Apostles.  Of  the  same  spirit  which  he  had  pos- 
sessed immeasurabli/y  these  had  their  several  por- 
tions ;  and  though  these  were  ^  limited,  and  differ- 
ed in  degree  from  one  another,  they  were  sufficient 
to  enable  them  to  do  their  duty  to  God  and  men, 
to  enjoy  the  presence  of  the  Almighty,  and  to  pro- 
mote the  purposes  designed  by  him  in  the  propa- 
gation of  his  gospel. 

k  2  Cor.  10.  1?, 


104  RELIGION. 


CHAP.  ir. 


Except  a  7nan  has  a  portion  of  the  same  spirit,  zvhich 
Jesus  and  the  prophets  and  the  apostles  had,  he 
can  have  no  knowledge  of  God' or  spiritual  things 
— Doctrine  of  St.  Paul  on  this  subject — This  con- 
firms the  history  of  the  human  and  divine  spirit  in 
man — These  spirits  distinct  in  their  kind — This 
distinctio7i  farther  elucidated  hy  a  comparison  be- 
tween the  faculties  of  men  and  brutes — Sentiments 
of  Angus  tin — Luther — Calvin — Smith —  Taylor 
— Cudivorth. 


1  HE  Quakers  believe,  that  there  can  be  no  spi- 
ritual knowledge  of  God,  but  through  the  medium 
of  his  holy  spirit;  or,  in  other  words,  that  if  men 
have  not  a  portion  of  the  same  spirit  which  the 
holy  men  of  old,  and  which  the  Evangelists  and 
Apostles,  and  which  Jesus  himself  had,  they  can 
have  no  true  or  vital  religion. 

In  favour  of  this  proposition,  they  usually  quote 
those  remarkable  words  of  the  Apostle  Paul ;  ^ 
"  for  what  man  knoweth  the  things  of  a  man,  save 
the  spirit  of  a  man  which  is  in  him  ?     Even  so  the 

1  1  Cor.  2,  11,  &c 


RELIGION.  10.5 

thin,f;s  of  God  knoweth  no  man,  but  tlic  spirit  of 
Go. I.  Now  we  have  received,  not  tlie  spirit  of  the 
world,  but  the  spirit  which  is  of  God,  that  v\e 
might  know  the  things  tliat  are  freely  given  tons 
of  God."  And  again — "  but  the  natural  man  re- 
ceiveth  not  the  things  of  the  spirit  of  God,  for  they 
are  foolishness  to  him  ;  neither  can  he  know  them., 
because  they  are  spiritually  discerned." 

By  these  expressions  the  Quakers  conceive  that, 
the  history  of  man,  as  explained  in  the  last  chap- 
ter, is  confirmed;  or  that  the  Almighty  not  only 
gave  to  man  reason,  which  was  to  assist  him  in  his 
temporal,  but  also  superadded  a  portion  of  his 
0M\  spirit,  which  was  to  assist  him  in  his  spiritual 
concerns.  They  conceive  it  also  to  be  still  farther 
confirmed  by  other  expressions  of  the  same  Apos- 
tle. In  his  first  letter  to  the  Corinthians,  he  says, 
"'  "  Know  ye  not  that  your  body  is  the  temple  of 
the  Holij  Ghost,  which  is  in  you,  w^hich  ye  have  of 
God  ;"  and  in  his  letter  to  Timothy  he  desires  him 
"  "  to  hold  fast  that  good  thing  which  was  com- 
mitted to  him  by  means  of  the  holy  Ghost,  which 
dwelled  in  him.''  Now  these  expressions  can  only 
be  accurate  on  a  supposition  of  the  truth  of  the 
history  of  rtian,  as  explained  in  the  former  chap- 

ra  1  Cor.  6.  )9.  n  C  Tim.  I.  14. 

VOL.  1I-.  P 


i 


106  RELIGION. 

ter.  If  this  history  be  true,  then  they  are  consi- 
dered as  words  of  course  :  for  if  there  be  a  com- 
munication between  the  supreme  Being  and  his 
creature  man,  or  if  the  Ahnighty  has  afforded  to 
man  an  emanation  of  his  own  spirit,  which  is  to 
act  for  a  time  in  his  mortal  body,  and  then  to  re- 
turn to  him  that  gave  it,  we  may  say,  with  great 
consistency,  that  the  divinity  resides  in  him,  or 
that  his  body  is  the  temple  of  the  holy  spirit. 

The  Quakers  conceive  again  from  these  expres- 
sions of  the  Apostle,  that  these  two  principles  in 
man  are  different  from  each  other  ;  they  are  men- 
tioned under  the  distinct  names  of  the  spirit  of 
man,  and  of  the  spirit  of  God.  The  former  they 
suppose  to  relate  to  the  understanding :  the  lat- 
ter conjointly  to  the  understanding  and  to  the 
heart.  The  former  can  be  brought  into  use  at  all 
times,  if  the  body  of  a  man  be  in  health.  The 
latter  is  not  at  his  own  disposal.  Afan  must  wait 
for  its  inspirations.  Like  the  wind,  it  bloweth 
when  it  listeth.  Man  also,  when  he  feels  this  di- 
vine influence,  feels  that  it  is  distinct  from  his 
reason.  When  it  is  gone,  he  feels  the  loss  of-  it, 
though  all  his  rational  faculties  be  alive.  "  Those, 
says  Alexander  Arscott,  who  have  this  experience, 
certainly  know  that  as  at  times,  in  their  silent  re- 
tirements and  humble  waitings  upon  God,  they 


RELIGION.  107 

receive  an  understanding  ol'  his  will,  relating  to 
tiieir  i)resent  duty,  in  sueh  a  clear  liglit  as  leaves 
no  doubt  or  hesitation,  so  at  other  times,  when 
this  is  withdrawn  from  them,  they  are  at  a  loss 
again,  and  see  themselves,  as  they  really  are,  ig- 
norant and  destitute." 

The  Quakers  again  understand  by  these  expres.- 
sions  of  the  Apostle,  wiiich  is  the  point  insisted 
upon  in  this  chapter,  that  human  reason,  or  the 
spirit  of  man  which  is  within  him,  and  the  divine 
principle  of  life  and  light  which  is  the  spirit  of 
God  residing  in  his  body  or  temple,  are  so  differ- 
ent in  their  powers,  that  the  former  cannot  enter 
into  the  province  of  the  latter.  As  water  cannot 
penetrate  the  same  bodies,  which  fu'e  can,  so  nei- 
ther can  reason  the  same  subjects  as  the  spiritual 
faculty. 

The  Quakers,  however,  do  not  deny,  that  hu- 
man reason  is  powerful  within  its  own  province. 
It  may  discover  in  the  beautiful  structure  of  the 
Universe,  and  in  the  harmony  and  fitness  of  all  its 
parts,  the  hand  of  a  great  contriver.  It  may  con- 
clude upon  attributes,  as  belonging  to  the  same. 
It  may  see  the  fitness  of  virtue,  and  deduce  from 
thence  a  speculative  morality.  They  only  say 
that  it  is  incompetent  to  spiritual  discernment 
But  though  they  believe  the  two  spirits  to  be  tl^us 


108  RELIGION. 

distinct  in  their  powers,  they  believe  them,  I  ap- 
prehend, to  be  so  far  connected  in  religion  that 
the  spirit  of  God  can  only  act  upon  a  reasonc^ble 
being.  Thus  light  and  the  power  of  sight  are 
distinct  things.  Yet  the  power  of  sight  is  nothing 
without  light,  nor  can  light  operate  upon  any 
other  organ  than  the  eye  to  produce  vision. 

This  proposition  may  be  farther  elucidated  by 
making  a  comparison  between  the  powers  of  men, 
and  those  of  the  brute-creation.  An  animal  is 
compounded  of  body  and  instinct.  If  we  were 
to  endeavour  to  cultivate  this  instinct,  we  might 
n:iake  the  animal  tame  and  obedient.  We  might 
impress  his  sensitive  powers,  so  that  he  might  stop 
or  go  forward  at  our  voice.  We  might  bring 
him  in  some  instances,  to  an  imitation  of  outv\  ard 
gestures  and  sounds.  But  all  the  years  of  his  life, 
and  centuries  of  life  in  his  progeny  w^ould  pass 
away,  and  we  should  never  be  able  so  to  improve 
his  instinct  into  intellect,  as  to  make  him  compre- 
hend the  affairs  of  a  man.  He  would  never  un- 
derstand the  meaning  of  his  goings  in,  or  of  his 
goings  out,  or  of  his  pursuits  in  life,  or  of  his  pro- 
gress in  science.  So  neither  could  any  education 
so  improve  the  reason  of  man  into  the  divine 
principle  of  light  within  him,  as  that  he  should 
understand  spiritual  things;  for  the  things  of 
God  are  only  discernible  by  the  spirit  of  God. 


RFXIGION.  109 

This  doctrine,  ihut  there  is  no  understanding' 
of  divine  things  except  through  tlie  medium  oi" 
the  divine  principle,  which  dwells  in  the  temple 
of  man,  was  no  particular  notion  of  George  Fox, 
or  of  the  succeeding  Quakers,  though  undoubtedly 
they  have  founded  more  upon  it  than  other  Chris- 
tians. Those,  who  had  the  earliest  access  to  the 
writings  of  the  evangelists  and  apostles,  believed 
the  proposition.  All  the  ancient  fathers  of  the 
church  considered  it  as  the  corner  stone  of  the 
Christian  fabric.  The  most  celebrated  of  the  re- 
formers held  it  in  the  same  light.  The  divines, 
who  followed  these,  adopted  it  as  their  creed  aslo; 
anil  by  these  it  has  been  handed  down  to  other 
Christian  communities,  and  is  retained  as  an  es- 
sential doctrine  by  the  church  of  England,  at  the 
present  day. 

The  Quakers  adduce  many  authorities  in  behalf 
of  this  proposition,  but  the  following  may  sufiice. 

"  It  is  the  inward  master,  says  St.  Augustine, 
that  teacheth.  Where  this  inspiration  is  wanting, 
it  is  in  vain  that  words  from  without  are  beaten 
in." 

Luther  says,  "  no  man  can  rightly  know  God, 
unless  he  immediately  receives  it  from  his  holy 
spirit,  except  he  tlnds  it  by  experience  in  himself; 
and  in  this  experience  the  holy  spirit  teacheth  as 


110  RELIGION. 

in  his  proper  school,  out  of  which  sfjhool  nothing 
is  taught  but  mere  talk." 

Calvin,  on  Luke  10.  21.  says,  ''  Here  the  natural 
wisdom  of  man  is  so  puzzled,  and  is  at  such  a  loss, 
that  the  first  step  of  profiting  in  the  school  of 
Christ  is  to  give  it  up  or  renounce  it.  For  by  this 
natural  w^isdom,  as  by  a  veil  before  our  eyes,  we 
are  hindered  from  attaining  the  mysteries  of  God, 
whicb  are  not  revealed  but  unto  babes  and  little 
ones.  For  neither  do  flesh  and  blood  reveal,  nor 
doth  the  natural  man  perceive,  the  things  that  are 
of  the  spirit.  But  the  doctrine  of  God  is  rather 
foolishness  to  him,  because  it  can  only  be  spirit- 
ually judged.  The  assistance  therefore  of  the  ho- 
ly spirit  is  in  this  case  necessary,  or  rather,  hi« 
power  alone  is  efficacious." 

Dr.  Smith  observes,  in  his  select  discourses, 
"  besides  the  outward  Revelation  of  God's  will 
to  men,  there  is  also  an  inward  impression  of  it 
in  their  minds  and  spirits,  which  is  in  a  more  es- 
pecial manner  attributed  to  God.  We  cannot 
see  divine  things  but  in  a  divine  light.  God  on- 
ly, v»ho  is  the  true  light,  and  in  whom  there  is 
no  darkness  at  all,  can  so  shtne  out  of  himself 
upon  our  glossy  understandings,  as  to  beget  in 
them  a  picture  of  himself,  his  own  will  and  plea- 
sure, and  turn  the  soul  (as  the  phrase  is  in  Job) 


RELIGION.  Ill 

like  wax  or  clay  to  the  seal  of  his  own  light  and 
love.  He  that  made  our  souls  iu  his  own  image 
and  likeness,  can  easily  fmd  a  way  into  them. 
The  word  that  God  speaks,  having  found  a  way 
into  the  soul,  imprints  itself  there,  as  with  the 
point  of  a  diamond,  and  becomes  (to  borrow  Plato's 
expression)  *'  a  word  written  in  the  Soul  of  the 
learner."  Men  may  teach  the  grammar  and  rhe- 
toric ;  but  God  teaches  the  divinity.  Thus  it  is 
God  alone  that  acquaints  the  soul  with  the  truths 
of  revelation." 

The  learned  Jeremy  Taylor,  bishop  of  Down 
and  Connor,  speaks  in  a  similar  manner  in  his 
sermon  de  Via  Intelligentiye.  "  Now  in  this  in- 
quiry, says  he,  I  must  take  one  thing  for  granted, 
which  is,  that  every  good  man  is  taught  of  God. 
And  indeed,  unless  he  teach  us,  we  shall  make  but 
ill  scholars  ourselves,  and  worse  guides  to  others. 
No  man  can  know  God,  says  Irenaeus,  except  he 
be  taught  of  God.  If  God  teaches  us,  then  all  is 
well ;  but  if  we  do  not  learn  wisdom  at  his  feet, 
from  whence  should  we  have  it }  It  can  come  from 
no  other  spring." 

Again — "  those  who  perfect  holiness  in  the  fear 
of  God,  have  a  degree  of  divine  knowledge  more 
than  we  can  discourse  of,  and  more  certain  than 
the  demonstration  of  Geometry  j  brighter  than  the 


ll'i  RELTGION. 

sun,  and  indeficient  as  the  light  of  heaven — A 
good  man  is  united  to  God — As  flame  touches 
flame,  and  combines  into  splendour  and  into  glo- 
ry, so  is  the  spirit  of  a  man  united  to  Christ  by  the 
spirit  of  God.  Our  light,  on  the  other  hand,  is 
like  a  candle ;  every  word  of  doctrine  blows  it 
out,  or  spends  the  wax,  and  makes  the  light  tre- 
mulous. But  the  lights  of  heaven  are  fixed  and 
bright  and  shine  for  ever." 

Cudworth,  in  his  intellectual  system,  is  wholly 
of  the  samef  opinion :  "  All  the  books  and  writings 
which  we  converse  with,  they  can  but  represent 
spiritual  objects  to  our  understanding,  which  yet 
we  can  never  see  in  their  own  true  figure,  colour, 
and  proportion,  until  we  have  a  divine  light  with- 
in to  irradiate  and  shine  upon  them.  Though 
there  be  never  such  excellent  truths  concerning 
Christ  and  his  Gospel,  set  down  in  words  and  let- 
ters, yet  they  will  be  but  unknown  characters  to 
us,  until  we  have  a  living  spirit  within  us,  that  can 
dec3'^pher  them,  until  the  same  spirit,  by  secret 
whispers  in  our  hearts,  do  comment  upon  them, 
which  did  at  first  indite  them.  There  be  many 
that  understand  the  Greek  and  Hebrew  of  the 
scri])ture,  the  original  languages  in  which  the 
text  was  written,  that  never  understood  the  lan- 
guage of  the  spirit." 


RELIGION.  lis 

CHAP.  III. 

Neitktr  can  a  man,  except  lie  has  a  portion  of  the 
same  spirit  icJiich  Jesus  and  the  Apostles  and  the 
Prophets  had,  know  spirituallij  that  the  scriptures 
are  of  divine  authority,  or  spirituallij  understand 
them — Explanation  of  these  tenets — Objection,  that 
these  tenets  set  aside  human  reason — Replif  of 
the  Quakers — Observations  of  Luther — Calvin — 
Ozoen — Archbishop  Usher — Aixhbishop  Sandys — 
Milton — Bishop  Taylor. 


As  a  man  cannot  know  spiritual  things  but 
through  the  medium  of  the  spirit  of  God,  or  ex- 
cept he  has  a  portion  of  the  same  spirit,  which  Je- 
sus and  the  Prophets  and  the  Apostles  had,  so 
neither  can  he,  except  he  has  a  portion  of  the  same 
spirit,  either  spiritually  know  that  the  writings 
or  sayings  of  these  holy  persons  are  of  divine  au- 
thrity,  or  read  or  understand  them,  to  the  promo- 
tion of  his  spiritual  interests. 

These  two  tenets  are  but  deductions  from  that 
in  the  former  chapter,  and  may  be  thus  explained. 

A  man,  the  Quakers  say,  may  examine  the  holy 
scriptures,  and  may  deduce  their  divine  origin 
^  OL.  II.  Q 


Il4  RELlGlOxN. 

irom  the  propiiecies  they  coiitaii),  of  which  many 
Jiave  been  since  accomplished  ;  from  the  superiori- 
ty of  their  doctrines  beyond  those  in  any  other 
book  which  is  the  work  of  man  ;  from  the  miracu- 
lous preservation  of  them  for  so  many  ages ;  from 
the  harmony  of  all  tlieir  parts,  and  from  many 
other  circumstances  which  might  be  mentioned. 
But  this,  after  all,  will  be  but  an  historical,  lite- 
ral, or  outward  proof  of  their  origin,  resulting  from 
his  reason  or  his  judgment.  It  will  be  no  spirit- 
ual proof,  having  a  spiritual  influence  on  his 
heart ;  for  this  proof  of  the  divine  origin  of  the 
scriptures  can  only  be  had  from  the  spirit  of  God. 
Thus,  when  the  Apostle  Paul  preached  to  seve- 
ral women  by  the  river  side  near  Philippi,  it  is. 
said  of  Lydia  only,  °  "•"  the  Lord  opened  her  heart, 
tiiat  she  attended  to  the  things  that  were  spokeii 
by  Pciui."  The  other  women  undoubtedly  heard 
the  gospel  of  Paul  with  their  outward  ears,  but  it 
does  not  appear  that  their  hearts  were  in  such  a 
spiritual  state,  that  they  felt  its  divine  authoritj^ ; 
for  it  is  not  said  of  them,  as  of  Lydia,  that  their 
hearts  were  opened  to  understand  spiritually  that 
this  gospel  v.as  of  God.  Again,  •'  when  Jesus 
Christ  preached  to  the  Jews  in  the  temple,  manv 


o  Acts  ]i".  !•"     ■  P  .lohtiS.  C>0.  4j.  h9. 


RELIGION.  11,* 

believed  on  him,  l)ut  others  believed  not,  bnt  were 
so  enraged  that  they  took  up  stones  to  eas!:  at  him. 
It  appears  that  they  all  heard  liis  doctrine  Avilh 
their  outward  ears,  in  which  he  particularly  stated 
that  he  was  from  above  ;  but  they  did  not  receive 
the  truth  of  his  origin  in  their  hearts,  because  they 
were  not  in  a  state  to  receive  that  faitli  which 
eonieth  from  the  spirit  of  God.  lu  the  same  man- 
ner persons  hear  sermon  after  sermon  at  tlie  pre- 
sent day,  but  find  no  spiritual  -  benefit  in  their 
hearts. 

Again — a  man,  b}'  comparing  passages  of  scrip 
ture  with  other  passages,  and  by  considering  the 
use  and  acceptation  of  words  in  these,  may  arrive 
at  a  knowledge  of  their  literal  meaning.  He  may 
obtain  also,  by  perusing  tb,e  scriptures,  a  know- 
ledsfc  of  some  of  the  attributes  of  God.  He  mav 
discover  a  part  .of  the  plan  of  his  providence. 
He  may  collect  purer  moral  trutijs  than  from  any 
other  source.  Bat  no  literal  reading  of  the  scrip- 
tures can  give  him  that  spiritnal  knowledge  of  di- 
vine things,  which  leads  to  eternal  life.  The  scrip- 
tures, if  literally  read,  will  give  him  a  literal  or  cor- 
responding knowledge,  but  it  is  only  the  spiritual 
monitor  within,  who  can  apply  them  to  his  feel- 
ingsj  who  can  tell  him  '' thou  art  the  man;  this 
is  thy  state:    this    is  that  vrliich    tiiou    oughtest 


116  RELIGION. 

or  oughtest  not  to  have  done ;"  so  that  he  sees 
spiritually,  (the  spirit  of  God  bearing  witness  with, 
his  own  spirit)  that  his  own  situation  has  been 
described.  Indeed,  if  the  scriptures  were  suffi- 
cient of  themselves  for  this  latter  purpose,  the 
Quakers  say  that  the  knowledge  of  spiritual  things 
would  consist  in  the  knowledge  of  words.  They, 
who  were  to  get  most  of  the  divine  writings  by 
heart,  would  know  spiritually  the  most  of  divine 
truths.  The  man  of  the  best  understanding,  or 
of  the  most  cultivated  mind,  would  be  the  best 
proficient  in  vital  religion.  But  this  is  contrary 
to  fact.  For  men  of  deep  learning  know  frequent- 
ly less  of  spiritual  Christianity,  than  those  of  the 
poor,  who  are  scarcely  able  to  read  the  scriptures. 
They  contend  also,  that  if  the  scriptures  were  the 
most  vitally  understood  by  those  of  the  most  learn- 
ing, then  the  dispensations  of  God  would  be  par- 
tial, inasmuch  as  he  would  have  excluded  the 
poor  from  the  highest  enjoyn^ents  of  which  the  na- 
ture of  man  is  susceptible,  and  from  the  means  of 
their  eternal  salvation. 

These  tenets,  which  are  thus  adopted  by  the 
Quakers,  are  considered  by  many  of  the  moderns 
as  objectionable,  inasmuch  as  they  make  reason, 
at  least  in  theology,  a  useless  gift.  The  Quakers, 
however,  contend  that  they  consider  reason  as  one 


RELIGION.  117 

of  tlie  inestimable  gifts  of  God.  They  value  it 
liig4ily  in  its  proper  province.  They  do  not  ex- 
clude it  from  religion.  Men,  by  means  of  it,  may 
correct  literal  errors  in  the  scriptures;  may  restore 
texts,  may  refute  doctrines  inconsiistent  with  the 
attributes  of  the  Almighty.  The  apology  of  Ro- 
bert Barclay,  which  is  a  chain  of  reasoning  of 
this  kind  from  the  begining  to  the  end,  is  a  proof 
that  they  do  not  undervalue  the  powers  of  the 
mind.  But  they  dare  not  ascribe  to  human  reason 
that  power,  which  they  believe  to  be  exclusively 
vested  in  the  spirit  of  God, 

They  say,  moreover,  that  these  tenets  are  neither 
new  nor  peculiar  to  themselves  as  a  society.  They 
were  the  doctrines  of  the  primitive  Fathers.  Thjey 
were  the  doctrines  also  of  the  protestant  reformers. 
And  though  many  at  the  present  day  consider 
that  scripture,  interpreted  by  reason,  is  the  reli- 
gion of  protestants,  yet  it  was  the  general  belief 
of  these  reformers,  that  the  teaching  of  the  Holy 
spirit  was  necessary  to  the  spiritual  understanding 
of  the  scriptures,  as  well  as  to  the  spiritual  esta- 
blishment of  their  divine  origin. 

Luther  observes — "  It  is  not  human  reason,  or 
wisdom,  nor  the  law  of  God,  but  the  work  of  di- 
vine grace  freely  bestowed  upon  me,  that  teach- 


118  RELIGION. 

eth  me  and   shovveth  me  the    gospel  :    and  this 
gift  of  God  I  receive  by  faith  alone." 

**"  The  scriptures  are  not  to  be  understood  but 
by  the  same  spirit  by  which  they  were  written." 

"  No  man  sees  one  jot  or  tittle  in  the  scrip* 
tures,  unless  he  has  the  spirit  of  God." 

"^  Profane  men,  says  Calvin,  desire  to  have  it 
proved  to  them  by  reason,  that  Moses  and  the 
prophets  spoke  from  God.  And  to  such  I  answer, 
that  the  testimony  of  the  spirit  exceeds  all  reason. 
For  as  God  alone  is  a  sufficient  witness  of  himself 
in  his  word,  so  will  his  word  not  find  credit 
in  the  hearts  of  men,  until  il  is  sealed  by  the  in- 
ward testimony  of  his  spirit.  It  is  therefore  ne- 
cessary, that  the  same  spirit  which  spake  by  the 
mouth  of  the  prophets,  enter  into  our  hearts  to 
persuade  us,  that  they  faithfully  declared  what 
was  commanded  them  by  God." 

Again — "  Unless  we  have  the  assurance  which 
is  better  and  more  valid  than  any  judgment  of 
man,  it  will  be  in  vain  to  go  about  to  establish 
the  authority  of  scripture,  either  by  argument  or 
the  consent  of  the  church;  for  except  the  founda- 
tion be  laid,  namely,  that  the  certainty  of  its  di- 
vine authority  depends  entirely  upon  the  testimo- 
ny of  the  spirit,  it  remains  in  perpetual  sus- 
Dense." 


RELIGION.  119 

As^ain---"  The  spirit  of  God,  from  wlunn  the  doc- 
trine  of  the  Gos-pcl  proceeds,  is  the  oul\^  Iruc  in- 
terpreter to  open  it  to  us." 

"  Divines,  says  the  learned  Owen,  at  the  first  re- 
formation, did  generally  resolve  our  faith  of  the 
divine  authority  of  the  scriptures,  into  the  testi- 
mony of  the  Holy  Spirit;"  in  Avhich  belief  he  joins 
liimself,  by  stating  that  "  it  is  the  work  of  the 
Holy  Spirit  to  enable  us  to  believe  the  scripture  to 
be  the  word  of  God," 

In  another  place  he  says,  "  our  Divines  have 
long  since  laid  it  down,  that  the  only  public,  au- 
thentic, and  infallible  interpreter  of  the  holy  scrip- 
tures, is  the  author  of  them,  from  whose  inspiration 
they  receive  all  their  truth,  clearness,  and  initho- 
rity.     This  author  is  the  Holy  Spirit." 

Archbishop  Sandys,  in  one  of  his  Sermons, 
preached  before  Queen  Elizabeth,  has  the  follow- 
ing observations : 

"  The  outward  reading  of  the  word,  without 
the  inward  working  of  the  spirit,  is  nothing.  The 
precise  Pharisees,  and  the  learned  Scribes,  read 
the  scriptures  over  and  over  again.  They  not 
only  read  them  in  books,  but  wore  them  on  their 
garments.  They  were  not  only  tauglit,  but  wove 
able  themselves  to  teach  others.  But  because 
this  heavenly  teacher  had  not  instructed  tliem. 


V'it)  RELIGION. 

their  understanding  was  darkened,  and  their 
knowledge  was  but  vanity.  They  were  ignorant 
altogether  in  that  saving  truth,  which  the  prophet 
David  was  so  desirous  to  learn.  The  mysteries 
of  salvation  were  so  hard  to  be  conceived  by  the 
very  apostles  of  Christ  Jesus,  that  he  was  forced 
many  times  to  rebuke  them  for  their  dulness,  which 
unless  he  had  removed  by  opening  the  eyes  of 
their  minds,  they  could  never  have  attained  to  the 
knowledge  of  salvation  in  Christ  Jesus.  The  ears 
of  that  woman  Lydia  would  have  been  as  close 
shut  against  the  preaching  of  Paul,  as  any  others, 
if  the  finger  of  God  had  not  touched  and  opened. 
lier  heart.  As  many  as  learn,  they  are  taught  of 
God." 

Archbishop  Usher,  in  his  sum  and  substance  of 
the  Christian  Religion,  observes,  "  that  it  is  re- 
quired that  we  have  the  spirit  of  God,  as  well  to 
open  our  eyes  to  see  the  light,  as  to  seal  up  fully 
in  our  hearts  tiiat  truth,  which  we  can  see  with 
our  eyes:  for  the  same  Holy  Spirit  that  inspired 
the  scripture,  inclineth  the  hearts  of  God's  chil- 
dren to  believe  what  is  revealed  in  them,  and  in- 
wardly assureth  them,  above  all  reasons  and  argu- 
ments, that  these  are  the  scriptures  of  God." 
And  farther  on  in  the  same  work,  he  says,  "  the 
spirit  of  God  alone  is  the  certain  interpreter  of 


RELIGION.  131 

his  word  written  by  his  Spirit ;  for  no  man  know- 
eth  the  things  pertaining  to  God,  but  the  Spirit 
of  God." 

Our  great  Milton  also  gives  us  a  similar  opinion 
in  the  following  words,  which  are  taken  from  his 
Paradi&e  Lost  : 


but  in  their  room- 


"  Wolves  shall  succeed  for  teachers,  grievous  wolves, 

"  Who  a!l  the  sacred  mysteries  of  Heavea 

'•  To  their  own  vile  advantages  shall  turn 

"  Of  lucre  and  ambition,  and  the  truth 

"  With  superstition's  and  tradition's  taint, 

"  Left  only  in  those  written  records  pure, 

"  Though  not  but  by  the  spirit  understood" 

Of  the  same  mind  was  the  learned  bjshop  Tay- 
lor, as  we  collect  from  his  sermon  de  Via  Intelli- 
gentiae.  "  For  although  the  scriptures,  says  he, 
are  written  by  the  spirit  of  God,  yet  they  are 
written  within  and  without.  And  besides  the  light 
that  shines  upon  the  face  of  them,  unless  there  be 
a  light  shining  within  our  hearts,  unfolding  the 
leav  es,  and  interpreting  the  mysterious  sense  of  the 
spirit,  convincing  our  consciences,  and  preaching 
to  our  hearts  ;  to  look  for  Christ  in  the  leaves  of 
the  gospel,  is  to  look  for  the  living  among  the 
dead.  There  is  a  life  in  them;  but  that  life  is,  ac- 
cording to  St.  Paul's  expression,  '  hid  with  Christ 
VOL.  ir.  R 


122  RELIGION. 

in  God ;'  and  unless  the  spirit  of  God  first  draw 
it,  we  shall  never  draw  it  forth." 

"  Human  learning  brings  excellent  ministeries 
towarjis  this.  It  is  admirably  useful  for  the  re- 
proof of  heresies,  for  the  detection  of  fallacies,  lor 
the  letter  of  the  scripture,  for  collateral  testimo- 
nies, for  exterior  advantages  ;  but  there  is  some- 
thing beyond  this  that  human  learning,  without 
the  addition  of  divine,  can  never  reach.  Mo.es 
was  learned  in  all  the  learning  of  the  Egyptians; 
and  the  holy  men  of  God  contemplated  the  glories 
of  God  in  the  admirable  order,  motion,  and  influ- 
ences of  the  heaven ;  but,  besides  all  this,  they 
were  taught  something  far  beyond  these  pretti- 
nesses.  Pythagoras  read  Moses'  books,  and  so 
did  Plato,  and  yet  they  became  not  proselytes 
of  the  religion,  though  they  w^re  the  learned 
scholars  of  such  a  master." 


RELIGION.  123 


CHAP.  IV, 


The  spirit  of  God  which  has  been  thus  given  to  man 
in  different  dei^reeSy  ivas  given  him  as  a  spiritual 
teaclier,  or  guides  in  Jus  spiritual  concerns — //  per- 
form'; this  office i  the  Quakers  sajt/y  by  internal  mo- 
nitions—  Sentiments  of  Taylor — and  of  Monro — 
and,  if  encourui^edy  it  teaches  even  by  the  external 
objects  of  the  creation — William  IVordsworth. 


JL  HE  Quakers  believe  that  the  spirit  of  God, 
which  has  been  thus  given  to  man  in  different  de^ 
grees  or  measures,  and  without  which  it  is  impos- 
sible to  know  spiritual  things,  or  even  to  under- 
stand the  divine  writings  spiritually,  or  to  be  as- 
sured of  their  divine  origin,  was  given  to  him, 
among  other  purposes*  as  a  teacher  of  good  and 
evil,  or  to  serve  him  as  a  guide  in  his  spiritual 
concerns.  By  this  the  Quakers  mean,  that  if  any 
man  will  give  himself  up  to  the  directions  of  the 
spiritual  principle  that  resides  Avithin  hhn,  he  will 
attain  a  knowledge  sufficient  to  enable  him  to  dis- 
cover the  path  of  his  duty  both  to  God  and  his 
fellow-man. 

That  the  spirit  of  God  was  given  to  man  as  a 


124  RELIGION. 

spiritual  instructor,  the  Quakers  conceive  to  be 
plain,  from  a  number  of  passages,  which  are  to  be 
found  in  the  sacred  vvritinsrs. 

They  say,  in  the  first  place,  that  it  was  the  lan- 
guage of  the  holy  men  of  old.  s  «  J  said,  says 
Elihu,  days  should  speak,  and  multitude  of  years' 
should  teach  wisdom.  But  there  is  a  spirit  (or 
the  spirit  itself  is)  in  man,  and  the  inspiration  of 
the  Almighty  giveth  him  understanding."  The 
Levites  are  found  also  making  an  acknowledg- 
ment to  God;  "^ "  That  he  gave  also  their  fore- 
fathe's  his  good  spirit  to  instruct  them."  The 
psaliiis  of  David  are  also  full  of  the  same  lan- 
guage, such  as  of*  "  Shew  me  thy  ways,  O  Lord; 
lead  me  in  the  truth."  *  "  I  know,  says  Jeremiah, 
that  the  way  of  man  is  not  in  himself.  It  is  not 
in  man  that  walketh  to  direct  hi^  steps."  The 
martyr  Stephen  acknowledges  the  teachings  of  the 
spirit,  both  in  his  own  time  and  in  that  of  his  an- 
cestors. «  "  Ye  stiff-necked,  and  uncircumcised  in 
heart  and  ears,  ye  do  always  resist  the  holy  spirit. 
As  your  fathers  did,  so  do  ye."  The  Quakers  al- 
so conceive  it  to  be  a  doctrine  of  the  gospel.  Je- 
Sus  himself  said,  "  "  No  man  can  come  to  me  ex- 

q  Job  32.  7.  t  Jeremiah  10.  23. 

r  Nehemiah  9.  20.  u  Acts  7.31. 

s  Psalm  25.  4:  /      v  John  6.  44-.  45-. 


RELIGION.  V25 

cept  the  Father,  which  sent  me,  draw  him — It  is 
written  in  the  prophets,  they  shall  all  be  tauglit  of 
God."  ^^  St.  John  says,  "  That  was  the  true  light, 
(namely,  the  word  or  spirit)  which  lighteth  every 
man  that  cometii  into  the  world."  St.  Paul,  in 
his  first  letter  to  the  Corinthians,  asserts,  '^  that 
"  the  manifestation  of  the  spirit  is  given  to  every 
man  to  profit  withal."  And,  in  his  letter  to  Titus, 
he  asserts  the  same  thing,  though  in  different 
words:  ^  "  For  the  grace  of  God,  says  he,  which 
bringeth  salvation,  hath  appeared  unto  all  men." 

The  spirit  of  God,  which  has  been  thus  given 
to  man  as  a  spiritual  guide,  is  considered  by  the 
Quakers  as  teaching  him  in  various  ways.  It  in- 
spires him  with  good  thoughts.  It  prompts  him 
to  good  ofllces.  It  checks  him  in  his  way  to  evil. 
It  reproves  him  while  in  the  act  of  committing  it. 

The  learned  Jeremy  Taylor  was  of  the  same 
opinion.  "  The  spirit  of  grace,  says  he,  is  the 
spirit  of  wisdom,  and  teaches  us  by  secret  inspira- 
tions, by  proper  arguments,  by  actual  persuasions, 
by  personal  applications,  by  effects  and  energies." 

This  office  of  the  spirit  is  beautifully  described 
by  Monro,  a  divine  of  the  established  church,  in 
his  just  measures  of  the  pious  institutions  of  youth 

.\t  John  I.  9.  si  Cor.  10  7.  v  Titus  2.  11. 


1Q6  RELIGION. 

"  The  holy  spirit,  says  he,  speaks  inwardly  and 
immediately  to  the  soul.  For  God  is  a  spirit. 
The  soul  is  a  spirit ;  and  they  converse  with  one 
another  in  spirit,  not  by  words,  but  by  spiritual 
notices  ;  which,  however,  are  more  intelligible 
than  the  most  eloquent  strains  in  the  world.  God 
makes  himself  to  be  heard  by  the  soul  by  inward 
motions,  which  it  perceives  and  comprehends  pro- 
portionably  as  it  is  voided  and  emptied  of  earthly 
ideas.  And  the  more  the  faculties  of  the  soul 
cease  their  own  operations,  so  much  the  more  sen- 
sible and  intelligible  are  the  motions  of  God  to  it. 
These  immediate  communications  from  God  with 
the  souls  of  men  are  denied  and  derided  by  a  great 
many.  But  that  the  father  of  spirits  should  have 
no  converse  with  our  spirits,  but  by  the  interven- 
tion only  of  outward  and  foreign  objects,  may  just- 
ly seem  strange,  especially  when  we  are  so  often 
told  in  holy  scripture,  that  we  are  the  temples  of 
the  holy  Ghost,  and  that  God  dwelleth  in  all  good 
men." 

But  this  spirit  is  considered  by  the  Quakers  not 
only  as  teaching  by  inward  breathings,  as  it  were, 
made  immediately  and  directly  upon  the  heart 
without  the  intervention  of  outward  circumstan- 
ces, but  as  making  the  material  objects  of  the  Uni- 
verse, and  many  of  the  occurrences  of  life,  if  it  be 


RELIGION.  127 

properly  attended  to,  subservient  to  the  instruc- 
tion of  man;  and  that  it  enlarges  the  sphere  of  his 
instruction  in  this  manner,  in  pro})ortion  as  it  is 
received  and  encouraged.  Thus  the  man,  who 
is  attentive  to  these  divine  notices,  sees  the  animal, 
the  vegetable,  and  the  |)lanetary  world,  with  spirit- 
ual eyes.  He  cannot  stir  abroad,  but  he  is  taught 
in  his  own  feelings,  witiiout  any  motion  of  his  will, 
some  lesson  for  his  spiritual  advantage  ;  or  he  per- 
ceives so  vitally  some  of  the  attributes  of  the  di- 
vine being,  that  he  is  called  upon  to  offer  some 
spiritual  incense  to  his  maker.  If  the  lamb  frolics 
and  gambols  in  his  presence  as  he  walks  along, 
he  may  be  made  spiritually  to  see  the  beauty  and 
happiness  of  innocence.  If  he  finds  the  stately 
oak  laid  prostrate  by  the  wind,  he  may  be  spirit- 
ually taught  to  discern  the  emptiness  of  human 
pow'er;  while  the  same  spirit  may  teach  him  in- 
wardly the  advantage  of  humility,  when  he  looks 
at  the  little  hawthorn  which  has  survived  the  storm. 
When  he  sees  the  change  and  the  fall  of  the  au- 
tumnal leaf,  he  may  be  spiritually  admonished  of 
his  own  change  and  dissolution,  and  of  the  neces- 
sity of  a  holy  life.  Thus  the  spirit  of  God  may 
teach  men  by  outward  objects  and  occurrences  in 
the  world ;  but  where  this  spirit  is  away,  or  rather 
where  it  is  not  attended  to,  no  such  lesson  can  be 


128  RELIGION. 

taught.  Natural  objects  of  themselves  can  6xcite 
only  natural  ideas :  and  the  natural  man,  look- 
ing at  them,  can  derive  only  natural  pleasure,  or 
draw  natural  conclusions  from  them.  In  looking 
at  the  Sun,  he  may  be  pleased  with  its  warmth, 
and  anticipate  its  advantages  to  the  vegetable 
world.  In  plucking  and  examining  a  flower,  he 
may  be  struck  v/ith  its  beauty,  its  mechanism,  and 
its  fragrant  smell.  In  observing  the  bntterfly,  as 
it  wings  its  way  before  him,  he  may  smile  at  its 
short  journeys  from  place  to  place,  and  admire 
the  splendour  upon  its  wings.  But  the  beauty  of 
Creation  is  dead  to  him,  as  far  as  it  depends  upon 
connecting  it  spiritually  with  the  character  of  God. 
For  no  spiritual  impression  can  arise  from  any 
natural  objects,  but  through  the  intervention  of 
the  spirit  of  God. 

William  AVordsworth,  in  his  instructive  poems,, 
luis  described  this  teaching  by  external  objects  in 
consequence  of  impressions  from  a  higher  power, 
as  diiTering  from  any  teaching  by  books  or  the  hu- 
man understanding,  and  as  arising  without  any 
motion  of  the  will  of  man,  in  so  beautiful  and  sim- 
ple a  manner,  that  I  cannot  do  otherwise  than 
make  an  extract  from  them  in  this  place.  Lively 
as  the  poem  is,  to  which  I  allude,  I  conceive  it  will 


RELIGION.  129 

ijot  lower  the  dignity  of  the  subject.     It  is  called 
Expostulation  and  Reply,  and  is  as  follows : 

z  "  Wliy,  William,  on  that  old  gray  stone, 
"  Thus  for  tlie  length  of  half  a  day, 
"  Why,  William,  sit  you  thus  alone, 
"  And  dream  your  time  away  ? 

"  Where  are  your  books  ?  that  light  bequeath'd 
"  To  beings,  else  forlorn  and  blind. 
"  Up  I  Up  !  and  drink  the  spirit  breath'd 
"  From  dead  men  to  their  kind. 

«'  You  look  round  on  yoiu- mother  earth, 
*•  As  if  she  for  no  purpose  bore  you, 
"  As  if  you  were  her  first-born  birth, 
"  And  none  had  liv'd  before  you  ! 

"  One  morning  thus  by  Esthwaite  lake, 
"  When  life  was  sweet,   I  knew  not  why, 
*'  To  me  my  good  friend  Matthew  spake, 
"  And  thus  I  made  reply  ; 

"  The  eye  it  cannot  choose  but  see, 
"  We  cannot  bid  the  edr  be  still; 
"  Our  bodies  feel  where'er  they  be, 
"  Against  or  with  our  will, 

"  Nor  less  I  deem  that  there  are  powers, 
"  Which  of  themselves  our  minds  impress, 
"  That  we  can  feed  this  mind  of  ours 
"  In  a  wise  passiveness, 

"  Think  you,  'mid  all  this  mighty  sum 
"  Of  things  for  ever  speaking, 
"  That  nothing  of  itself  will  come, 
"  But  we  must  still  be  seeking  ? 

"  — Then  ask  not  wherefore,  here,  alone, 

"  Conversing  as  I  may, 

"  I  sit  upon  this  old  gray  stone, 

"  And  dream  my  time  away  ?" 

•:  See  Lyrical  Bailed';,  Vo'.  1.  p.  ]. 
VOL.  II.  S 


150  RELIGION. 


CHAP.  V 


Tkls  spirit  ivas  not  only  given  to  man  as  a  teacher j 
but  as  a  primary  and  infallible  guide — Hence  the 
Scriptures  are  a  subordinate  or  secondary  guide — 
2uakerS)  hozvever^  do  not  undervalue  them  on  thi^ 
account — Their  opinion  concerning  them. 


X  HE  spirit  of  God,  which  we  have  seen  to  be  thus 
given  to  men  as  a  spiritual  teacher,  and  to  act  in 
the  ways  described,  the  Quakers  usually  distin- 
guish by  the  epithets  of  primary  and  infallible. 
But  they  have  made  another  distinction  with  re- 
spect to  the  character  of  this  spirit;  for  they  have 
pronounced  it  to  be  the  only  infallible  guide  to 
men  in  their  spiritual  concerns.  From  this  latter 
declaration  the  reader  will  naturally  conclude, 
that  the  scriptures,  which. are  the  outward  teachers 
of  men,  must  be  viewed  by  the  Quakers  in  a  se- 
condary light.  This  conclusion  has  indeed  been 
adopted  as  a  proposition  in  the  Quaker  theology  j 
or,  in  other  words,  it  is  a  doctrine  of  the  society., 
that  the  spirit  of  God  is  the  primary  and  only  in- 
fallible, and  the  ^icriptures  but  a  subordinate  or  se- 
condary guide. 


HELIGION.  131 

Tliis  proposition  tlic  Quakers  usually  nuike  out 
ill  the  following  manner-. 

It  is,  in  the  first  plaee,  a<lnutted  hy  all  Chris- 
tians, that  the  scriptures  were  given  by  Inspiration, 
or  that  those  who  originally  delivered  or  wrote 
tlie  several  parts  of  them,  gave  them  forth  by 
means  of  that  spirit,  which  was  given  to  them  by 
God.  Now  in  the  same  manner  as  streams,  or  ri- 
vulets of  water,  are  subordinate  to  the  fountains 
which  produce  them ;  so  those  streams  or  rivulets 
of  light  must  be  subordinate  to  the  great  light 
from  whence  they  originally  sprung.  "  We  can- 
not, says  Barclay,  call  the  scriptures  the  princi- 
pal fountain  of  all  truth  and  knowledge,  nor  yet 
the  first  adequate  rule  of  faith  and  manners;  be- 
cause the  principal  fountain  of  truth  must  be  the 
truth  itself,  that  is,  whose  certainty  and  authority 
depend  not  upon  another." 

The  scriptures  are  subordinate  or  secondary, 
again,  in  other  points  of  view.  First,  because, 
though  they  are  placed  before  us,  we  can  only 
know  or  understand  them  by  the  testimony  of  the 
spirit.  Secondly,  because  there  is  no  virtue  or 
power  in  them  of  themselves,  but  in  the  spirit  fronj 
whence  they  came. 

They  are,  again,  but  a  secondary  guide;  because 
"  that,  says  Barclay,  cannot  be  the  only  and  pria- 


132  RELIGION. 

cipal  guide,  "which  doth  not  universally  reach  eve- 
ry individual  that  needeth  it."  But  the  scriptures 
do  not  teach  deaf  persons,  nor  children,  nor  idiots, 
nor  an  immense  number  of  people,  more  than  half 
the  Globe,  who  never  yet  saw  or  heard  of  them. 
These,  therefore,  if  they  are  to  be  saved  like  others, 
must  have  a  different  or  a  more  universal  rule  to 
guide  them,  or  be  taught  from  another  source. 
^  They  are  only  a  secondary  guide,  again,  for  an- 
other reason.  It  is  an  acknowledged  axiom  among 
Christians,  that  the  spirit  of  God  is  a  perfect  spirit, 
and  that  it  can  never  err.  But  the  scriptures  are 
neither  perfect  of  themselves  as  a  collection,  nor 
are  they  perfect  in  their  verbal  parts.  Many  of 
them  have  been  lost.  Concerning  those  which 
have  survived,  there  have  been  great  disputes. 
Certairi  parts  of  these,  which  one  Christian  coun- 
cil received  in  the  early  times  of  the  church,  were 
rejected  as  not  canonical  by  another.  Add  to  this, 
that  none  of  the  originals  are  extant.  And  of  the 
copies,  some  have  suffered  by  transcription,  others 
by  translation,  and  others  by  wilful  mutilation,  to 
support  human  notions  of  religion;  so  that  ther6 
are  various  readings  of  the  same  passage,  and  va- 
rious views  of  the  same  thing.  "  Now  what,  says 
Barclciy,  would  become  of  Christians,  if  they  had 
not  received  that  spirit  and  those  spiritual  senses;, 


RELIC.  ION.  133 

l)y  which  they  know  how  to  discover  the  true 
from  the  false  ?  It  is  the  privilege  of  Christ's  sheep, 
indeed,  that  they  hear  his  voice,  and  refuse  that  of 
the  stranger;  which  pri\  ilege  being  taken  away, 
we  are  left  a  prey  to  all  manner  of  wolves."  The 
scriptures,  therefore,  in  consequence  of  the  state 
in  which  they  have  come  down  to  us,  cannot,  the 
Quakers  say,  be  considered  to  be  a  guide  as  en- 
tirely perfect  as  the  internal  testimony  of  their 
great  author,  the  spirit  of  God. 

But  though  the  Quakers  have  thought  it  right, 
in  submitting  their  religious  creed  to  the  world  on 
this  subject,  to  be  so  guarded  in  the  wording  of  it 
as  to  make  the  distinction  described,  they  are  far 
from  undervaluing  the  scriptures  on  that  account. 
They  believe,  on  the  other  liand,  whatever  mu- 
tilations they  may  have  suffered,  that  they  con- 
tain sufficient  to  guide  men  in  belief  and  practice  ; 
and  that  all  internal  emotions,  which  are  contrary 
to  the  declaration  of  these,  are  wholly  inadmissible. 
"  Alorcover,  says  Barclay,  because  the  scriptures 
are  commonly  acknowledged  by  all  to  have  been 
written  by  the  dictates  of  the  holy  spirit,  and  that 
the  errors,  which  may  be  supposed  by  the  injury 
of  time  to  have  slipt  in,  are  not  such  but  there  is 
a  sufficient  clear  testimony  left  to  all  the  essen- 
tials of  the  Christiaii  fuith,  v,e  do  look  -ipon  them 


134  RELIGION. 

as  the  only  fit  outward  judge  of  controversieis- 
among-  Christains,  and  that  whalMoever  doctrine  is 
conlrar}"  to  their  testimony,  may  therefore  justly 
be  rejected  as  false." 

The  Quakers  believe  also,  that  as  God  gave  a 
portion  of  his  spirit  to  man  to  assist  him  inwardly, 
so  he  gave  the  holy  scriptures  to  assist  him  out- 
wardly in  his  spiritual  concerns.  Hence  the  lat- 
ter, coming  by  inspiration,  are  the  most  pj'ecious  of 
all  books  that  ever  were  written,  and  the  best 
outward  guide.  And  hence  the  things  contained 
in  them,  ought  to  be  read,  and,  as  far  as  possible, 
fulfdled. 

They  believe,  with  the  apostle  Paul,  that  the 
scriptures  are  highly  useful,  "  so  that,  through  pa- 
tience and  comfort  of  them,  they  may  have  hope^ 
and  also  that  they  are  profitable  for  reproof,  for 
correction,  and  for  instruction  in  righteousness:" 
that  in  the  same  manner  as  land,  highly  prepared 
and  dressed  by  the  husbandman,  becomes  fit  for 
the  reception  and  for  the  promotion  of  the  growth 
of  the  seed  tiiat  is  to  be  placed  in  it,  so  the  scrip- 
tures turn  the  attention  of  man  towards  God,  and 
by  means  of  the  exhortations,  reproofs,  promises, 
and  threatenings,  contained  in  them,  prepare  the 
mind  for  the  reception  and  growth  of  the  seed  of 
the  Holy  Spirit. 


RELIGION.  {35 

They  believe,  again,  that  iho  same  scriptures 
show  niore  of  the  particulars  of  God's  \viU  with 
respect  to  man,  and  of  the  scheme  of  the  Gos))el- 
dispensation,  than  anv  ordinary  portion  of  his 
spirit,  as  usually  given  to  man,  would  have  enabled 
him  to  discover.  They  discover  that  "^  ''  the  wa- 
ges of  sin  is  death,  but  the  gift  of  God  is  eternal 
life  through  Jesus  Christ :"  »>  "  That  Jesus  Christ 
was  set  forth  to  be  a  propitiation  through  faith  in 
his  blood,  to  declare  his  righteousness  for  the  re- 
mission of  sins  that  are  past  through  the  forbear- 
ance of  God  ;"  c  that  "  he  tasted  death  for  every 
man  ;"  that  he  "^  was  "  delivered  for  our  offences, 
and  raised  again  for  our  justification ;"  ^  that 
'*  he  is  set  down  at  the  right  hand  of  the  throne  of 
God  ;"  f  and  ever  liveth  to  make  intercession  for 
us ;  and,  that  he  is  the  substance  of  all  the  types 
and  figures  under  the  Levitical  priesthood,  ^  be- 
ing the  end  of  the  law  for  righteousness  to  everr 
one  that  believeth." 

They  believe,  again,  that,  in  consequence  of 
these  various  revelations,  as  contained  in  the 
scriptures,  they  have  inestimable  advantages  over 
the  Heathen  nations,  or  over  those,  where  the 
gospel-sun  has  never  yet  shone  ;  and  that,  as  their 

a  Rom.  C.  23.  e  Heb.  li.  2. 

b  Rom.  3.  25.  f  Heb.  7.  '2j. 

c  Heb.  2.  9.  ,  Pon,.  jq.  i. 
i  Rom.  4,  95. 


136  RELIGION. 

advantages  are  greater,  so  more  will  be  required 
of  them,  or  their  condemnation  will  be  greater, 
if  they  fail  to  attend  to  those  things  which  are 
clearly  revealed. 

They  maintain,  again,  that  their  discipline  is' 
founded  on  the  rules  of  the  gospel ;  and  that  in 
consequence  of  giving  an  interpretation  different 
from  that  of  many  others,  to  some  of  the  expres- 
sions of  Jesus  Christ,  by  which  they  conceive  they 
make  his  kingdom  more  pure  and  heavenly,  they 
undergo  persecution  from  the  world — so  that 
they  confirm  their  attachment  to  the  scriptures 
by  the  best  of  all  credible  testimonies,  the  seal  of 
their  own  sullerings. 


RELIGION.  137 

CHAP.  VI. 

This  spirit  of  God,  ichich  has  been  thus  given  to  men 
as  an  infallible  guide  in  tJieir  spiritual  concerns, 
has  been  given  them  universallii — To  the  patriarchs 
and  Israelites,  from  the  creation  to  the  time  of  Mo- 
ses— To  the  Israelites  or  Jews,  from  Moses  to  Je- 
sus Christ — To  the  Gentile  world  from  all  anfi- 
quitij  to  modern  times — To  all  those  who  have  ever 
heard  the  gospel — And  it  continues  its  office  to  the 
latter  even  at  the  present  day. 


1  HE  Quakers  are  of  opinion  that  the  spirit  of 
God,  of  which  a  portion  has  been  given  to  men  as 
a  primary  and  infallible  guide  in  their  spiritual 
concerns,  has  been  given  them  universally;  or  has 
been  given  to  all  of  the  human  race,  without  any 
exceptions,  for  the  same  purpose. 

This  proposition  of  the  Quakers  I  shall  divide,  in 
order  that  the  reader  may  see  it  more  clearly,  into 
four  -cases.  The  first  of  these  will  comprehend 
the  Patriarchs  and  the  Israelites  from  the  creation 
to  the  time  of  Moses.  The  second,  the  Israelite^ 
or  Jews  from  the  time  of  Moses  to  the  commg  of 
Jesus  Christ.  The  third,  the  Gentiles  or  Hea- 
thens.    And  the  fourth,  all  those  who  have  heard 

vol..  IT.  T 


138.  RELIGION. 

of  the  gospel  of  Jesus  Christ,  from  the  time  of  his 
fevvn  ministry  to  the  present  day. 

The  first  case  includes  a  portion  of  time. of 
above  two  thousand  years.  Now  the  Quakers  be- 
lieve, that  during  all  this  time  men  were  general- 
ly enlightened  as  to  their  duty  by  the  spirit  of 
God;  for  there  was  no  scripture  or  written  law  of 
God  during  all  this  period.  "  It  was  about 
two  thousand  four  hundred  years,  says  Thomas 
Beaven,  an  approved  writer  among  the  Quakers, 
after  the  creation  of  the  world,  before  mankind 
had  any  external  written  law  for  the  rule  and 
conduct  of  their  lives,  so  far  as  appears  by  either 
sacred  or  profane  history  j  in  all  which  time 
mankind,  generally  speaking,  had  only  for  their 
rule  of  faith  and  manners  the  external  creation  as 
a  monitor  to  their  outward  senses,  for  evidence  of 
the  reality  and  certainty  of  the  existence  of  the 
Supreme  Being;  and  the  internal  im.pressions  God 
by  his  divine  spirit  made  upon  the  capacities  and 
powers  of  their  souls  or  inward  man,  and  perhaps 
some  of  them  oral  traditions  delivered  from  fa- 
ther to  son." 

To  the  same  point  Thomas  Beaven  quotes  the 
ever  memorable  John  Hales,  who,  in  his  goldea 
remains,  writes  in  the  following  manner :  "  The 
love  and  favour,  which  it  pleased  God  to  beaj'  our 


RELIGION.  139 

ratliers  before  the  law,  so  far  prevailed  with  him^ 
as  that  without  any  books  and  writings,  by  fa- 
miliar and  friendly  conversing  with  them,  and  com- 
municating himself  unto  them,  he  made  them  re- 
ceive and' understand  his  laws,  their  inward  con- 
ceits and  intellectuals  being,  after  a  wonderful 
manner,  figured  as  it  were  and  cliaractered  by  his 
spirit,  so  that  they  could  not  but  see  and  consent 
unto,  and  confess  the  truth  of  them.  Which  way 
of  manifesting  his  will  unto  many  other  gracious 
privileges  it  had,  above  that  which  in  after  ages 
came  in  place  of  it,  had  this  added,  that  it  brought 
with  it  unto  the  man  to  whom  it  was  made,  a  pre- 
servation against  all  doubt  and  hesitancy,  and  a  full 
assurance  both  who  the  author  was,  and  how  far 
his  intent  and  meaning  reached.  AVe  who  are  their 
offspring  ought,  as  St.  Chrysotom  tells  us,  so  to 
have  demeaned  ourselves,  that  it  might  have  been 
with  us  as  it  was  with  them,  that  we  might  have 
had  no  need  of  writing,  no  other  teacher  but  the 
spirit,  no  other  books  but  our  hearts,  no  other 
means  to  have  been  taught  the  things  of  God." 

That  the  spirit  of  God,  as  described  by  Tho- 
mas Beaven  and  the  venerable  John  Hales,  was 
the  great  instructor  or  enlightener  of  man  during 
the  period  we  are  speaking  of,  the  Quakers  believe, 
from  what  they  conceive  to  be  the  sense  of  the 


140  RELIGION. 

holy  scriptures  on  this  subject.  For  in  the  iirst 
place,  they  coi^sider  it  as  a  position,  deducible 
from  the  expressions  of  Moses,  ^  that  the  spirit 
of  God  had  striven  with  those  of  the'antedihiviaa 
■world.  They  believe,  therefore,  that  it  was  this 
spirit  (and  because  the  means  were  adequate,  and 
none  more  satisfactory  to  them  can  be  assigned) 
which  mformed  Cain,  before  any  written  lavv  ex- 
isted, and  this  even  before  the  murder  of  his  bro- 
ther, that ' "  if  he  did  well,  he  should  be  accepted; 
but  if  not,  sin  should  lie  at  his-door."  The  same 
spirit  they  conceive  to  have  illuminated  the  mind 
of  Se^h,  but  in  a  higher  degree  than  ordinarily  the 
mind  of  Enoch;  for  he  is  the  ftrst,  of  whom  it  is 
recorded,  that  ^  "  he  walked  with  God."  It  is 
also  considered"  by  the  Quakers  as  having  afforded 
a  rule  of  conduct  to  those  who  lived  after  the  flood. 
Thus  Joseph  is  described  as  saying,  when  there  is 
no  record  of  any  verbal  instruction  from  the  Al- 
mighty on  this  subject,  and  at  a  time  when  there 
was  no  scripture  or  written  law  of  God,  i  ''  How 
then  can  I  do  this  great  wickedness,  and  sin 
against  God  ?"  It  illuminated  others  aL^o,  but  in 


h  Gen.  6.  5.  k  Gen.  5.24. 

i  lb.  4.  7.  1  lb.  39.  9.— The  traditionary  laws  of 

Noah  were  in  force  at  this  time;  but  th>  y  only  specified  three  ofieaces 
t)etx\'een  man  and  man. 


RELIGION  Ul 

a  cfieater  or  less  degree,  as  before.     Thus  Noah 
buccanie  a  preacher  of  righteousness.     Tlius  Ahra 
iiaiii,  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  were  favoured  with  a  great- 
er measure  of  it  than  otliers  who  lived  in  their 
own  times. 

From  these  times  to  the  coming  of  Jesus  Christ, 
whicii  is  the  second  of  the  cases  in  question,  the 
same  spirit,  according  to  the  Quakers,  still  conti- 
nued its  teachings,  and  this  notw  ithstanding  tiie  in- 
troduction of  the  Mosaic  lavv>  for  this,  which  was 
engraven  on  tables  of  stone,  did  not  set  aside  the 
law  that  was  engraven  on  the  heart.  It  assisted, 
first,  outwardly,  in  turning  mens'  minds  to  God; 
and  secondly,  in  fitting  them  as  a  schoolmaster 
for  attention  to  the  internal  impressions  by  his  spi- 
rit. That  the  spirit  of  God  was  still  the  great 
teacher,  the  Quakers  conceive  to  be  plain;  for 
the  sacred  writings  from  Moses  to  Malachi  affirm 
it  for  a  part  of  the  period  now  assigned;  and  for 
the  rest  we  have  as  evidence  the  reproof  of  the 
Martyr  Stephen,  and  the  sentences  from  the  New 
Testament  quoted  in  the  fourth  chaptt*r.  And  in 
the  same  manner  as  this  spirit  had  been  given  to 
some  in  a  greater  measure  than  to  others,  both  be- 
fore and  after  the  deluge,  so  the  Quakers  believe 
it  to  have  been  given  more  abundantly  to  Aloses 
and  the  prophets,  than  to  others  of  the  same  na- 


142  RELIGION'. 

tion  ;  for  they  believe  that  the  law  in  particular, 
and  that  the  general  writings  of  Moses,  and  those 
of  the  prophets  also,  were  of  divine  inspiration,  or 
the  productions  of  the  spirit  of  God. 

"With  respect  to  the  Heathens  or  Gentiles,  which 
is  the  third  case,  the  Quakers  believe  that  God's 
holy  spirit  became  a  guide  also  to  them,  and  fur- 
nished them,  as  it  had  done  the  patriarchs  and 
the  Jews,  with  a  rule  of  practice.  For  even  these, 
who  had  none  of  the  advantages  of  scripture  or 
of  a  written  divine  law,  believed,  many  of  them, 
in  God,  such  as  Orpheus,  Hesiod,  Thales,  Pytha- 
goras, Socrates,  Plato,  Cicero,  and  others.  And 
of  these  it  may  be  observed,  that  it  was  their  ge- 
neral belief,  as  well  as  it  was  the  belief  of  many 
others  in  those  days,  that  there  was  a  divine  light 
or  spirit  in  man,  to  enable  him  to  direct  himself 
aright. 

Among  the  remnants  that  have  been  preserved 
of  the  sayings  of  Pythagoras,  are  the  following 
which  relate  to  this  subject :  "  Those  things 
which  are  agreeable  to  God,  cannot  be  known, 
except  a  man  hear  God  himself."  Again — "  But 
having  overcome  these  things,  thou  shalt  know 
the  cohabitation  or  dwelling  togetiier  of  the  im- 
mortal God  and  mortal  man.  Mis  work  is  life — 
The  work  of  God  is  immortality,  eternal  life." 


RELIGION.  IA3 

*'  Tlie  most  excellent  thing,  says  Timoeus, 
that  the  soul  is  awakened  to,  is  her  guide  or  good 
genius;  but  if  she  be  rebellious  to  it,  it  will  prove 
her  diemon,  or  tormentor." 

"  It  was  frequently  said  of  Socrates,  he  had  the 
guide  of  his  life  within  him,  which,  it  was  told  his 
father  Sophroniscus,  Avould  be  of  more  worth  to 
liim  than  live  liundred  masters.  He  called  it  his 
good  angel,  or  spirit;  that  it  suggested  to  his 
mind  what  was  good  and  virtuous,  and  mclined 
and  disposed  him  to  a  strict  and  pious  life ;  that 
it  furnished  him  with  divine  knowledge,  and  im- 
pelled him  very  often  to  speak  publicly  to  the  peo- 
ple, sometimes  in  a  way  of  severe  reproof,  at  other 
times  to  information." 

Plato  says,  "  the  light  and  spirit  of  God  are  as 
wings  to  the  soul,  or  as  that  which  raiseth  up  the 
soul  into  a  sensible  communion  with  God  above 
the  world." 

"  I  have,  says  Seneca,  a  more  clear  and  certain 
light;,  by  which  I  may  judge  the  truth  from  false- 
hood :  that  which  belongs  to  the  happiness  of  the 
soul,  the  eternal  mind  will  direct  to."  Again — 
''  It  is  a  foolish  thing  for  thee  to  wish  for  that 
which  thou  canst  not  obtain.  God  is  near  thee, 
and  he  is  in  thee.  The  good  spirit  sits  or  resides 
within  usj  the  observer  of  ©ur  ,c[0od  and  evil  a<:- 


144  RELIGION. 

tions.     As  he  is  dealt  with  by  us,  he  dealeth  with 
lis." 

The  Quakers  produce  these,  and  a  multitude 
of  other  quotations,  which  it  is  not  necessary  to 
repeat,  to  show  that  the  same  spirit,  which  taught 
the  patriarchs  before  the  law,  and  the  Jews  after 
it,  taught  the  Gentiles  also.  But  this  revelation, 
or  manifestation  of  the  spirit,  was  not  confined,  in 
the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  to  the  Roman  or  Greek 
philosophers,  or  to  those  who  had  greater  preten- 
sions than  common  to  human  wisdom.  They  be- 
lieve that  no  nation  wa:-;  ever  discovered,  among 
those  of  antiquity,  to  have  been  so  wild  or  igno- 
rant as  not  to  have  acknowledged  a  divinity,  or  as* 
not  to  have  known  and  established  a  difference  be 
tween  good  and  evil. 

Cicero  says,  *'  there  is  no  country  so  barbarous, 
no  one  of  all  men  so  savage,  as  that  some  appre- 
hension of  the  Gods  hath  not  tinctured  his  mind. 
That  many  indeed,  says  he,  thuik  corruptly  of 
them,  must  be  admitted ;  but  this  is  the  effect  ol' 
vicious  custom.  For  all  do  believe  that  there  is  a 
divine  power  and  nature." 

Maximus  Tyriensis,  a  platonic  philosopher, 
and  a  man  of  considerable  knowledge,  observes, 
that  "  notwithstanding  the  great  contention  and 
variety  of  opinions  which  have  existed  concern- 


RELIGION.  145 

ino  the  nature  and  essence  of  God,  yet  the  law 
and  reason  of  every  country  are  harmonious  in 
these  respects,  namely,  that  there  is  one  God,  the 
king  and  father  of  all— and  that  the  many  are  but 
servants  and  co-rulers  unto  God:  that  in  this  the 
Greek  and  the  Bailnirian,  the  Islander  and  the  in- 
habitant of  the  continent,  the  wise  and  the  foolish, 
S!)eak  the  same  language.  Go,  says  he,  to  the  ut- 
most bounds  of  the  ocean,  and  you  find  God  there. 
But  if  there  hath  been,  says  he,  since  the  existence 
of  time,  two  or  three  atheistical,  vile,  senseless  in- 
dividuals, whose  eyes  and  ears  deceive  them,  and 
who  are  maimed  in  their  very  soid,  an  irrational 
and  barren  species,  as  monstrous  as  a  lion  without 
courage,  an  ox  without  horns,  or  a  bird  without 
wings,  yet  out  of  these  you  will  be  able  to  under- 
stand something  of  God.  For  they  know  and  con- 
fess him  whether  they  will  or  not." 

Plutarch  says  again,  "  that  if  a  man  were  to 
travel  through  the  world,  he  might  possibly  find 
cities  without  walls,  without  letters,  without  kings, 
without  wealth,  without  schools,  and  without  the- 
atres. But  a  city  without  a  temple,  or  that  useth 
no  worship,  or  no  prayers,  no  one  ever  saw.  And 
he  believes  a  city  may  more  easily  be  built  with- 
out a  foundation,  or  ground  to  set  it  on,  than 
a  community  of  men  have  or  keep  a  consistency 
without  religion." 

VOL.    II.  U 


U6  RELIGION. 

Of  those  nations  w  liich  were  reputed  wild  and 
ignorant  in  ancient  times,  the  Scythians  may  be 
brought,  next  to  the  Greeks  and  Romans,  as  an 
instance  to  elucidate  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers 
still  farther  on  this  subject.  The  speech  of  the 
Scythian  Ambassadors  to  Alexander  the  Great, 
as  handed  down  to  us  by  Quintus  Curtius,  has 
been  often  cited  by  writers,  not  only  on  account 
of  its  beauty  and  simplicity,  but  to  show  us  the 
moral  sentiments  of  the  Scythians  in  those  times. 
I  shall  make  a  few  extracts  from  it  on  this  occa- 
sion. 

"  Had  the  Gods  given  thee,  says  one  of  the 
Ambassadors  to  Alexander,  a  body  proportionable 
to  thy  ambition,  the  whole  Universe  would  have 
been  too  little  for  thee.  With  one  hand  thou 
wouldest  touch  the  East,  and  with  the  other  the 
West ;  and  not  satisfied  with  this,  thou  wouldest 
follow  the  Sun,  and  know  where  he  hides  him- 
self."  

"  But  what  have  we  to  do  with  thee?  We 
never  set  foot  in  thy  country.  May  not  those 
who  inhabit  woods  be  allowed  to  live  without 
knowing  who  thou  art,  and  whence  thou  comcst  ? 
We  will  neither  command  nor  submit  to  any 
man." 

"  But  thou,  who  boastest  thy  coming  to  extir- 
pate robbers,  thou  thyself  art  the  greatest  robber 
upon  earth." 


RELIGION.  147 

*'  Thou  hast  possessed  thyself  of  Lydia,  invaded 
Syria,  Persia,  and  Bactriana.  Thou  art  Ibrining 
a  design  to  march  as  far  as  India,  and  thou  now 
comest  hither,  to  seize  upon  our  herds  of  cattle. 
The  great  possessions  which  thou  hast,  only  make 
thee  covet  more  eagerly  what  thou  hast  not." 

"  We  are  informed  that  the  Greeks  speak  jest- 
ingly of  our  Scythian  deserts,  and  that  they  are 
even  become  a  proverb ;  but  we  are  fonder  of  our 
solitudes,  than  of  thy  great  cities." 

"  If  thou  art  a  god,  thou  oughtest  to  do  good 
to  mortals,  and  not  to  deprive  them  of  their  pos- 
sessions. If  thou  art  a  mere  man,  reflect  on  what 
thou  art." 

"  Do  not  fancy  that  the  Scythians  will  take  an 
oath  in  their  concluding  of  an  alliance  with  thee. 
The  only  oath  among  them  is  to  keep  their  word 
without  swearing.  Such  cautions  as  these  do  in- 
deed become  Greeks,  who  sign  their  treaties,  and 
call  upon  the  Gods  to  witness  them.  Bat,  with 
regard  to  us,  our  religion  consists  in  being  sin- 
cere, and  in  keeping  the  promises  we  have  made. 
That  man,  who  is  not  ashamed  to  break  his  word 
with  men,  is  not  ashamed  of  deceiving  the 
Gods." 

To  the  account  contained  in  these  extracts,  it 
may  be  added,  that  the  Scythians  are  described  by 
Herodotus,  Justin,  Horace,  and  others,  as  a  mo- 


148  RELIGION. 

ral  people.  They  had  the  character  of  maintain- 
ing justice.  Theft  or  robbery  was  severely  pu- 
nished among  them.  They  believed  infidelity  af- 
ter tlie  marriage-engagement  to  be  deserving  of 
death.  They  coveted  neither  silver  nor  gold. 
They  refused  to  giv  e  the  name  of  goods  or  riches 
to  any  but  estimable  things,  such  as  health,  cou- 
rage, liberty,  strength,  sincerity,  innocence,  and 
the  like.  They  received  friends  as  relations,  or 
considered  friendship  as  so  sacred  an  alliance, 
that  it  differed  but  little  from  alliance  by  blood. 
These  principles  of  the  Scythians,  as  far  as  they 
are  well  founded,  the  Quakers  believe  to  have 
originated  in  their  more  than  ordinary  attention 
to  that  divine  principle  which  was  given  to  them, 
equally  with  the  rest  of  mankind,  for  their  in- 
struction in  moral  good  ;  to  that  same  principle, 
which  Socrates  describes  as  having  suggested  to 
his  mind  that  which  was  good  and  virtuous,  or 
which  Seneca  describes  to  reside  in  men  as  an  ob- 
server of  good  and  evil.  For  the  Scythians,  living 
in  solitary  and  desert  places,  had  but  little  com- 
munication for  many  ages  with  the  rest  of  man- 
kind, and  did  not  obtain  their  system  of  morality 
from  other  quarters.  From  the  Greeks  and  Ro- 
mans, who  were  the  most  enliglitened,  they  de- 
rived no  moral  benefit.  For  Slrabo  informs  us, 
that  their  morals  had  been  wholly  corrupted  in 


RELIGION.  149 

his  time,  and  that  this  wretched  change  had  taken 
phice  in  conseqnence  of  tlieir  intercourse  with 
these  nations.  That  they  had  no  scripture  or 
written  law  of  God  is  equally  evident.  Neither 
did  they  collect  their  morality  from  the  perusal  or 
observance  of  any  ])articular  laws  that  had  heen 
left  them  by  their  ancestors  ;  for  the  same  author, 
who  gives  them  the  high  character  just  mentioned, 
says  that  they  were  found  in  the  practice  of  Jus- 
tice, ■"  "  not  on  account  of  any  laws,  but  on  ac- 
count of  their  own  nafiu-al  genius  or  disposition^ 
Neither  were  they  found  in  this  practice,  because 
tliey  had  exerted  their  reason  in  discovering  that 
virtue  was  so  much  more  desirable  than  vice  ;  for 
the  same  author  declares,  that  nature,  and  not 
reason,  had  made  them  a  moral  peoi)le :  for  "  "  it 
seems  surprising,  says  he,  that  nature  should  have 
given  to  them  what  the  Greeks  have  never  been 
able  to  attain  either  in  consequence  of  the  long 
succession  of  doctrines  of  their  wise  men,  or  of  the 
precepts  of  their  philosophers;  and  that  the  man- 
ners of  a  barbarous,  should  be  preferable  to  those 
of  a  refnied  people." 

This  opinion,  that  the  spirit  of  God  v;as  afford- 


m  Justitia  gentis  Ingeniis  culta,  non  Leglbus. 

n  Proisus  ut  admirabile  videatur,  hoc  illis  natuiam  dare,  quod  Gracci 
loiigi  sapientiiim  ductrina  jirsceptisque  philosoplioruuj  constqui  nequt-uiit, 
■  ultosque  mores  incultx  barbariac;  collatione  snperari. 


150  RELIGION. 

ed  as  a  light  to  lighten  the  Gentiles  of  the  ancient 
world,  the  Quakers  derive  from  the  authorities 
which  I  have  now  mentioned  ;  that  is,  from  the  evi- 
dence which  history  has  afforded,  and  from  the 
sentiments  which  the  Gentiles  have  discovered 
themselves  upon  this  subject.  But  they  conceive 
that  the  question  is  put  out  of  all  doubt  by  these 
remarkable  words  of  the  Apostle  Paul.  "  "  For 
when  the  Gentiles,  which  have  not  the  law,  do  by 
nature  the  things  contained  in  the  law,  these, 
having  not  the  law,  are  a  law  unto  themselves  : 
which  shew  the  work  of  the  law  written  on  their 
hearts,  their  conscience  also  bearing  witness,  and 
their  thoughts  the  mean  while  accusing,  or  else 
excusing  one  another."  And  here  it  may  be  ob- 
served, that  the  Quakers  believe  also,  that  in 
the  same  manner  as  the  spirit  of  God  enlight- 
ened the  different  Gentile  nations  previously  to 
the  time  of  the  apostle,  so  it  continues  to  enlight- 
en those,  which  have  been  discovered  since ;  for 
no  nation  has  been  found  so  ignorant,  as  not  to 
make  an  acknowledgment  of  superior  spirit,  and 
to  know  the  difference  between  good  and  evil. 
Hence  it  may  be  considered  as  illuminating  tliose 
nations,  where  the  scriptures  have  never  reached, 
even  at  the  present  day. 

o  Rom,  2.  14.  15. 


RELIGION.  151 

M'ith  respect  to  the  last  case,  which  includes 
those  wlio  have  heard  with  their  outward  ears 
the  Gospel  of  Jesus  Christ,  the  Quakers  believe, 
that  the  spirit  of  God  has  continued  its  office  of  a 
spiritual  instructor  as  well  to  those  as  to  any  of 
the  persons  who  have  been  described.  For  the 
Gospel  is  no  where  said  to  supersede,  any  more 
than  the  law  of  Moses  did,  the  assistance  of  this 
spirit.  On  the  other  hand,  this  spirit  was  deemed 
necessary,  and  this  by  the  apostles  themselves, 
even  after  churches  had  been  established,  or  men 
had  become  Christians.  St.  Paul  declares,  ^  that 
whatever  spiritual  gifts  some  of  his  followers  might 
then  have,  and  however  these  gifts  might  then  dif- 
fer from  one  another,  the  spirit  of  God  was  given 
universally  to  man,  and  this  to  profit  withal.  He 
declares  again  that  i  "  as  many  as  were  led  by 
this  spirit,  these,  and  these  only,  possessed  the 
knowledge  that  was  requisite  to  enable  them  to 
become  the  sons  of  God."  And  in  his  letter  to 
the  Thessalonians,  who  had  become  a  Chrsitian 
church,  he  gave  them  many  particular  injunctions, 
among  which  one  was,  that  ""  they  would  not 
<]uench  or  extinguish  the  spirit. 

And  in  the  same  manner  as  this  spirit  was  deem- 
ed necessary  in  the  days  of  the  apostles,  ajid  this 
to  every  man  individually,  and  even  after  he  had 

p  1  Cor.  12.  7.  q  Rom.  8.  14.  r  1  Tbess.  5.  19. 


152  RELIGION. 

become  a  Christian,  so  the  Quakers  consider  it  to 
have  been  necessary  since,  and  to  continue  so, 
wherever  Christianity  is  professed.  For  many 
persons  may  read  the  holy  scriptures,  and  hear 
them  read  in  churches,  and  yet  not  feel  the  ne- 
cessary conviction  for  sin.  Here  then  the  Qua- 
kers conceive  the  spirit  of  God  to  be  still  necessary. 
It  comes  in  with  its  inward  monitions  and  reproofs, 
where  the  scripture  has  been  neglected  or  for- 
gotten. It  attempts  to  stay  the  arm  of  him  who 
is  going  to  offend,  and  frequently  averts  the  blow. 
Neither  is  this  spirit  unnecessary,  even  where 
men  profess  an  attention  to  the  literal  precepts  of 
the  Gospel.  For  in  proportion  as  men  are  in  the 
way  of  attending  to  the  outward  scriptures,  they 
are  in  the  way  of  being  inwardly  taught  of  God. 
But  without  this  inward  teaching  no  outward  teach- 
ing can  be  effectual ;  for  though  persons  may 
read  the  scriptures,  yet  they  cannot  spiritually  un- 
derstand them  J  and  though  they  may  admire  the 
Christian  religion,  yet  they  cannot  enjoy  it,  accord- 
ing to  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  but  through 
the  medium  of  the  spirit  of  God. 


RELIGION.  153 

CHAP.  VJI. 

SECT.  I. 

This  spirit,  as  it  has  been  given  uniiersallij,  so  it  has 
been  given  su^icientli/ — Hence  God  is  exonerated 
of  injustice,  and  men  are  left  witliout  excuse- — 
Those  loho  resist  this  spirit,  are  said  to  cjuench  it, 
and  mai)  become  so  hardened  in  time,  as  to  be  in- 
sensible of  its  impressions — Those  who  attend  to 
it,  may  be  said  to  be  in  the  tvay  of  redemption — 
Similar  sentiments  of  Monro — This  visitation, 
treatment,  and  influence  of  the  spirit,  usualli/  ex- 
plained by  the  Quakers  by  the  Parable  of  tlie 
sower. 


As  the  spirit  of  God  has  been  thus  afforded  to 
every  man,  since  the  foundation  of  the  world,  to 
profit  withal,  so  the  Quakers  say,  that  it  has  been 
given  to  him  in  a  sulTicient  measure  for  this  pur- 
pose. By  the  word  "  safficient"  we  are  not  to 
iimlerstand  that  this  divine  monitor  calls  upoil 
men  every  day  or  hour,  but  that  it  is  within  every 
man,  and  that  it  awakens  him  seasonably,  and  so 
often  during  the  term  of  his  natural  life,  as  to  ex- 
onerate God  from  the  charge  of  condemning  him 
VOL.  ir.  X 


154  RELIGION. 

unjustly,  if  he  fails  in  his  duty,  and  as  to  leave 
himself  without  excftse.  And  in  proportion  as  a 
-greater  or  less  measure  of  this  spirit  has  been  af- 
forded him,  so  he  is  more  or  less  guilty  in  the 
sight  of  his  Maker. 

If  any  should  resist  these  salutary  operations  of 
the  Holy  Spirit,  they  resist  it  to  their  own  con- 
demnation. 

Of  such  it  may  be  observed,  that  they  are  said 
to  quench  or  grieve  the  spirit,  and,  not  unfre- 
quently,  to  resist  God,  and  to  crucify  Christ 
afresh ;  for  God  and  Christ  and  the  Spirit  are 
considered  to  be  inseparably  united  in  the  scrip- 
tures. 

Of  such  also  it  may  be  again  observed,  that  if 
they  continue  to  resist  God's  holy  Spirit,  their 
feelings  may  become  so  callous  or  hardened  in 
time,  that  they  may  never  be  able  to  perceive  its 
notices  again,  and  thus  the  day  of  their  visitation 
may  be  over :  for  *  "  my  people,  saith  God,  would 
not  hearken  to  my  voice,  and  Israel  would  none 
of  me;  so  I  gave  them  up  to  their  own  hearts'  lusts, 
and  they  walked  in  their  own  counsels."  To  the 
same  import  was  the  saying  of  Jesus  Christ,  when 
he  wept  over  Jerusalem.  ^  "  If  thou  hadst  known, 
even  thou,  at  least  iu  this  thy  day,  the  things  which 

s  Psalm  81.  11.  12.  t  Luke  19.  42. 


RELIGION.  155 

belong  unto  thy  peace!  but  now  they  are  lild 
from  thine  eyes."  Asif  he  had  said,  there  was  a 
day,  in  which  ye,  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem, 
miglit  have  known  tliose  things  which  belonged 
to  your  peace.  I  was  then  willing  to  gather  yon, 
as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens,  but  as  ye  would 
not  sutler  me,  the  things  belonging  to  your  peace 
are  now  hid  from  your  eyes.  Ye  would  not  at- 
tend to  the  impressions  by  God's  Holy  Spirit,  when 
your  feelings  were  tender  and  penetrable,  and 
therefore  now,  the  day  having  passed  over,  ye  have 
lost  the  power  of  discerning  them. 

Those,  on  the  other  hand,  who,  during  this  vi- 
sitation of  the  Holy  Spirit,  attend  to  its  suggestions 
or  warnings,  are  said  to  be  in  the  way  of  their  re- 
demption or  salvation. 

These  sentiments  of  the  Quakers  on  this  sub- 
ject are  beautifully  described  by  Monro,  in  his 
just  measures  of  the  pious  institutions  of  youth. 
"  The  Holy  Spirit,  says  he,  solicits  and  importunes 
those  who  are  in  a  state  of  sin,  to  return,  by  in- 
ward motions  and  impressions,  by  suggesting  good 
thoughts  and  prompting  to  pious  resolutions,  by 
checks  and  controls,  by  conviction  of  sin  and  duty; 
sometimes  by  frights  and  terrors,  and  other  whiles 
by  love  and  endearments :  But  if  men,  notwith- 
standing all  his  loving  solicitations,  do  still  cherish 


156        .  RELIGION. 

and  cleave  to  their  lusts,  and  persevere  in  a  state 
of  sin,  they  are  then  said  to  resist  the  Holy  Ghost, 
wherehy  their  condition  becomes  viery  deplorable, 
and  their  conversion  very  difficult;  for  the  more 
men  resist  the  importunities,  and  stifle  the  motions 
of  the  Holy  Spirit,  the  stronger  do  the  chains  of 
their  corruption  and  servitude  become.  Every 
new  act  of  sin  gives  these  a  degree  of  strength,  and 
consequently  puts  a  new  obstacle  in  the  way  of 
conversion;  and  when  sin  is  turned  into  an  invete- 
rate and  rooted  habit,  (which  by  reiterated  commis- 
sions and  long  continuance  it  is)  then  it  becomes 
a  nature,  and  is  with  as  much  difficulty  altered  as 
nature  is.  "  Can  the  Ethiopian  change  his  colour, 
or  the  Leopard  his  spots  ?  Then  may  you  also  do 
good,  who  are  accustomed  to  do  evil," 

"  The  Holy  Spirit  again,  says  be,  inspires  the 
prayers  of  those  who,  in  consequence  of  his  pow- 
erful operations,  haye  crucified  the  flesh  with  thq 
affections  and  lusts,  with  devout  and  filial  affec- 
tions, "  and  makes  intercession  for  them  with 
sighs  and  groans  that  cannot  be  uttered.  He 
guides  and  manages  them.  The  sons  of  God  are 
led  by  the  spirit  of  God.  He  makes  his  blessed 
fruits,  righteousness,  peace,  joy,  and  divine  love, 
more  and  more  to  abound  in  them  ;  he  confirms 
them  in  goodness,  persuades  them  to  perseverance, 
and  seals  them  to  the  day  of  redemption." 


RELIGION.  157 

The  Quakers  usually  elucidate  this  visitation, 
treatment,  and  influence  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  by  the 
parable  of  the  sower,  as  recorded  by  three  of  the 
Evangelists.  "  Now  the  seed  is  the  word  of  God." 
But  as  the  word  of  God  and  the  spirit,  according 
to  St.  John  the  Evangelist,  are  the  same,  the  pa- 
rable is  considered  by  the  Quakers  as  relating  to 
that  divine  light  or  spirit  which  is  given  to  man 
for  his  spiritual  instruction  and  salvation.  As 
the  seed  was  sown  in  all  sorts  of  ground,  good, 
bad,  and  indifferent,  so  this  light  or  s])irit  is  af- 
forded, without  exception,  to^all.  As  thorns 
choked  this  seed,  and  hindered  it  from  coming 
to  perfection,  so  bad  customs,  or  the  pleasures 
and  cares  of  the  world,  hinder  men  from  at- 
tending to  this  divine  principle  within  them,  and 
render  it  unfruitful  in  their  hearts.  And  as  the 
seed  in  the  good  ground  was  not  interrupted,  and 
therefore  produced  fruit  in  abundance,  so  this  spi- 
ritual principle,  where  it  is  not  checked,  but  re- 
ceived and  cherished,  produces  also  abundance  of 
spiritual  fruit  in  the  inward  man,  by  putting  him 
into  the  way  of  redemption  from  sin,  or  of  holiness 
of  life. 


158  RELIGION.. 

SECT.  II. 

The  spirit  of  God^  therefore,  besides  its  office  of  a 
teacher,  performs  that  of  a  Redeemer  of  men — Re~ 
demption  outward  and  inward-^— Outward  is  hy  ths 
sufferings  of  Jesus  Christ — These  produce  forgive^- 
siess  of  past  sins,  and  put  7nen  into  a  capacity  of 
salvation — inward,  or  the  office  now  alluded  to,  is 
by  the  operation  of  the  spirit — This  converts  men, 
and  preserves  them  from  sins  to  come — outward 
and  inward  connected  with  each  other: 


JL  HE  spirit  oF  God,  which  we  have  seen  to  be 
given  to  men,  and  to  be  given  them  universally, 
to  enable  them  to  distinguish  between  good  and 
evil,  was  given  them  also,  the  Quakers  believe, 
for  another  purpose,  namely,  to  redeem  or  save 
them.  Redemption  and  salvation,  in  this  sense, 
are  the  same,  in  the  language  of  the  Quakers,  and 
mean  a  purification  from  the  sins  or  pollutions  of 
the  world,  so  that  a  new  birth  may  be  produced, 
and  maintained  in  the  inward  man. 

As  the  doctrine  of  the  Quakers,  with  respect  to 
redemption,  ditTcrs  from  that  which  generally  ob- 
tains, I  shall  allot  this  chapter  to  tui  explanation 


RELIGION.  159 

of  the  distinctions,   which  the   Quakers   usually 
make  upon  this  subject. 

The  Quakers  never  make  use  of  the  words 
"  orisinai  sin,"  because  these  are  never  to  be 
found  in  the  sacred  writings.  They  consider  man, 
however,  as  in  a  fiillen  or  degraded  state,  and  as 
inclined  and  liable  to  sin.  They  consider  him,  in 
short,  as  having  the  seed  of  sin  within  him,  which 
he  inherited  from  his  parent  Adam.  But  though 
they  acknowledge  this,  they  dare  not  say,  that  sin 
is  imputed  to  him  on  account  of  Adam's  trans- 
gression, or  that<he  is  chargeable  with  sin,  until  he 
actually  commits  it. 

As  every  descendant,  however,  of  Adam,  has 
this  seed  within  him,  which,  amidst  the  numerous 
temptations  that  beset  him,  he  allows  sometime 
or  other  to  germinate,  so  he  stands  in  need  of  a 
Redeemer ;  that  is,  of  some  power  that  shall  be 
able  to  procure  pardon  for  past  offences,  and  of 
some  power  that  shall  be  able  to  preserve  him  in 
the  way  of  holiness  for  the  future.  To  expiate 
himself,  in  a  manner  satisfactory  to  the  Almighty, 
for  so  foul  a  stain  upon  his  nature  as  that  of  sin, 
is  utterly  beyond  his  abilities  ;  for  no  good  action, 
that  he  can  do,  can  do  away  that  which  has  been 
once  done.  And  to  preserve  himself  in  a  state  of 
t^irtue  for  the  future,  is  equally  out  of  his  own  pow- 


160  RELIGION. 

er,  because  this  cannot  be  done  by  any  effort  of  his 
reason,  but  only  by  the  conversion  of  his  heart. 
It  has  therefore  pleased  the  Almighty  to  find  a 
remedy  for  him  in  each  of  these  cases.  Jesus 
Christ,  by  the  sacrifice  of  his  own  body,  expiates 
for  sins  that  are  past,  and  the  spirit  of  God,  which 
has  been  afforded  to  him,  as  a  spiritual  teacher, 
lias  the  power  of  cleansing  and  purifying  the 
heart  so  thoroughly,  that  he  may  be  preserved 
from  sins  to  come. 

That  forgiveness  of  past  sins  is  procured  by  the 
sacrifice  of  Jesus  Christ,  is  obvious  from  various 
passages  in  the  holy  scriptures.  Thus  the  apostle 
Paul  says,  that  Jesus  Christ  "^  "  was  set  forth  to 
be  a  propitiation  through  faitli  in  his  blood,  to 
declare  his  righteousness  for  the  remission  of  sins 
that  are  past  through  the  forbearance  of  God." 
And  in  his  epistle  to  the  Colossians  he  says,  "  "  In 
whom  we  have  redemption  through  his  blood, 
even  the  forgiveness  of  sins."_  This  redemption 
may  be  called  outward,  because  it  has  been  effect- 
ed by  outward  means,  or  by  the  outward  suffer- 
ings of  Jesus  Christ ;  and  it  is  considered  as  put- 
ting men,  in  consequence  of  this  forgiveness,  into 
the  capacity  of  salvation.  The  Quakers,  how- 
ever, attribute  this  redemption  wholly  to  the  love 

u  Rora.  3,  Si..  v  Coloss.  1.  U.- 


RELIGION.  161 

of  God,  air.l  not  to  tlie  impossibility  of  his  for- 
giveness without  a  plenary  satisfaction,  or  to  tiie 
motive  of  lieaping  all  his  vengeance  on  the  head 
of  Jesus  Christ,  that  he  might  appease  his  own 
wratli. 

Tlie  other  redemption,  on  the  other  hand,  is 
called  inward,  because  it  is  considered  by  the  Qua- 
kers to  be  an  inward  redemption  from  the  power 
of  sin,  or  a  cleansing  the  heart  from  the  pollutions 
of  the  world.  This  inward  redemption  is  produ- 
ced by  the  spirit  of  God,  as  before  stated,  operating 
on  the  hearts  of  ijien,  and  so  cleansing  and  puri- 
fying them,  as  to  produce  a  new  birth  in  the  in- 
ward man  ;  so  that  the  same  spirit  of  God,  which 
has  been  given  to  men  in  various  degrees  since 
the  foundation  of  the  world,  as  a  teacher  in  their 
spiritual  concerns,  which  hath  visited  every  man 
in  his  day,  and  which  hath  exhorted  and  reproved 
him  for  his  spiritual  welfare,  ^  has  the  power  of 
preserving  him  from  future  sin,  and  of  leading  him 
to  salvation. 

That  this  inward  redemption  is  performed  by 
the  spirit  of  God,  the  Quakers  show  from  various 
passages  in  the  sacred  writings.     Thus  St.  Paul 

w  The  Quakers  believe,  however,  that  this  spirit  was  more  plentifully 
diffused, andthat  greater  gifts  were  given  to  aien,  after  Jesus  was  glorified^ 
than  before.     Ephes.  4.  8. 

VOL.   II.  Y 


1(>S  RELIGIO>J. 

says,  ""  '^  According  to  bis  mercy  he  hath  saved  u& 
by  the  washing  of  regeneration,  and  the  renewing 
of  the  Holy  Ghost."  The  same  apostle  says, 
again,  y  "  It  is  the  law  of 'the  Spirit  that  maketh 
i'ree  from  the  law  of  sin  and  death."  And  airain — ■ 
^  "  As  many  as  are  led  by  the  spirit  of  God,  they 
are  the  sons  of  God." 

The  Quakers  say,  that  this  inward  redemption 
or  salvation  as  effected  by  the  spirit,  is  obvious  al- 
so from  the  experience  of  all  good  men,  or  from 
the  manner  in  which  many  have  experienced  a 
total  conversion  or  change  of  heart.  For  though 
there  are  undoubtedly  some  who  have  gone  on  so 
gradually  in  their  reformation  from  vice  to  virtue, 
that  it  may  have  been  considered  to  be  the  effect 
of  reason,  which  has  previously  determined  on 
the  necessity  of  a  holy  life,  yet  the  change  from 
vice  to  holiness  has  often  been  so  rapid  and  de- 
cisive, as  to  leave  no  doubt  whatever,  that  it  could 
not  have  been  produced  by  any  effort  of  reason, 
but  only  by  some  divine  operation,  which  could 
only  have  been  tliat  of  the  spirit  of  God, 

Of  these  two  kinds  of  redemption,  the  outward 
and  the  inward,  of  which  the  latter  \vill  be  the 
subject  of  our  consideration,  it  may  be  observed, 

X-  Titus  3.  5.  V  RoiiK  S.  2.  '  .  z  Uoni.  8.  l-k 


RELIGIGX.  163 

that  they  go  hand  in  hand  together  =».  St.  Paul 
has  coupled  them  in  these  words :  "  {'or  if,  when 
we  were  enemies,  we  were  reconciled  lo  God  by 
the  death  of  his  son,  much  more,  being  reconciled, 
we  shall  be  saved  by  his  life  ;"  that  is,  by  the  life 
of  his  spirit  working  inwardly  in  us. — And  as  they 
go  together  in  the  mind  of  the  apostle,  so  they  go 
together  as  to  the  benefit  of  their  effects.  For,  in 
the  first  place,  the  outward  redemption  takes  place, 
when  the  inward  has  begun.  And,  secondly,  the 
outward  redemption,  or  the  sufferings  of  Jesus 
Christ,  which  redeem  from  past  sins,  cannot  have 
any  efficacy  till  the  inward  has  begun,  or  while 
men  remain  in  their  sins;  or,  in  other  words,  no 
man  can  be  entitled  to  the  forgiveuess  of  sins 
that  have  been  committed,  till  there  has  been  a 
change  in  the  inward  man  ;  for  St.  John  intimates, 
that  ^  the  blood  of  Christ  does  not  cleanse  from 
sin,  except  men  walk  in  the  light,  or,  to  use  an 
expression  synonimous  with  the  Quakers,  except 
men  walk  in  the  spirit. 

a  Rom.  5.  10.  h  John  1.  G.  7 


\ 


164  RELIGION. 

SECT.  III. 

Imvard  redemptions  which  thus  goes  on  by  the  opera- 
tion of  the  Holy  Spirit,  has  the  power  of  produc- 
ing a  new  birth  in  men — This  office  of  the  spirit 
acknowledged  by  other  Christians —  Monro — Ham- 
mond— Locke — //  ha's  the  power  also  of  leading  to 
perfection — Sentiments  of  the  Quakers  as  to  per- 
fection— and  of  the  ever  memorable  John  Hales — 
Gell — Monro — This  power  of  inward  redemption 
bestowed  upon  all. 


A  H^iSiifferings  then  of  Jesus  Christ,  having  by 
means  df  the  forgiveness  of  past  sins,  put  men  in- 
to a  capacity  for  salvation,  the  remaining  part  of 
salvation,  or  the  inward  redemption  of  man,  is 
performed  by  the  operation  of  the  Holy  Spirit ; 
of  which,  however,  it  must  be  remembered,  that 
a  more  plentiful  diffusion  is  considered  by  the 
Qiakers  to  have  been  given  to  men  after  the  as- 
cension of  Jesus  Christ,  than  at  any  former  period. 
The  nature  of  this  inward  redemption,  or  the 
nature  of  this  new  office,  ^^hich  it  performs  in  ad- 
dition to  that  of  a  religious  teacher,  may  be  seen 
in  the  following  account. 


RELIGION.  165 

It  has  the  power,  the  Qunker'^  belie^'C,  of  cheek- 
ing and  preventing  batl  inclinations  and  passions  ; 
of  cleansing  and  purifying  the  heart  •,  of  destroy- 
ing tlie  carnal  mind  ;  of  making  all  old  thingi- 
pass  away  ;  of  introdncing  new  ;  of  raising  our 
spiritual  senses,  so  as  to  make  us  delight  in  the 
things  of  God,  and  to  put  us  above  the  enjoyment 
of  earthly  pleasures.  Redeeming  thus  from  the 
pollutions  of  the  world,  and  leading  to  spiritual 
purity,  it  forms  a  new  creature.  It  produces  the 
new  man  in  the  heart.  It  occasions  a  man  by  its 
quickening  power  to  be  born  again,  and  thus  puts 
him  into  the  wny  of  salvation.  "  "  For  verily  I 
say  unto  thee,  saj^s  Jesus  Christ  to  Nicodemus, 
except  a  man  be  born  again,  he  cannot  see  the 
kingdom  of  God." 

This  ofTice  and  power  of  the  spirit  of  God  is 
acknowledged  by  other  Christians.  Monro,  who 
has  been  before  quoted,  observes,  '"  that  the  soul, 
being  thus  raised  from  the  death  of  sin  and  born 
again,  is  divinely  animated,  and  discovers  that  it 
is  alive  by  the  vital  operations  which  it  performs." 

"  Again,  says  he,  this  blissful  presence,  the  re- 
generate who  are  delivered  from  the  dominion, 
and  cleansed  from  the  impurities  of  sin,  have  re- 

o  John  3.  3, 


166  RELIGION. 

covered,  and  it  is  on  the  account  of  it,  that  they 
are  said  to  be  an  habitation  of  God  through  the 
spirit  and  the  temples  of  the  Holy  Ghost.  For 
that  good  spirit  takes  possession  of  them,  resides 
in  their  hearts,  becomes  the  mover,  enlightener, 
and  director  of  all  their  faculties  and  powers,  gives 
a  hew  and  heavenly  tincture  and  tendency  to  all 
their  inclinations  and  desires,  and,  in  one  vv^ord, 
is  the  great  spring  of  all  they  think,  or  do,  or  say  j 
and  hence  it  is  that  they  are  said  to  walk  no  more 
after  the  flesh,  but  after  the  spirit,  and  to  be  led 
by  the  spirit  of  God." 

Dr.  Hammond,  in  his  paraphrase  and  annota- 
tions on  the  New  Testament,  observes,  that  "  he 
who  hath  been  born  of  God,  is  literally  he  who 
hath  had  such  a  blessed  change  wrought  in  him 
by  the  operation  of  God's  spirit  in  his  heart,  as  to 
be  translated  from  the  power  of  darkness  into  the- 
kingdom  of  his  dear  Son." 

"  As  Christ  in  the  flesh,  says  the  great  and  ve- 
nerable Locke,  was  wholly  exempt  from  all  taint 
and  sin,  so  we,  by  that  spirit  which  was  in  him, 
shall  be  exempt  from  the  dominion  of  carnal  lusts, 
if  we  make  it  our  choice,  and  endeavour  to  liye 
after  the  spirit." 

*'  Here  the  apostle,  says  Locke,  shows  that 
Christians  are  delivered  from  the  dominion  of  their 


RELIGION.  .  167 

carnal  lusts  by  the  spirit  of  God  that  is  given  to 
them,  and  dwells  in  them,  as  a  new  quickening 
principle  and  power,  by  which  they  arc  put  into 
the  state  of  a  spiritual  life,  wherein  their  nnembers 
are  made  capable  of  becoming  the  instruments  of 
righteousness." 

And  this  spirit  of  God,  which  thus  redeems  from 
the  pollutions  of  the  world,  and  puts  a  new  heart 
as  it  were  into  man,  is  considered  by  the  Quakers 
as  so  powerful  in  its  operations,  as  to  be  able  to 
lead  him  to  perfection.  By  this  the  Quakers  do 
not  mean  to  say,  that  the  perfection  of  man  is  at 
all  like  the  perfection  of  God  ;  because  the  per- 
fection of  the  former  is  capable  of  growth.  They 
believe,  however,  that,  in  his  renewed  state,  he 
may  be  brought  to  be  so  perfect,  as  to  be  able  to 
keep  those  commandments  of  God  which  are  en- 
joined him.  In  this  sense  they  believe  it  is,  that 
Noah  is  called  by  Moses  ^  a  just  and  perfect  man 
in  his  generation;  and  that  Job  is  described*  as  a 
perfect  and  an  upright  man;  and  that  the  evangelist 
Luke  speaks  of  Zacharias  and  Elizabeth  in  these 
words — ^  "  They  were  both  righteous  before  God, 
and  walked  in  all  the  commandments  and  ordi- 
nances of  the  Lord  blameless." 

That  man,  who  is  renewed  in  heart,  can  attain 

d  Gen.  6.  9.  e.  Xvb  1.  3.  f  Luke  1.  C. 


168  RELIGION. 

this  degree  of  perfection,  the  Quakers  think  it  but 
reasonable  to  suppose.  For  to  think  that  God 
has  given  man  any  law  to  keep,  v\hich  it  is  im- 
possible for  him,  when  aided  by  his  Holy  Spirit, 
to  keep,  or  to  think  that  the  power  of  Satan  can  be 
stronger  in  man  than  the  power  of  Christ,  is  to 
think  very  inadequately  of  the  Almighty,  and  to 
cast  a  dishonourable  reflection  on  his  goodness,  his 
justice,  and  his  power.  Add  to  which,  that  there 
would  not  have  been  such  expressions  in  the  New 
Testament,  as  those  of  Jesus  Christ — "  Be  ye  there- 
fore perfect,  even  as  your  Father  which  is  ui  Hea- 
ven is  perfect" — Nor  would  there  have  been  other 
expressions  of  the  Apostles  of  a  similar  meaning, 
if  the  renewed  man  had  not  possessed  the  power 
of  doing  the  will  of  God. 

This  doctrine  of  perfection  brought  the  Quakers 
into  disputes  with  persons  of  other  religious  de- 
nominations, at  the  time  of  their  establishment. 
But,  however  it  might  be  disapproved  of,  it  was 
not  new  in  these  times;  nor  was  it  originally  in- 
troduced by  them.  Some  of  the  fathers  of  tiie 
church,  and  many  estimable  divines  of  different 
countries,  had  adopted  it.  And  here  it  may  be 
noticed,  that  the  doctrine  had  been  received  also 
by  several  of  the  religious  in  our  own. 

In  the  golden  remains  of  the  ever  memorable 
John  Hales,  we  find,  that  "  through  the  grace  of 


} 


RELIGION.  169 

Him  that  doth  enable  us,  we  are  stronger  than 
Satan,  and  the  policy  of  Christian  warfare  hath  as 
many  means  to  keep  back  and  defend,  as  the  deep- 
est reach  of  Satan  hath  to  give  the  onset." 

"  St.  Angustinc,  says  this  amiable  writer,  was  of 
opinion,  that  it  was  possible  for  us  even  in  this 
natural  life,  seconded  by  the  grace  of  God,  per- 
fectly to  accomplish  what  the  law  requires  at  our 
hands."  In  the  Golden  Remains,  many  sentiments 
are  to  be  found  of  the  same  tenour. 

Bacon,  who  collected  and  published  Dr.  Robert 
Gell's  remains,  says  in  his  preface,  that  Dr.  Gell 
preached  before  King  Charles  the  first  on  Ephe- 
sians  4.  10.  at  New-Market,  in  the  year  1631,  a 
bold  discourse,  yet  becoming  him,  testifying  be- 
fore the  King  that  doctrine  he  taught  to  his  life's 
end,  "  the  possibil it}',  through  grace,  of  keeping 
the  law  of  God  in  this  life."  Whoever  reads 
these  venerable  Remains,  will  find  this  doctrine  in- 
culcated in  them. 

Monro,  who  lived  some  time  after  Dr.  Gell, 
continued  the  same  doctrine:  So  great,  says  he, 
in  his  just  measures,  is  the  goodness  and  benigni- 
ty of  God,  and  so  perfect  is  the  justice  of  his  na- 
ture, that  he  will  not,  cannot  command  impossi- 
bilities. Whatever  he  requires  of  mankind  by 
way  of  duty,  he  enables  them  to  perform  it — His 
grace  goes  before  and  assists  their  endeavours  j  so 

VOL.  II.  Z 


170  RELIGION. 

that  when  they  do  not  comply  with  his  injunctions;, 
it  is  because  they  will  not  employ  the  power  that 
he  has  given  them,  and  which  he  is  ready  to  in- 
crease and  heighten,  upon  their  dutiful  improve- 
ment of  what  they  have  already  received,  and 
their  serious  application  to  him  for  more." 

Again — "  Though  of  ourselves,  and  without 
Christ,  we  can  do  nothing;  yet  with  him  we  can 
do  all  things:  and  then,  he  adds  a  little  lower, 
why  should  any  duties  frighten  us,  or  seem  im- 
possible to  us  ?" 

Having  now  stated  it  to  be  the  belief  of  the 
Quakers,  that  the  spirit  of  God  acts  as  an  inward 
redeemer  to  man,  and  that  its  powers  are  such 
that  it  may  lead  him  to  perfection  in  the  way  ex- 
plained, it  remains  for  me  to  observe,  that  it  is 
their  belief  also,  that  this  spirit  has  been  given  for 
these  purposes,  without  any  exception,  to  all  of 
the  human  race:  or  in  the  same  manner  as  it  was 
given  as  an  universal  teacher,  so  it  has  been  given 
as  an  universal  redeemer  to  man,  and  that  it  acts 
in  this  capacity,  and  fulfils  its  office  to  all  those 
who  attend  to  its  inward  strivings,  and  encourage 
its  intluence  on  their  hearts. 

That  it  was  given  to  all  for  this  purpose,  they 
believe  to  be  manifest  from  the  Apostle  Paul:  e 
'''  for  the  grace  of  God,  says  he,  which  bringeth 

.5  Titus  2:  11. 


RELIGION.  171 

salvation,  hath  appeared  unto  all  men."  He  say^ 
ai^ain,  **  that  "  the  Gospel  was  preached  unto  every 
creature  which  is  under  Heaven."  He  defines  the 
Gospel  to  be  '  *'  the  power  of  God  unto  salvation 
to  every  one  that  believeth."  He  means  therefore 
that  this  power  of  inward  redemption  was  afforded 
to  all.  For  the  outward  Gospel  had  not  been 
preached  to  all  in  the  time  of  the  apostle ;  nor  has 
it  been  preached  to  all  even  at  the  present  day. 
But  tliese  passages  are  of  universal  import.  They 
imply  no  exception.  They  comprehend  every  in- 
dividual of  the  human  race. 

That  this  spirit  was  also  given  to  all  for  these 
purposes,  the  Quakers  believe,  when  they  consi- 
der other  passages  in  the  scriptures,  which  appear 
to  them  to  belong  to  this  subject.  For  they  con- 
sider this  spirit  to  have  begun  its  office  as  an  in- 
Avard  redeemer  with  ^  the  fall  of  the  first  man,  and 
to  have  continued  it  through  the  patriarchal  ages 
to  the  time  of  the  outward  Gospel,  when  there  was 
to  be  no  other  inward  redemption  but  by  the  same 
means.  Thus  by  the  promise  which  was  given 
to  Adam,  there  was  to  be  perpetual  enmity  be- 
tween the  seed  of  the  serpent  a^id  the  seed  of  the 


h  Coloss.  1.  23.  i  Rom.  1.  16. 

k  In  the  same  manner  Jesus  Christ  having  tasted  deatli  for  every  ma«, 
the  sacrifice,  or  outward  redemption,  looks  backwards  and  forwards,  as  weU 
to  Adam  as  to  those  who  lived  after  the  Gospel  times. 


173  RELIGION. 

woman,  though  the  latter  was  to  vanquish,  or  ai? 
the  Quakers  interpret  it,  between  the  spirit  of  sin 
and  the  spirit  of  God,  that  was  placed  in  man. 
This  promise  was  fully  accomplished  by  Jesus, 
(vdio  came  from  the  woman)  after  he  had  received 
immeasurably  the  spirit  of  God,  or  after  he  had 
become  the  Christ.  Bat  the  Quakers  consider  it 
to  have  been  partially  accomplished  by  many  from 
the  time  of  Adam  ;  for  they  believe  that  many, 
who  have  attended  to  the  seed  of  God,  or,  which 
is  the  same  thing,  ^  to  the  portion  of  tiie  spirit  of 
God  within  them,  have  witnessed  the  enmity  al- 
luded to,  and  have  bruised,  in  a  great  degree,  the 
power  of  sin  within  their  own  hearts,  or  have  ex- 
perienced in  these  early  times  the  redeeming 
povv'er  of  the  spirit  of  God.  And  except  this  be 
the  case,  the  Quakers  conceive  some  of  the  pas- 
sages, which  they  suppose  to  relate  to  this  subject, 
.not  to  be  so  satisfactorily  explicable  as  they  might 
be  rendered.  For  it  is  said  oi  Abraliam,  tliat  he 
saw  Christ's  day.  But  as  Abraham  died  long  be- 
fore the  visible  appearance  of  Christ  m  the  flesh, 
he  could  neither  have  seen  Christ  outwardly,  nor 
his  day.  It  is  still  affirmed  that  he  saw  Christ's 
day.  And  the  Quakers  say  they  believe  he  saw 
him  inwardly,  for  he  witnessed  in  his  own  spirit, 

1  1  Jo'iii.  5.  9.  Whosoever  is  born  of  GoJ  does  not  con.mit  sin,  for  his 
feed  rcmaiiicth  in  him,  nvA  he  cannot  sin,  because  lie  is  burn  cf  God. 


KKLTGION.  173 

which  is  the  same  thing,  the  redeeming  power  of 
the  spirit  of  God.  For  as  the  world  was  made  by 
the  spirit,  or  by  the  word,  which  is  frequently  in- 
terpreted to  be  Christ,  so  these  terms  are  synoni- 
mous,  and  often  used  the  one  for  the  other.  The 
Quakers  therefore  believe  Abraham  to  have  ex- 
perienced in  a  very  high  degree  the  power  "  of 
this  inward  redemption.  They  believe  also  that 
Job  experienced  it  in  an  extraordinary  manner. 
For  he  asserted  that  he  knew  "  that  his  redeemer 
lived."  But  Job  could  never  have  said  this,  ex- 
cept he  had  alluded  to  the  powerful  influence  with- 
in him,  which  had  purified  his  heart  from  the  pol- 
lutions of  sin.  For  being  as  early  as  the  time  of 
Moses,  he  could  never  have  seen  any  of  the  sacred 
writings  which  mentioned  Jesus  Ciirist  as  a  re- 
deemer, or  the  person  of  Jesus  Christ. 

The  Quakers  also  consider  David,  from  the  nu- 
merous expressions  to  be  found  in  the  Psalms,  as 
having  experienced  this  inward  redemption  also, 
and  in  the  same  manner  as  they  conceive  this 
spirit  to  have  striven  with  Abraham,  and  Job,  and 
David,  so  they  conceive  it  to  have  striven  with 
others  of  the  same  nation  for  their  inward  redemp- 
tion to  the  time  of  Jesus  Christ.     They  believe 


m  Tlie  Quakers  do  not  deny,  that  Abialiam  might  have  seen  Christ 
prophetically,  but  they  believe  he  saw  him  particularly  in  the  way  described: 


174  HELIGION, 

again,  that  it  has  striven  with  all  the  Heathen 
nations,  from  the  foundation  of  the  world  to  the 
same  period.  And  they  believe  also,  that  it  has 
continued  its  office  of  a  redeemer  to  all  people, 
whether  Jews,  Heathens,  or  Christians,  from  the 
time  of  Jesus  Christ  to  the  present  day. 


RELIGION.  175 


SECT.  IV. 


Proposition  of  the  new  birth  mid  perfection^  as  hi- 
therto explained  in  the  ordinary  zva^f — New  view 
of  tlie  subject  from  a  more  particular  detail  of  the 
views  and  expressions  of  the  Quakers  concerning  it 
— A  new  spiritual  birth  as  real  from  the  spiritual 
seed  of  the  kingdom,  as  that  of  plants  or  vegetables 
from  their  seeds  in  the  natural  world — And  the 
new  birth  proceeds  really  in  the  same  prog7'essive 
manner,  to  maturity  or  perfection — Result  of  this 
new  view  the  same  as  that  in  the  former  section. 


1  STATED  in  the  last  section  that  the  spirit  o^ 
God  is  considered  by  the  Quakers  as  an  inward 
redeemer  to  men,  and  that,  in  this  office,  it  has 
the  power  of  producing  a  new  birth  in  them,  and 
of  leading  them  to  perfection  in  the  way  described. 
This  proposition,  however,  I  explained  only  in  the 
ordinary  way.  But  as  the  Quakers  have  a  parti- 
cular way  of  viewing  and  expressing  it,  and  as 
they  deem  it  one  of  the  most  important  of  their 
religious  propositions,  I  trust  I  shall  be  excused 
by  the  reader,  if  I  allot  one  other  section  to  this 
subject. 

Jesus  Christ  states,  as  was  said  before,  in  the 


176  RELIGION, 

most  clear  anrl  positive  terms,  that «  except  a  man 
be  born  again,  he  cannot  see  the  kingdom  of  hea- 
ven. 

Now  the  great  work  of  religion  is  salvation  or 
redemption.  Without  this  no  man  can  see  God ; 
and  therefore  the  meaning  of  the  words  of  Jesus 
Christ  will  be  this,  that,  except  a  man  be  born 
again,  he  cannot  experience  that  inward  redemp- 
tion which  shall  enable  him  to  see  the  kingdom 
of  heaven. 

Redemption  then  is  necessary  to  qualify  for  a 
participation  of  the  heavenly  joys,  and  it  is  stated 
to  take  place  by  means  of  the  new  birth. 

The  particular  ideas  then,  which  the  Quakers 
have  relative  to  the  new  birth  and  perfection,  are 
the  following.  In  the  same  manner  as  the  Divine 
Being  has  scattered  the  seeds  of  plants  and  vege- 
tables in  the  body  of  the  earth,  so  he  has  implant- 
ed a  portion  of  his  own  incorruptible  seed,  or  of 
that  which,  in  scripture  language,  is  called  the 
"  Seed  of  the  Kingdom,"  in  the  soul  of  every  indi- 
vidual of  the  human  race.  As  the  sun  by  its  ge- 
nial influence  quickens  the  vegetable  seed,  so  it 
is  the  office  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  in  whom  is  life, 
and  who  resides  in  the  temple  of  man,  to  quicken 
that  which  is  heavenly.     And  in  the  same  manner 

n  John  3,  3. 


RELIGION.  177 

as  the  vegetable  seed  conceives  and  brings  forth 
a  plant,  or  a  tree  with  stem  and  brandies  ;  so  if 
the  soul,  in  which  the  seed  of  the  kingdom  is  pla- 
ced, be  willing  to  receive  the  influence  of  the  Holy 
Spirit  upon  it,  this  seed  is  quickened  and  a  s])irit- 
ual  olfspring  is  produced.  Now  this  offspring  is 
as  real  a  birth  from  the  seed  in  the  soul  by  means 
of  the  spirit,  as  the  plant  from  its  own  seed  by 
means  of  the  influence  of  the  sun.  "  The  seed  of 
the  kingdom,  says  Isaac  Pennington,  consists  not 
in  words  or  notions  of  mind,  but  is  an  inward 
thing,  an  inward  spiritual  substance  in  the  heart, 
as'  real  inwardly  in  its  kind,  as  other  seeds  are  out- 
wardly in  their  kind.  And  being  received  by 
faith,  and  taking  root  in  man,  (his  heart,  his  earth, 
being  pl»)ughed  up  and  prepared  for  it,)  it  grow- 
eth  up  inwardly,  as  truly  and  really,  as  any  out- 
uard  seed  doth  outwardly." 

Witli  respect  to  the  olfspring  thus  produced  in 
the  soul  of  man,  it  maybe  variously  named.  As 
it  comes  from  the  incorruptible  seed  of  God,  it  may 
be  called  a  birth  of  the  divine  nature  or  life.  As 
it  comes  by  the  agency  of  the  spirit,  it  may  be 
called  the  life  of  the  spirit.  As  it  is  new,  it  may 
be  called  the  new  man  or  creature  :  or  it  may 
have  the  appellation  of  a  child  of  God:  or  it  is 
that  spiritual  life  and  light,  or  that  spiritual  prin- 
voL.  II.  2  A 


178  RELIGION. 

ciple  and  power  within  us,  which  may  be  called 
the  Anointed,  or  Christ  within. 

"  As  this  seed,  saj's  Barclay,  is  received  in  the 
heart  and  suffered  to  bring  forth  its  natural  and 
proper  effect,  Christ  comes  to  be  formed  and  rais- 
ed, called  in  scripture  the  new  man,  Christ  within 
us,  the  hope  of  glory.  Yet  herein  they  (the  Qua- 
kers) do  not  equal  themselves  with  the  holy  man, 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  in  whom  the  fulness  of  the 
Godhead  dwelt  bodily,  neither  destroy  his  present 
existence.  For  though  they  affirm  Christ  dwells 
in  them,  yet  not  immediately,  but  mediately,  as 
he  is  in  that  seed  which  is  in  them." 

Of  the  sanie  opinion  was  the  learned  Cudworth. 
-'  We  all,  says  he,  receive  of  his  fulness  grace  for 
grace,  as  all  the  stars  in  heaven  are  said  to  light 
their  candles  at  the  sun's  flame.  For  though  his 
body  be  withdrawn  from  us,  yet  by  the  lively  and 
virtual  contact  of  his  spirit,  he  is  always  kindling, 
cheering,  quickening,  warming,  and  enlivening 
hearts.  Nay,  this  divine  life  begun  and  kindled 
in  any  heart,  wheresoever  it  be,  is  something  of 
God  in  flesh,  and  in  a  sober  and  qualified  sense^, 
divinity  incarnate ;  and  all  particular  Christians, 
that  are  really  possessed  of  it,  are  so  many  mysti- 
cal Christs." 

Again — "  Never  was  any  tender  infant  so  dear 


RELIGION.  17» 

to  those  bowels  that  ])rgat  it,  as  an  infant  new- 
born Christ,  formed  in  the  heart  of  any  Irnc  be- 
liever, to  God  the  Father  of  it." 

This  account  relative  to  the  new  birth  the  Qua- 
kers conceive  to  be  strictly  deducible  from  tlie 
Holy  Scriptures.  It  is  true,  they  conceive,  as  far 
as  the  new  birth  relates  to  God  and  to  the  seed, 
and  to  the  spirit,  from  the  following  passages :  " 
"  Whosoever  is  born  of  God  doth  not  commit  sin^ 
for  his  seed  remaineth  in  him."     '* "  Beinc:  born 

o 

again,  not  of  corruptible  seed,  but  of  incorruptible, 
by  the  word  of  God."  ^  "  Of  his  own  will  begat 
he  us  with  the  word  of  truth."  It  is  considered  to 
be  true  again,  as  far  as  the  new  birth  relates  to  the 
creature  born  and  to  tlie  name  which  it  may  bear, 
from  these  ditferent  expressions:  "  "  Of  wliom  I 
travail  in  birth  again,  till  Christ  be  formed  in  you.'* 
*  "  Nevertheless  I  live,  yet  not  I,  but  Christ  liveth 
in  me."  '  "  But  ye  have  received  tlie  spirit  of 
adoption,  whereby  we  cry  Abba,  Father."  "  "  But 
as  many  as  received  him,  that  is,  the  spirit  or 
word,  to  them  gave  he  power  to  become  the  sons 
of  God."  "^  "  For  as  many  as  are  led  by  the  spi- 
rit of  God,  they  are  the  sons  of  God."     And  a:s 

o  1  John  5.  9.  s  Gal.  9.  20. 

p   1  Peter  1,  25.  t  Rom.  8.  15. 

q  James  1.  IS.  u  John  1.  J2. 

r  Gal.  4.  19.  r  Rom.  8.  14. 


180  RELIGION. 

parents  and  children  resemble  one  another,  so 
believers  are  made  '"  "  conformable  to  the  image 
of  his  son,"  ''  "  who  is  the  image  of  the  invisible 
God." 

Having  explained  in  what  the  new  birth  con- 
sists, or  having  shown,  according  to  Barclay,  ^ 
"that  the  seed  is  a  real  spiritual  substance,  which 
the  soul  of  man  is  capable  of  feeling  and  appre- 
hending, from  which  that  real  spiritual  inward 
birth  arises,  called  the  new  creature  or  the  new 
man  in  the  heart,"  it  remains  to  shovv'  how  believ- 
ers, or  those  in  whose  souls  Christ  is  thus  produ- 
ced, may  be  said  to  grow  up  to  perfection ;  for  by 
this  real  birth  or  geniture  in  them  they  come  to 
have  those  spiritual  senses  raised,  by  which  they 
arc  made  capable  of  tasting,  smelling,  seeing,  and 
handling,  the  things  of  God. 

It  may  be  observed  then,  that  in  the  new  birth 
a  progress  is  experienced  from  infancy  to  youth, 
and  from  youth  to  manhood.  As  it  is  only  by 
submission  to  the  operation  of  the  spirit  that  this 
birth  can  take  place,  so  it  is  only  by  a  like  sub- 
mission, that  any  progress  or  growth  from  one 
stature  to  another  will  be  experienced  in  it  j  nei- 
ther can  the  regenerated  become  instrumental  in 

w  Rom.  &.  29.  .   X  Coloss.  1.  15.  y  T.  139.  Ed.  8. 


RELIGION.  181 

tiie  redemption  ofotbei-.s,  any  farther  or  otherwise 
than  as  Clirist  or  liie  anointing  dwells  and  ope- 
rates in  them,  teaching  them  all  truths  necessary 
to  be  known,  and  strengthening  them  to  perform 
every  act  necessary  to  be  done  for  this  purpose. 
He  must  be  their  only  means  and  '  "  hope  of 
glory."  It  will  then  be  that  the  ^  "  creature  which 
waiteth  in  earnest  expectation  for  the  manifesta- 
tion of  the  sons  of  God,  will  be  delivered  from  the 
bondage  of  corruption  into  the  glorious  liberty  of 
the  children  of  God."  For  ""  "  if  any  man  be  in' 
Christ,  he  is  a  new  creature  :  old  things  are  passed 
awayj  behold,  all  things  are  become  new,  and  all 
things  of  God." 

They  who  are  the  babes  of  the  regeneration  be- 
gin to  see  spiritual  things.  The  natural  man,  the 
mere  creature,  never  saw  God.  But  the  babes, 
who  cry  Abba,  Father,  begin  to  see  and  to  know 
him.  Though  as  yet  unskilful  in  the  word  of 
righteousness,  «=  '^  they  desire  the  sincere  milk  of 
the  word,  that  they  may  grow  thereby."  And  ^ 
"  their  sins  are  forgiven  them." 

They,  who  are  considered  as'  the  young  men  in 
this  state,  are  said  to  be  '  "  spiritually  strong,  and 

z   Co!oss.  1.  27.  c  1  Pet.  2.  2. 

a  Rom.  8.  ]9.  2].  d  1  John  2.  12. 

b  2  Cor.  5.  17.  18,  «  1  John  2.  U, 


182  RELIGION. 

the  word  of  God  abiding  in  them,  to  have  over- 
come the  wicked  one." 

They,  who  have  attained  a  state  of  manhood,  are 
called  fathers,  or  are  said  to  be  of  fall  age,  and  to 
be  capable  of  taking  strong  meat.  ^  "  They  come, 
in  the  unity  of  faith,  and  of  the  knowledge  of  the 
Son  of  God,  unto  perfect  men,  unto  the  measure 
of  the  stature  of  the  fulness  of  Christ.  They  arrive 
at  such  a  state  of  stability,  that  they  are  no  more 
children  tossed  to  and  fro,  and  carried  about  with 
every  wind  of  doctrine;  but  speaking  the  truth  in 
love,  grow  up  unto  him  in  ail  things,  which  is  the 
head,  even  Christ."  ^  "  The  old  man  with  his 
deeds  being  put  off,  they  have  put  on  the  nev/ 
man,  which  is  renewed  in  knowledge  after  the 
image  of  him  that  created  him."  ^  "  They  are 
washed,  they  are  sanctified,  they  are  Justified  in 
the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  and  in  the  spirit  of 
our  God."  The  new  creation  is  thus  completed, 
and  the  sabbath  wherein  man  ceases  from  his  own 
works,  commences  ;  so  that  every  believer  can 
then  say  with  the  apostle,  '  "  I  am  crucified  with 
Christ.  Nevertheless  I  live,  yet  not  I,  but  Christ 
liveth  in  me.  And  the  life,  which  I  now  live  in  the 
flesh,  I  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  v/ho  lov- 
ed me,  and  gave  himself  for  me." 

f  Eph.  4.  13. 14.  15.  h   1  Cor.  6.  11. 

S  Col.  3.  f).  10.  i  Gal.  2.  20. 


RELIGION.  183 

But  this  state  of  manhood,  ^  "  by  which  the  man 
of  God  may  be  made  perfect,  thoroughly  furnished 
unto  all  good  works,  does  not  take  place,  until 
Christ  be  fully  formed  in  the  souls  of  believers,  or 
till  they  are  brought  wholly  under  his  rule  and 
government.  He  must  be  substantially  lormed  in 
them.  He  must  actually  be  their  life,  and  their 
hope  of  glory.  He  must  be  their  head  and  go- 
vernor. As  the  head,  and  the  bod}^,  and  the  mem- 
bers are  one,  according  to  the  apostle,  but  the 
head  directs ;  so  Christ,  and  believers  in  whom 
Christ  is  born  and  formed,  are  one  spiritual  body, 
which  he  himself  must  direct  also.  Thus  Christ, 
wl>ere  he  is  fully  formed  in  man,  or  where  be- 
lievers are  grown  up  to  the  measure  of  the  stature 
and  fulness  of  sonship,  is  the  head  of  every  man, 
and  God  is  the  head  of  Christ.  Thus  Christ  the 
begotten  entirely  governs  the  whole  man,  as  the 
head  directs  and  governs  all  the  members  of  the 
body  ;  and  God  the  Father,  as  the  head  of  Christ, 
entirely  guides  and  governs  the  begotten.  Hencej, 
believers  ^  "  are  Christ's,  and  Christ  is  God's  ;"  so 
that  ultimately  God  is  all  in  all. 

Having  given  this  new  view  of  the  subject,  I 
-hall  only  observe  farther  upon  it,  that  the  sub- 

k  1  Tim.  3.  17.  1   t  Cor.  3.  23. 


184   .  RELIGION. 

stance  of  this  chapter  turns  out  to  be  the  same  ais 
that  of  the  preceding,  or  according  to  the  notions 
of  the  Quakers,  that  inward  redemption  cannot  be 
effected  but  through  the  medium  of  the  spirit  of 
God.  For  Christ,  according  to  the  ideas  now 
held  out,  must  be  formed  in  man,  and  he  must 
rule  them  before  the}^  can  experience  full  inward 
redemption;  or,  in  other  words,  they  cannot  ex- 
perience this  inward  redemption,  except  they  can 
truly  say  that  he  governs  them,  or  except  they 
can  truly  call  him  Governor,  or  Lord.  But  no 
person  can  say  that  Christ  rules  in  him,  except  he 
undergoes  the  spiritual  process  of  regeneration 
which  has  been  described,  or  to  use  the  words  of 
the  Apostle,  ^  "  No  man  can  say  that  Jesus  is  the 
Lord,  but  by  the  Holy  Spirit."" 


m  1  Cor.   12.  5.  n  Tiie  reader  will  easily  disc^i-w 

i'loiii  this  new  view  of  the  new  birth,  liow  men,  according  to  the  Quakers, 
become  partakers  of  the  divine  nature,  and  how  the  Quakers  make  it  ont, 
that  Abraham  and  others  saw  Christ's  day,  as  I  mentioned  in  a  former 
chapter. 


RELIGION.  ISO 

CHAP.  VIII. 

SECT.  I. 

'Quakers  believe  from  the  foregoing  accounts^  that 
redtinption  is  possible  to  all — Hence  they  deny  the 
doctrine  of  election  and  reprobation — do  not  deny 
the  texts  on  ivhich  it  is  founded,  but  the  interpreta' 
tion  of  tJiem — as  contrary  to  the  doctrines  of  Jesus 
Christ  and  the  Apostles — as  making  his  mission 
unnecessary — as  rendering  many  precepts  useless 
— and  as  casting  a  stain  on  the  character  and  at' 
tributes  of  God. 


It  will  appear  from  the  foregoing  observations, 
that  it  is  the  belief  of  the  Quakers,  that  every  man 
has  the  power  of  inward  redemption  within  him- 
self, who  attends  to  the  strivings  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
and  that  as  outward  redemption  by  the  sufferings 
of  Jesus  Christ  extends  to  all,  where  the  inward 
has  taken  place,  so  redemption  or  salvation,  in  its 
full  extent,  is  possible  to  every  individual  of  the 
human  race. 

This   position,  however,    is   denied   by    those 
Christians,  who  have  pronounced  in  favour  of  the 
doctrine  of  election  and  reprobation  j  because,  if 
VOL.  II.  2  B 


186  RELIGION. 

they  believe  some  predestined  from  all  eternity  to 
eternal  happiness,  arid  the  rest  to  eternal  misery, 
they  must  then  believe  that  salvation  is  not  possi- 
ble to  all,  and  that  it  was  not  intended  to  be  uni- 
versal. 

The  Quakers  have  attempted  to  ansvi^er  the 
objections,  which  have  been  thus  made  to  their 
theory  of  redemption ;  and  as  the  reader  will  pro- 
bably expect  that  I  should  notice  what  they  have 
said  upon  this  subject,  I  have  reserved  the  answers 
they  have  given  for  the  present  place. 

The  Quakers  do  not  deny  the  genuineness  of 
any  of  those  texts,  which  are  usually  advanced 
against  them.  Of  all  people,  they  fly  the  least  to 
the  cover  of  interpolation  or  mutilation  of  scrip- 
ture to  shield  themselves  from  the  strokes  of  their 
opponents.  They  believe,  however,  that  there  are 
passages  in  tine  sacred  writings,  which  will  admit 
of  an  interpretation  different  from  that  which  has 
been  assigned  them  by  many,  and  upon  this  they 
principally  rely  in  the  present  case.  If  there  are 
passages,  to  which  two  meanings  may  be  annexed, 
and  if  for  one  there  is  equal  authority  as  for  the 
other,  yet  if  one  meaning  should  destroy  all  the 
most  glorious  attributes  of  the  supreme  being,  and 
the  other  should  preserve  them  as  recognized  in 
the  other  parts  of  the  scripture,  they  think  they 


RELIGION.  187 

are  bound  to  receive  that  which  favours  the  justice, 
mercy,  and  wisdom  of  God,  rather  than  that 
which  makes  him  appear  both  unjust  and  cruel. 

The  Quakers  believe,  that  some  Christians  have 
misunderstood  the  texts  which  they  quote  in  fa- 
vour of  the  doctrine  of  election  and  reprobation, 
for  the  following  reasons  : — 

First,  because  if  God  had  from  all  eternity  pre- 
destinated some  to  eternal  happiness,  and  the  rest 
to  eternal  misery,  the  mission  of  Jesus  Christ  upon 
earth  became  unnecessary,  and  his  mediation  ia- 
effectual. 

If  this  again  had  been  a  fundamental  doctrine 
of  Christianity,  it  never  could  have  been  overlook- 
ed, (considering  that  it  is  of  more  importance  to 
men  than  any  other)  by  the  founder  of  that  reli- 
gion. But  he  never  delivered  any  words  in  the 
course  of  his  ministry,  from  whence  any  reasonable 
conclusion  could  be  drawn,  that  such  a  doctrine 
formed  any  part  of  the  creed  which  he  intended 
to  establish  among  men.  His  doctrine  was  that 
of  mercy,  tenderness,  and  love;  in  which  he  incul- 
cated the  power  and  efficacy  of  repentance,  and 
declared  there  was  more  joy  in  Heaven  over  one 
sinner  that  repented,  than  over  ninety-nine  just 
'persons  who  needed  no  repentance. 

By  the  parable  of  the  sower,  which  the  Quakers 


18S  RELIGION. 

consider  to  relate  wholly  to  the  word  or  spirit  of 
God,  it  appears  that  persons  of  all  descriptions 
were  visited  equally  for  their  salvation ;  and  that 
their  salvation  depended  much  upon  themselves; 
and  that  where  obstacles  arose,  they  arose  from 
themselves  also,  by  allowing  temptations,  persecu- 
tions, and  the  cares  of  the  world,  to  overcome  them. 
In  short,  the  Quakers  believe,  that  the  doctrine  of 
election  and  reprobation  is  contrary  to  the  whole 
tenour  of  the  doctrines  promulgated  by  Jesus 
Christ. 

They  conceive  also,  that  this  doctrine  is  contra- 
ry to  the  doctrines  promulgated  by  the  Evangelists 
and  Apostles,  and  particularly  contrary  to  those  of 
St,  Paul  himself,  from  whom  it  is  principally  taten. 
To  make  this  Apostle  contradict  himself,  they  dare 
not.  And  they  must  therefore  conclude,  either 
that  no  person  has  rightly  understood  it,  and  that 
it  has  been  hitherto  kept  in  mystery ;  or,  if  it  be 
intelligible  to  the  human  understanding,  it  must 
be  explained  by  comparing  it  with  other  texts  of 
the  same  Apostle,  as  well  as  with  those  of  others, 
and  always  in  connexion  with  the  general  doc- 
trines of  Christianity,  and  the  character  and  attri- 
butes of  God.  Now  the  Apostle  Paul,  who  is  con- 
sidered to  •*  intimate,  that  God  predestined  some  to 

0  Koniir«£,  Chap.  9. 


RELIGION,  189 

eternal  salvation,  and  the  rest  to  eternal  misery, 
says,  P  that  "  God  made  of  one  blood  all  nations 
of  men  to  dwell  on  all  the  face  of  the  earth  j"  tliat, 
in  the  Gospel  dispensation,  "i  "  there  is  neither 
Greek  nor  Jew,  circumcision  nor  uncircujncision. 
Barbarian  nor  Scythian,  bond  nor  free,"  "■  He  de- 
sires also  Timothy  "  to  make  prayers  and  suppli- 
cations and  intercessions  for  all  men  ;"  which  the 
Quakers  conceive  he  could  not  have  done,  if  he 
had  not  believed  it  to  be  possible,  that  all  might 
be  saved.  "  For  this  is  acceptable,  says  he,  in  the 
sight  of  our  Saviour,  who  will  have  all  men  to  be 
saved  ;  for  there  is  one  God  and^one  mediator  be  i 
tween  God  and  man,  the  man  Christ  Jesus,  who 
gave  himself  a  ransom  for  all."  Again,  he  says,  • 
that  "  Jesus  Christ  tasted  death  for  every  man." 
And  in  another  place  he  says,  «  "  The  grace  of 
God,  which  bringeth  salvation,  has  appeared  unto 
all  men."  But  if  this  grace  has  appeared  to  all, 
none  can  have  been  without  it.  And  if  its  object 
be  salvation,  then  all  must  have  had  sufficient  of 
it  to  save  them,  if  obedient  to  its  saving  opera- 
tions. 


p  Acts  17.  2(i.  s  HebreV4;s:2.  9.' 

q  Coloss.  3.  11.  t  Titus  8.  IJ. 

r  1  Tim.  2.  1.3.4,o.  6. 


190  RELIGION. 

Again,  if  the  dactrine  of  election  and  reproba- 
tion be  true,  then  the  recommendations  of  Jesus 
Christ  and  his  Apostles,  and  particularly  of  Paul 
himself,  can  be  of  no  avail,  and  ought  never  to 
have  been  given.  Prayer  is  inculcated  by  these 
as  an  acceptable  duty.  But  why  should  men 
pray,  if  they  are  condemned  before-hand,  and  if 
their  destiny  is  inevitable  ?  If  the  doctrine  again 
be  true,  then  all  the  exhortations  to  repentance, 
which  are  to  be  found  in  the  scriptures,  must  be 
unnecessary.  For  why  should  men  repent,  ex- 
cept for  a  little  temporary  happiness  in  this  world, 
if  they  cannot  be  saved  in  a  future  ?  This  doctrine 
is  considered  by  the  Quakers  as  making  the  pre- 
cepts of  the  Apostles  unnecessary;  as  setting  aside 
the  hopes  and  encouragements  of  the  Gospel ;  and 
as  standing  in  the  way  of  repentance  or  holiness 
of  life. 

This  doctrine  again  they  consider  as  objection- 
able, in  as  much  as  it  obliges  men  to  sin,  and 
charges  them  with  the  commission  of  it.  It  makes 
also  the  fountain  of  all  purity  the  fountain  of  all 
sin;  and  the  author  of  all  good  the  dispenser  of 
all  evil.  It  gives  to  the  Supreme  Being  a  malevo- 
lence that  is  not  to  be  found  in  the  character  of  the 
most  malevolent  of  his  creatures.  It  makes  him 
more  cruel  thaii  the  most  cruel  oppressor  ever  re- 


RELIGION.  191 

corded  of  the  human  race.  It  makes  him  to  have 
deliberately  made  millions  of  men,  for  no  other 
purpose  than  to  stand  by  and  delight  in  their 
misery  and  destruction.  But  is  it  possible,  the 
Quakers  say,  for  this  to  be  true  of  him,  who  is 
tlms  described  by  St.  John — "  God  is  Love  ?** 


192  RELIGION. 


SECT.  II. 


Quakers'  interpretation  of  the  texts  which  relate  to  thi^ 
doctrine — These  texts  of  public  and  private  import 
— Election^  as  of  public  import ^  relates  to  offices  of 
iisefuhiess,  and  not  to  salvation — as  of  private  ^  it  re- 
lates to  the  Jews — These  had  been  elect ed,  but  were 
passed  over  for  the  Gentiles — Nothing  more  unrea- 
sonable in  this  than  in  the  case  of  Islimael  and 
Esau — or  that  Pharaoh's  crimes  should  receive 
Pharaoh's  punishment — But  thougji  the  Gentiles 
zvere  chosen,  fhei/  could  stand  in  favour  no  longer 
than  while  they  were  obedient  and  faithful. 


X  HE  Quakers  conceive  that,  in  their  interpreta- 
tion of  the  passages  which  are  usually  quoted  in 
support  of  the  doctrine  of  election  and  reproba- 
tion, and  which  I  shall  now  give  to  the  reader, 
they  do  no  violence  to  the  attributes  of  the  Al- 
mighty ;  but,  on  the  other  hand,  confirm  his  wis- 
dom, justice,  and  mercy,  as  displayed  in  the  sa- 
cred writings,  in  his  religious  government  of  the 
world. 

These  passages  may  be  considered  both  as  of 
pmblic  and  of  private  import  j  of  public,  as  they 


RELIGION.  193 

relate  to  the  world  at  large  ;  of  private,  as  thoy  re- 
late to  the  Jews,  to  whom  they  were  addressed  by 
the  Aj)ostle. 

The  Quakers,  in  viewing  the  doctrine  as  of  pub- 
lic import,  use  tiie  words  "  called,"  "  predestina- 
ted," and  *'  chosen,"  in  the  ordinary  way  in  which 
they  are  used  in  the  scriptures,  or  in  the  way  iji 
which  Christians  generally  understand  them. 

They  believe  that  the  Almighty  intended,  from 
the  beginning,  to  make  both  individuals  and  na- 
tions subservient  to  the  end  which  he  had  propo- 
sed to  himself  in  the  creation  of  the  world.  For 
this  purpose  he  gave  men  ditlerent  measures  of 
his  Holy  Spirit;  and  in  proportion  as  tiiey  have 
used  these  gifts  more  extensively  than  others,  they 
have  been  more  useful  among  mankind.  Now  all 
these  may  be  truly  said  to  have  been  instruments  in 
the  hands  of  Providence,  for  the  good  works  which 
they  have  severally  performed  ;  but,  if  instruments 
in  his  hands,  then  they  may  not  improperly  be 
stiled  chosen  vessels.  In  this  sense  the  Quakers 
viev/  the  words  "  chosen,"  or  "  called."  In  the 
same  sense  they  view  also  the  word  "  preordain- 
ed i"  but  with  this  difference,  that  the  instruments 
were  foreknown ;  and  that  God  should  have 
known  these  instruments  beforehand  is  not  won- 
derful ;  for  he  who  created  the  world,  and  who,  to 

VOL.  II.  2   C 


194  RELIGION. 

use  an  human  expression,  must  see  at  one  glance 
all  that  ever  has  been,  and  that  is,  and  that  is  to 
come,  must  have  known  the  means  to  be  employ- 
ed, and  the  characters  who  were  to  move,  in  the 
execution  of  his  different  dispensations  to  the 
world. 

In  this  sense  the  Quakers  conceive  God  may  be 
said  to  have  foreknown,  called,  chosen,  and  pre- 
ordained Noah,  and  also  Abraham,  and  also  Mo- 
ses, and  Aaron,  and  his  sons,  and  all  the  prophets, 
and  all  the  evangelists,  and  apostles,  and  all  the- 
good  men,  who  have  been  useful  in  spiritual  ser- 
vices in  their  own  generation  or  day. 

In  this  sense  also  many  may  be  said  to  have  been 
chosen  or  called  in  the  days  of  the  Apostle  Paul ; 
for  they  are  described  as  having  had  various  gifts 
bestowed  upon  them  by  the  spirit  of  God.  "  "  To 
one  was  given  the  word  of  wisdom ;  to  another  the 
word  of  knowledge ;  to  another  the  discerning  of 
spirits;  to  another  prophecy;  and  to  others  other 
kinds  of  gifts.  But  the  self-same  spirit  worked  all 
these,  dividing  to  every  man  severally  as  he 
chose."  That  is,  particular  persons  were  called 
by  the  spirit  of  God,  in  the  days  of  the  Apostle, 
to  particular  offices  for  the  perfecting  of  his 
church. 

n  1  Cor.  12.  10.  11. 


RELPGION.  195 

In  the  same  sense  the  Quakers  consider  all  true 
ministers  of  the  Gospel  to  be  chosen.  They  be- 
lieve that  no  imposition  of  hands  or  hnman  or- 
dination can  qualify  for  this  olTice.  God,  by 
means  of  his  Holy  Spirit  alone,  prepares  such  as 
are  to  be  the  vessels  in  his  house.  Those  there- 
fore, who,  in  obedience  to  this  spirit,  come  forth 
from  the  multitude  to  perform  spiritual  offices, 
may  be  said  to  be  called  or  chosen. 

In  this  sense,  nations  may  be  said  to  be  chosen 
also.  Such  were  the  Israelites,  who  by  means  of 
their  peculiar  laws  and  institutions,  were  kept 
apart  from  the  other  inhabitants  of  the  world. 

Now  the  dispute  is,  if  any  persons  should  be 
said  to  have  been  chosen  in  the  scripture  lan- 
guage, for  what  purpose  they  were  so  chosen. 
The  favourers  of  the  doctrine  of  election  and  re- 
probation, say  for  their  salvation.  But  the  Qua- 
kers sa}^  this  is  no  where  manifest :  for  the  term 
salvation  is  not  annexed  to  any  of  the  passages 
from  which  the  doctrine  is  drawn.  Nor  do  they 
believe  it  can  be  made  to  appear  from  any  of  the 
scriptural  writings,  that  one  man  is  called  or  cho- 
sen,or  predestined  to  salvation,  more  than  another. 
They  believe,  on  the  other  hand,  that  these  words 
relate  wholly  to  the  usefulness  of  individuals,  and 
that  if  God  has  chosen  any  particular  persons,  he 


196  RELIGION. 

has  chosen  them  that  they  might  be  the  ministers 
of  good  to  others  \  that  they  might  be  spiritual 
lights  in  the  universe ;  or  that  they  might  become, 
in  different  times  and  circumstances,  instruments 
of  increasing  tlie  happiness  of  their  fellow-crea- 
tures. Thus  the  Almighty  may  be  said  to  have* 
chosen  Noah,  to  perpetuate  the  memory  of  the 
deluge  ;  to  promulgate  the  origin  and  history  of 
mankind;  and  to  become,  as  St.  Peter  calls  hihi, 
"  a  preacher  of  righteousness"  to  those  who  were 
to  be  the  ancestors  of  men.  Thus  he  may  be  said 
to  have  chosen  Moses  to  give  the  law,  and  to 
lead  out  the  Israelites,  and  to  preserve  them  as  a 
distinct  people,  who  should  carry  with  them  no- 
tions of  his  existence,  his  providence,  and  his 
power.  Thus  he  may  be  said  to  have  chosen  the 
prophets,  that  men,  in  after  ages,  seeing  their  pro- 
phecies accomplished,  might  believe  that  Chris- 
tianity was  of  divine  origin.  Thus  also  he  may 
be  said  to  have  chosen  Paul,  ( ""  and  indeed  Paul  is 
described  as  a  chosen  vessel)  to  diffuse  the  Gos- 
pel among  the  Gentile  world. 

That  the  words,  called  or  chosen,  relate  to  the 
usefulness  of  individuals  in  the  world,  and  not  to 
their  salvation,  the  Quakers  believe  from  examin- 

V  Acts  9.  15, 


RELIGION.  197 

ing  the  comparison  or  simile,  which  St.  Paul  has 
introduced  of  the  potter  and  of  his  clay,  upon  this 
very  occasion.  '"  "  Shall  the  thing  formed  say  to 
him  that  formed  it,  why  hast  thou  made  me  thus? 
Hath  not  the  potter  power  over  the  clay  of  the 
same  lump  to  make  one  vessel  unto  honour,  and 
another  unto  dishonour.^"  This  simile,  they  say, 
relates  obviously  to  the  uses  of  these  vessels.  The 
potter  makes  some  for  splendid  or  extraordinary 
uses  and  purposes,  and  others  for  those  which  are 
mean  and  ordinary.  So  God  has  chosen  indivi- 
duals to  great  and  glorious  uses,  while  others  re- 
main in  the  mean  or  common  mass,  undistinguish- 
ed by  any  very  active  part  in  the  promotion  of 
the  ends  of  the  world.  Nor  have  the  latter  any 
more  reason  to  complain  that  God  has  given  to 
others  greater  spiritual  gifts,  than  that  he  has 
given  to  one  man  a  better  intellectual  capacity 
than  to  another. 

They  argue  again,  that  the  words  "  called  or 
chosen,"  relate  to  usefulness,  and  not  to  salvation  ^ 
because,  if  men  were  predestined  from  all  eternity 
to  salvation,  they  could  not  do  any  thing  to  deprive 
themselves  of  that  salvation  j  that  is,  they  could  ne- 
ver do  any  wrong  in  this  life,  or  fall  from  a  state 

w  Rom.  a.  20.  21. 


198  RELIGION. 

of  purity  :  whereas  it  appears  that  many  of  those 
whom  the  scriptures  consider  to  have  been  chosen, 
have  failed  in  their  duty  to  God ;  that  these  have 
had  no  better  ground  to  stand  upon  than  their 
neighbours ;  that  election  has  not  secured  them 
from  the  displeasure  of  the  Almighty,  but  that  they 
have  been  made  to  stand  or  fall,  notwithstanding 
their  election,  as  they  acted  well  or  ill,  God  hav- 
ing conducted  himself  no  otherwise  to  them,  than 
he  has  done  to  others  in  his  moral  government  of 
the  world. 

That  persons  so  chosen  have  failed  in  their  du- 
ty to  God,  or  that  their  election  has  not  preserved 
them  from  sin,  is  apparent,  it  is  presumed,  from 
the  scriptures.  For,  in  the  first  place,  the  Israel- 
ites were  a  chosen  people.  They  were  the  peo- 
ple to  whom  the  apostle  addressed  himself,  in  the 
chapter  which  has  given  rise  to  the  doctrine  of 
election  and  reprobation,  as  the  elected,  or  as 
having  had  the  preference  over  the  descendants 
of  Esau  and  others.  And  yet  this  election  did 
not  secure  to  them  a  state  of  perpetual  obedience, 
or  the  continual  favour  of  God.  In  the  wilder- 
ness they  were  frequently  rebellious,  and  they 
were  often  punished.  In  the  time  of  Malachi,  to 
which  the  Apostle  directs  their  attention,  they 


RELIGION.  199 

were  grown  so  wicked,  ^  that  "  God  is  said  to 
have  no  pleasure  in  tlicni,  and  that  he  would  not 
receive  an  olVering  at  their  hands."  And  in  sub.- 
secjuent  times,  or  in  the  time  of  the  Apostle,  he 
tells  them,  that  they  were  then  passed  over,  not- 
withstanding their  election,  ^  on  account  of  their 
want  of  righteousness  and  faith,  and  that  the  Gen- 
tiles were  chosen  in  their  place. 

In  the  second  place,  Jesus  Christ  is  said  in  the 
New  Testament  to  have  called  or  chosen  his 
disciples.  But  this  call  or  election  did  not  secure 
the  good  behaviour  of  Judas,  or  protect  him  from 
the  displeasure  of  his  master. 

In  the  third  place,  it  may  be  observed,  that  the 
Apostle  Paul  considers  the  churches  under  his^ 
care  as  called  or  chosen  j  as  consisting  of  people 
who  came  out  of  the  great  body  of  the  Heathen 
world  to  become  a  select  community  under  the 
Christian  name.  He  endeavours  to  inculcate  in- 
them  a  belief,  that  they  were  the  Lord's  people  j 
that  they  were  under  his  immediate  or  particular 
care;  that  God  knew  and  loved  them,  before  they 
knew  and  loved  him  ;  and  yet  this  election,  it  ap- 
pears, did  not  secure  them  from  falling  off;  for 
many  of  them  became  apostates  in  the  time  of 
the  Apostle,  so  "  that  he  was  grieved,  fearing  ho 

X  Malachi  1.  !C.  v  Rom.  9.  31.  3?. 


SOO  RELIGION. 

had  bestowed  upon  them  his  labour  in  vain." 
Neither  did  this  election  secure  even  to  those  who 
then  remained  in  the  church,  any  certainty  of 
galvation ;  otherwise  the  Apostle  would  not  have 
exhorted  them  so  earnestly  "  to  continue  in  good- 
ness, lest  they  should  be  cut  off." 

The  Quakers  believe  again,  that  the  Apostle 
Paul  never  included  salvation  in  the  words  "  call- 
ed or  chosen,"  for  anotlier  reason.  For  if  these 
words  had  implied  salvation,  then  non-election 
might  have  implied  the  destruction  annexed  to  it 
bv  the  favourers  of  the  doctrine  of  reprobation. 
But  no  person,  who  knows  whom  the  Apostle 
meant,  when  he  mentions  those  who  had  received 
and  those  who  had  lost  the  preference,  entertains 
any  such  notion  or  idea.  For  who  believes  that 
because  Isaac  is  said  to  have  had  the  preference  of 
Ishmael,  and  Jacob  ofEsau,  that  therefore  Ishmael 
and  Esau,  who  were  quite  as  great  princes  in  their 
times  as  Isaac  and  Jacob,  were  to  be  doomed  to 
eternal  misery?  Who  believes  that  this  preference, 
and  the  Apostle  alludes  to  no  other,  ever  related 
to  the  salvation  of  souls?  Or  rather,  that  it  did 
not  wholly  relate  to  the  circumstance,  that  the 
descendants  of  Isaac  and  Jacob  were  to  preserve 
the  church  of  God  in  the  midst  of  the  Heathen 
nations,  and  that  the  Messiah  was  to  come  from 
their  own  line,  instead  of  that  of  their  elder  brcth- 


RELIGION.  201 

rcn.  Rejection  or  reprobation  too,  in  the  sense 
in  which  it  is  generally  used  by  the  advocates  for 
the  doctrine,  is  contrary,  in  a  second  point  of  view, 
in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  to  the  sense  of  the 
comparison  or  simile  made  by  tiie  Apostle  on  this 
occasion.  For  when  a  Potter  makes  two  sorts  of 
vessels,  or  such  as  are  mean  and  such  as  are  fine 
and  splendid,  he  makes  them  for  their  respective 
uses.  But  he  never  makes  the  meaner  sort  for 
the  purpose  of  dashing  them  to  pieces. 

The  doctrine  therefore  in  dispute,  if  viewed  as 
a  doctrine  of  general  import,  only  means,  in  the 
opinion  of  the  Quakers,  that  the  Almighty  has  a 
right  to  dispose  of  his  spiritual  favours  as  he  plea- 
ses, and  that  he  has  given  accordingly  diflerent 
measures  of  his  spirit  to  different  people:  but 
that,  in  doing  this,  he  does  not  exclude  others 
from  an  opportunity  of  salvation  or  a  right  to 
life.  On  the  other  hand,  they  believe  that  he  is 
no  respecter  of  persons,  only  as  far  as  obedience 
is  concerned  :  that  election  neither  secures  of  it- 
self good  behaviour, nor  protectsfrom  punishment: 
that  every  man  who  standetli,  must  take  heed 
lest  he  fall:  that  no  man  can  boast  of  his  election, 
so  as  to  look  down  with  contempt  upon  his  mean- 
er brethren:  and  that  there  is  no  other  founda- 
voL.  II.  2D 


I 


20^  RELIGION. 

tion  for  an  expectation  of  the  continuance  of  di- 
vine favour  than  a  religious  life. 

In  viewing  the  passages  in  question  as  of  private 
import,  which  is  the  next  view  the  Quakers  take 
of  them,  the  same  lesson,  and  no  other,  is  incul- 
cated. The  Apostle,  in  the  ninth  oliapter  of  the 
Romans,  addresses  himself  to  the  Jews,  who  had 
been  a  chosen  people,  and  rescues  the  character 
of  God  from  the  imputation  of  injustice,  in  having 
passed  over  them,  and  in  having  admitted  the 
Gentiles  to  a  participation  of  his  favours. 

The  Jews  had  depended  so  much  upon  their 
pr'vileges  as  the  children  of  Abraham,  and  so 
much  upon  their  ceremonial  observances  of  the 
law,  thai  they  conceived  themselves  to  have  a  right 
to  continue  to  be  the  peculiar  people  of  God^ 
The  Apostle,  however,  teaches  them,  in  the  ninth 
and  the  eleventh  chapters  of  the  Romans,  a  differ- 
ent lesson,  and  may  be  said  to  address  them  in 
the  following  manner  : — 

"  I  am  truly  sorry,  my"^  kinsmen  in  the  flesh, 
that  you,  who  have  always  considered  yourselves 
the  elder  and  chosen  branches  of  the  family  of 
the  world,  should  have  been  passed  over  ;  and  that 
the  Gentiles,  whom  you  have  always  looked  upon 
as  the  younger,  should  be  now  preferred.  But 
Gud  is  jubt — He  will  uot  sanction  unrighteousness 


RELIGfON.  203 

in  any.  Nor  will  he  allow  any  choice  of  his  to 
continue  persons  in  favour,  longer  than,  after 
much  long  sntfering,  he  fnicls  them  deserving  his 
support.  Yon  are  acquainted  with  your  osvn  his- 
tory. The  Almighty,  as  you  know,  undoul^tedly 
distinguished  the  posterity  of  Abraham,  but  he  was 
not  partial  to  them  alike.  Did  he  not  reject  Ish- 
mael  the  scotftr,  though  he  was  the  eldest  son  of 
Abraham,  and  countenance  Isaac,  who  was  the 
younger.?  Did  he  not  pass  over  Esau  the  eldest 
son  of  Isaac,  who  had  sold  his  birth-right,  and  pre- 
fer Jacob?  Did  he  not  set  aside  Rauben,  Simeon, 
and  Levi,  the  three  eldest  sons  of  Jacob,  who  were 
guilty  of  incest,  treachery,  and  murder,  and  choose 
that  the  Messiah  should  corns  from  Judah,  who 
was  but  the  fourth?  Bat  if,  in  these  instances,  he 
did  not  respect  eldership,  why  do  you  expect  that 
he  will  not  pass  you  over  for  the  Gentiles,  if  ye 
continue  in  unbelief  ?" 

"  But  so  true  it  is,  that  he  will  not  support  any 
whom  he  may  have  chosen,  longer  than  they  con- 
tinue to  deserve  it,  that  he  will  not  even  continue 
his  countenance  to  the  Gentiles,  though  he  has 
now  preferred  them,  if  by  any  misconduct  they 
should  become  insensible  of  his  favours.     \  For  I 

z  Rom.  II.  17.  18,  19.  20.  21. 


204  RELIGION. 

may  compare  both  you  and  them  to  an  Olive-Tree. 
If  some  of  you,  who  are  the  elder,  or  natural  branch- 
es, should  be  broken  off,  and  the  Gentiles,  be- 
ing a  wild  Olive-Tree,  should  be  grafted  in  among 
you,  and  with  you  partake  of  the  root  and  fatness 
of  the  Olive-Tree,  it  would  not  become  them  to 
boast  against  you  the  branches:  for  if  they  boast, 
they  do  not  bear  the  root,  but  the  root  them. 
Perhaps,  however,  they  might  say,  that  you,  the 
branches,  were  broken  off,  that  they  might  be 
grafted  in.  Well;  but  it  was  wholly  on  account 
of  unbelief  that  you  were  broken  off,  and  it  was 
wholly  by  faith  that  they  themselves  were  taken  in. 
But  it  becomes  them  not  to  be  high-minded,  but 
to  fear.  For  if  God  spared  not  you,  the  natural 
branches,  let  them  take  heed,  lest  he  also  spare 
not  them." 

"  Moreover,  my  kinsmen  in  the  flesh,  I  must 
tell  you,  that  you  have  not  only  no  right  to  com- 
plain, because  the  Gentiles  have  been  preferred, 
bat  that  you  would  have  no  right  to  complain, 
even  if  you  were  to  become  the  objects  of  God's 
vengeance.  You  cannot  forget,  in  the  history  of 
your  own  nation,  the  example  of  Pharaoh:  you 
are  acquainted  with  his  obstinacy  and  disobedi- 
ence. You  know  that  he  stifled  his  convictions 
from  day  to  day.    You  know  that,  by  stifling  these. 


RELIGION.  205 

or  by  resisting  God's  Holy  Spirit,  he  became  daily 
more  hardened ;  and  that  by  allowini^  himself  to 
become  daily  more  hardened,  he  fitted  himself 
for  a  vessel  of  wrath,  or  prepared  the  way  for  his 
own  destruction.  You  know  at  length  that  God's 
judgments,  but  not  till  after  much  long  suffering, 
came  upon  him,  so  that  the  power  of  God  became 
thus  manifested  to  many.  But  if  you  know  all 
these  tilings,  and  continue  in  unrighteousness  and 
unbelief,  which  were  the  crimes  of  Pharaoh  also, 
why  do  you  imagine  that  your  hearts  will  not  be- 
come hardened  like  the  heart  of  Pharaoh^  or  that 
if  you  are  guilty  of  Pharaoh's  crimes,  you  are  not 
deserving  of  Pharaoh's  punishment?"* 


506  RELIGION. 

CHAP.  IX. 

Recapitulation  of  all  the  doctrines  hither fo  laid  down 
with  respect  to  the  influence  of  the  Spirit — Objec- 
tion to  this,  that  the  Quakers  make  every  thing  of 
this  spirit,  and  but  little  of  Jesus  Christ — Objec- 
tion only  7ioficed  to  show,  that  Christians  have  not 
always  a  right  apprehension  of  Scriptural  terms, 
and  therefore  often  quarrel  with  one  another  about 
trifles — Or  that  there  is,  in  this  particular  case, 
no  difference  between  the  doctrine  of  the  Quakers 
and  that  of  the  objectors  on  this  subject. 


1  siiALL  now  recapitulate  in  few  words,  or  in  ohe 
general  proposition,  all  the  doctrines  which  have 
teen  advanced  relative  to  the  power  of  the  spirit, 
and  shall  just  notice  an  argument,  which  will  pro- 
bably arise  on  such  a  recapitulation,  before  I  pro- 
ceed to  a  new  subject. 

The  Quakers  then  believe  that  the  spirit  of  God 
formed  or  created  the  world.  They  believe  that 
it  was  given  to  men,  after  the  formation  of  it,  as 
a  guide  to  them  in  their  spiritual  concerns.  They 
believe  that  it  was  continued  to  them  after  the 
deluge,  in  the  same  manner,  and  for  the  same 


RELIGION.  5?(77 

purposes,  to  the  time  of  Christ.  It  was  given, 
however,  in  this  interval,  to  (lifForent  persons  in 
diflbrent  degrees.  Thus  the  prophets  received  a 
greater  portion  of  it  than  ordinary  persons  in  their 
own  times.  Thus  Moses  was  more  illuminated 
by  it  than  his  cotcmporaries,  for  it  became  through 
him  the  author  of  the  law.  In  the  time  of  Christ 
it  continued  the  same  olTice,  but  it  was  then  given 
more  diffusively  than  before,  and  also  more  dif- 
fusively to  some  than  to  others.  Thus  the  Evan- 
gelists and  Apostles  received  it  in  an  extraordina- 
ry degree,  and  it  became,  through  them  and  Jesu» 
Christ  their  head,  the  author  of  the  Gospel.  But, 
besides  its  office  of  a  spiritual  light  and  guide  to 
men  in  their  spiritual  concerns,  during  all  the 
period  now^  assigned,  it  became  to  them,  as  they 
attended  to  its  influence,  an  inward  redeemer, 
producing  in  them  a  new  birth,  and  leading  them 
to  perfection.  And  as  it  was  thus  both  a  guide 
and  an  inward  redeemer,  so  it  has  continued  these 
offices  to  the  present  day. 

From  hence  it  will  be  apparent  that  the  ac- 
knowledgment of  God's  Holy  Spirit,  in  its  various 
operations,  as  given  in  different  portions  before 
and  after  the  sacrifice  of  Christ,  is  the  acknow- 
ledgment of  a  principle,  which  is  the  great  corner 
stone  of  the  religion  of  the  Quakers.  Without 
this  there  can  be  no  knowledge,  in  their  opinion, 


208  RELIGION. 

of  spiritual  things.  Without  this  there  can  be  no 
spiritual  interpretation  of  the  scriptures  them- 
selves. Without  this  there  can  be  no  redemption 
by  inward,  though  there  may  be  redemption  by 
outward  means.  Without  this  there  can  be  no 
enjoyment  of  the  knowledge  of  divine  things. 

Take  therefore  this  principle  away  from  them, 
and  you  take  away  their  religion  at  once.  Take 
away  this  spirit,  and  Christianity  remains  with 
them  no  more  Christianity,  than  the  dead  carcass 
of  a  man,  when  the  spirit  is  departed,  remains  a 
man.  AV^hatsoever  is  excellent,  whatsoever  is 
noble,  whatsoever  is  worthy,, whatsoever  is  desira- 
ble in  the  Christian  faith,  they  ascribe  to  this  spi- 
rit, and  they  believ  e  that  true  Christianity  can  no 
moire  subsist  without  it,  than  the  outward  world 
could  go  on  without  the  vital  influence  of  the  sun. 

Now  an  objection  will  be  made  to  the  proposi- 
tion, as  I  have  just  stated  it,  by  some  Christians, 
and  even  by  those  who  do  not  wish  to  derogate 
from  the  spirit  of  God,  -for  I  have  frequently 
heard  it  started  by  such)  that  the  Quakejs,  by 
means  of  these  doctrines,  make  every  thing  of  the 
spirit,  and  ^  but  little  of  Jesus  Christ.      I   shall 


a  The  Quakers  make  much  of  tlic  advantages  of  Christ's  coming  in  the 
flesh.  Among  these  are  considered  the  sacrifice  of  his  own  body,  a  more 
plentiful  dill'nsion  of  the  Spirit,  and  a  clearer  revelation  relative  to  God 
and  man. 


RELIGION.  209 

therefore  notice  this  objection  in  this  place,  not  so 
much  with  a  mcv  of  answering  it,  as  of  attempt- 
ing to  show,  that  Christians  have  not  always  a 
right  apprehension  of  scriptural  terms  ;  and  there- 
fore that  they  sometimes  quarrel  with  one  another 
about  triiles,  or  rather,  that  when  they  have  dis- 
putes with  each  other,  there  is  sometimes  scarce- 
ly a  shade  of  difference  between  them. 

To  those  who  njake  the  objection,  I  shall  de- 
scribe the  proposition  which  has  been  stated 
above,  in  ditVer^  nt  terms.  I  shall  leave  out  the 
words  "  Spirit  of  God,"  and  I  shall  wholly  substi- 
tute the  term  "  Cljrjst."  This  I  shall  do  upon 
the  authority  of  some  of  our  best  divines.  The 
proposition  then  will  run  thus : 

God,  by  means  of  Christ,  created  the  world, 
"  for  without  him  was  not  any  thing  made,  that 
was  made." 

He  made,  by  means  of  the  same  Christ,  the  ter- 
restrial Globe  on  which  we  live.  He  made  the 
whole  Host  of  Heaven.  He  made,  therefore,  be- 
sides our  own,  other  planets  and  other  worlds. 

He  caused  also,  by  means  of  the  same  Christ, 
the  2:eneration  of  all  animated  nature,  and  of 
course  of  thf  life  and  vital  powers  of  man. 

He  occasioned  also  by  the  same  means,  the  ge- 
voL,  II.  2  E  ' 


^10  RELIGION. 

neration  of  reason  or  intellect,  and  of  a  spiritual 
faculty,  to  man. 

Man,  however,  had  not  been  long  created,  be- 
fore he  fell  into  sin.  It  pleased  God,  therefore, 
that  the  same  Christ,  which  had  thus  appeared  in 
creation,  should  strive  inwardly  with  man,  and 
awaken  his  spiritual  faculties,  by  which  he  might 
be  able  to  know  good  from  evil,  and  to  obtain  in- 
ward redemption  from  the  pollutions  of  sin.  And 
this  inward  striving  of  Christ  was  to  be  with  every 
man,  in  after  times,  so  that  all  would  be  inexcusa- 
ble and  subjected  to  condemnation,  if  they  sin- 
ned. 

It  pleased  God  also,  in  process  of  time,  as  the 
attention  of  man  was  led  astray  by  bad  customs, 
by  pleasures,  by  the  cares  of  the  world,  and  other 
causes,  that  the  same  Christ,  in  addition  to  this 
his  inward  striving  with  him,  should  afford  him 
outward  help,  accommodated  to  his  outward  sen- 
ses, by  which  his  thoughts  might  be  oftener  turned 
towards  God,  and  his  soul  be  the  better  preserved 
in  the  way  of  salvation,  Christ  accordingly, 
through  Moses  and  the  Prophets,  became  the  au- 
thor of  a  dispensation  to  the  Jews,  that  is,  of  their 
laws,  types,  and  customs,  of  their  prophecies,  and 
of  their  scriptures. 

But  as  in  the  education  of  man  things  must  be 


RELIGION.  21  1 

graduallv  iinfokled,  so  it  pleased  God,  in  the 
scheme  of  his  redemption,  tliat  (he  same  Christ,  in 
fidness  of  time,  should  take  tlesh,  and  become  per- 
sonally upon  earth  the  author  of  another  out- 
ward, but  of  a  more  pure  and  glorious  dispensa- 
tion, than  the  former,  which  was  to  be  more  ex- 
tensive also;  and  which  was  not  to  be  confined  to 
the  Jews,  but  to  extend  in  time  to  the  uttermost 
corners  of  the  earth.  Christ  therefore  became 
the  Author  of  the  inspired  delivery  of  the  outward 
scriptures  of  the  New  Testament.  By  these,  as 
by  outward  and  secondary  means,  he  acted  upon 
men's  senses.  He  informed  them  of  their  corrupt 
nature,  of  their  awful  and  perilous  situation,  of 
another  life,  of  a  day  of  judgment,  of  rewards 
and  punishments.  These  scriptures  therefore,  of 
which  Christ  was  the  Author,  were  outward  in- 
struments at  the  time,  and  continue  so  to  poste- 
rity, to  second  his  inward  aid.  Thai  is,  they  pro- 
duce thought,  give  birth  to  anxiety,  excite  fear, 
promote  seriousness,  turn  the  eye  towards  God, 
and  thus  prepare  the  heart  for  a  sense  of  those  in- 
ward strivings  of  Christ,  which  produce  inward 
redemption  from  the  power  and  guilt  of  sin. 

Where,  however,  this  outward  aid  of  the  Holy 
Scriptures  has  not  reached,  Christ  continues  to 
purify  and  redeem  by  his  inward  power.      But  as 


212  RELIGION. 

men,  who  are  acted  upon  solely  by  his  inward 
strivings,  have  not  the  same  advantages  as  those 
who  are  also  acted  upon  by  his  outward  word,  so 
less  is  expected  in  the  one  than  in  the  other  case. 
Less  is  expected  from  the  Gentile  than  from  the 
Jew :  less  from  the  Barbarian  than  from  the 
Christian. 

And  this  latter  doctrine  of  the  universality  of 
the  striving  of  Christ  svith  man,  in  a  spiritually  in- 
structive and  redemptive  capacity,  as  it  is  merciful 
and  just,  so  it  is  worthy  of  the  wise  and  beneficent 
Creator.  Christ,  in  short,  has  been  filling,  from 
the  foundation  of  the  world,  the  office  of  an  inward 
redeemer,  and  this,  without  any  exception,  to  all 
of  the  human  race.  And  there  is  even  ^  "  now 
no  salvation  in  any  other.  For  there  is  no  other 
name  under  Heaven  given  among  men,  whereby 
we  must  be  saved." 

From  this  new  statement  of  the  proposition, 
which  statement  is  consistent  with  the  language 
of  divines,  it  will  appear,  that,  if  the  Quakers  have 
made  eveiy  thing  of  the  spirit,  and  but  little  of 
Christ,  I  have  made,  to  suit  the  objectors,  every 
thing  of  Christ,  and  but  little  of  the  spirit.  Now 
I  would  ask,  where  lies  the  diilerence  between  the 

b  Acts  4.  12. 


RELIGION.  213 

two  statements  ?  Which  is  the  more  accurate ;  or 
wliether,  when  I  say  these  things  were  done  by 
the  spirit,  and  when  I  say  they  were  done  by 
Christ,  I  do  not  state  precisely  the  same  proposi- 
tion, or  express  the  same  thing  ? 

That  Christ,  in  all  the  offices  stated  by  the 
proposition,  is  neither  more  nor  less  than  the  spirit 
of  God,  there  can  surely  be  no  doubt.  In  looking 
at  Cln'ist,  we  are  generally  apt  to  view  him  with 
carnal  eyes.  We  can  seldom  divest  ourselves  of 
the  idea  of  a  body  belonging  to  him,  though  this 
was  confessedly  human,  and  can  seldom  consider 
him  as  a  pure  principle  or  fountain  of  divine  life 
and  light  to  men.  And  yet  it  is  obvious,  that  we 
must  view  him  in  this  light  in  the  present  cascj 
for  if  he  was  at  the  creation  of  the  world,  or  with 
Moses  at  the  delivery  of  the  law,  (which  the 
proposition  supposes)  he  could  not  have  been 
there  in  his  carnal  body;  because  this  was  not 
produced  till  centuries  afterwards  by  the  virgin 
Mary.  In  this  abstracted  light,  the  Apostles  fre- 
quently view  Christ  themselves.  Thus  St.  Paul:  "^ 
'*  I  live,  yet  not  I,  but  Christ  liveth  in  me."  And 
again,  ^  c<  Know  ye  not  your  own  selves,  how  that 
Jesus  Christ  is  in  you,  except  ye  be  reprobates?" 

c  Gal.  2.  20.  d  2  Cor.  13.5. 


^14  RELIGION. 

Now  no  person  imagines  that  St,  Paul  had  any 
idea,  either  that  the  body  of  Christ  was  in  himself, 
or  in  others,  on  the  occasions  on  whicli  he  has 
thus  spoken. 

That  Christ  therefore,  as  he  held  the  oftices  con- 
tained in  the  proposition,  was  the  spirit  of  God, 
we  may  pronounce  from  various  views,  which  we 
may  take  of  him,  all  of  which  seem  to  lead  us  to 
the  same  conclusion. 

And  first  let  us  look  at  Christ  in  the  scriptural 
light  in  which  he  has  been  held  forth  to  us  in  the 
fourth  section  of  the  seventh  chapter,  where  I  have 
explained  the  particular  notions  of  the  Quakers 
relative  to  the  new  birth. 

God  maybe  considered  here  as  having  produced, 
by  means  of  his  Holy  Spirit,  a  birth  of  divine 
life  in  the  soul  of  the  "  body  which  had  been 
prepared ;"  and  this  birth  was  Christ.  ^  "  But 
that  which  is  born  of  the  spirit,  says  St.  John,  is 
spirit."  The  only  question  then  will  be  as  to  the 
magnitude  of  the  spirit  thus  produced.  In  answer 
to  this  St.  John  says,  ^  "  that  God  gave  him  not 
the  spirit  by  measure."  And  St.  Paul  says  the 
same  thing  :  ^  «  For  in  him  all  the  fulness  of  the 
godhead  dwelt  bodily."  Now  we  can  have  no  idea 

e  John  3.  6.  f  John  3.  34.  g  Coloss.  C, 9. 


KETJCION.  ^l.> 

of  a  spirit  without  measure,  or  containing  the 
fuhiess  of  the  godhead,  but  the  spirit  of  God. 

Let  us  now  look  at  Christ  in  another  point  of 
view,  or  as  St.  Paul  seems  to  have  viewed  him. 
He  defines  Christ  ^  "  to  be  tlic  wisdom  of  God, 
and  the  power  of  God."  But  what  are  the  wisdom 
of  God,  and  the  power  of  God,  but  the  great 
characteristics  and  the  great  constituent  parts  of 
his  spirit  r 

But  if  these  views  of  Christ  should  not  be  deemed 
satisfactory,  we  will  contemplate  him  as  St.  John 
the  Evangelist  has  held  him  forth  to  our  notice. 
Moses  says,  that  the  spirit  of  God  created  the 
world.  But  St.  John  says  that  the  word  created 
it.  The  spirit  therefore  and  the  word  must  be  the 
same.  But  this  word  he  tells  us  afterwards,  and 
this  positively,  was  Jesus  Christ. 

It  appears  therefore  from  these  observations, 
that  it  makes  no  material  difference,  whether  we 
use  the  words  "  Spirit  of  God"  or  "  Christ,"  in  the 
proposition  that  has  been  before  us,  or  that  there 
will  be  no  difference  in  the  meaning  of  the 
proposition,  either  in  the  one  or  the  other  case; 
and  also  if  the  Quakers  only  allow,  when  the  spirit 
took  flesh,  that  the  body  was  given  as  a  sacrifice 

h  1.  Cor.  1.  2*. 


216  RELIGION. 

for  sin,  or  that  a  part  of  the  redemption  of  man, 
as  far  as  his  sins  are  forgiven,  is  effected  by  this 
sacrifice,  there  will  be  little  or  no  difference  be- 
tween the  religion  of  the  Quakers  and  that  of  the 
objectors,  as  far  as  it  relates  to  Christ  *. 

i  The  Quakers  have  frequently  said  in  their  theological  writings,  that 
every  man  has  a  portion  of  the  Holy  Spirit  within  him  ;  and  this  assertiom 
has  not  been  censured.  But  they  have  also  said,  that  every  man  has  a 
portion  of  Christ  or  of  the  light  of  Christ,  within  him.  Now  this  assertion 
has  been  considered  as  extravagant  and  wild.  The  reader  will  therefor^ 
see,  that  if  he  admits  the  one,  he  cannot  very  consistently  censure  the  other. 


liELlGION.  217 

CHAP.  X. 

SECT.  I. 

Ministers — The  Spirit  of  God  alone  can  make  a 
Minister  of  the  Gospel — Hence  no  imposition  of 
hands  nor  human  knowledge  can  be  effectual — 
This  proposition  not  peculiarly  adopted  by  George 
Fox,  but  by  Justin  the  Martyr,  Luther,  Calvin, 
Wickliffe,  Tyndal,  Milton,  and  others — Way  in 
zvhich  this  call,  by  the  Spirit,  qualifies  for  tJie  mi- 
nistry— Women  equally  qualified  with  men — How 
a  Quaker  becomes  acknoivledged  to  be  a  Minister 
of  the  Gospel. 


rTAVlNG  now  detailed  fully  the  operations  of 
the  Spirit  of  God,  as  far  as  the  Quakers  believe  it 
to  be  concerned  in  the  instruction  and  redemp- 
tion of  man,  I  shall  consider  its  operations,  as  far 
as  they  believe  it  to  be  concerned  in  the  services 
of  the  church.  Upon  this  spirit  they  make  both 
their  worship  and  their  ministry  to  depend.  I 
shall  therefore  consider  these  subjects,  before  I 
proceed  to  any  new  order  of  tenets,  which  they 
may  hold. 

It  is  a  doctrine  of  the  Quakers  that  none  can 
VOL.  n.  2  F 


SI  8  RELIGION. 

spiritually  exercise,  and  that  none  ought  to  be  al- 
lowed to  exercise,  the  office  of  ministers,  but  such 
as  the  spirit  of  God  has  worked  upon  and  called 
forth  to  discharge  it,  as  well  as  that  the  same  Spi- 
rit will  never  fail  to  raise  up  persons  in  succession 
for  this  end. 

Conformably  with  this  idea,  no  person,  in  the 
opinion  of  the  Quakers,  ought  to  be  designed  by 
his  parents  in  early  youth  for  the  priesthood  :  for 
as  the  wind  bloweth  where  it  listeth,  so  no  one 
can  say  which  is  the  vessel  that  is  to  be  made  to 
honour. 

Conformably  with  the  same  idea,  no  imposition 
of  hands,  or  ordination,  can  avail  any  thing,  in  their 
opinion,  in  the  formation  of  a  minister  of  the  Gos- 
pel ;  for  no  human  power  can  communicate  to 
the  internal  man  the  spiritual  gifts  of  God. 

Neither,  in  conformity  with  the  same  idea,  can 
the  acquisition  of  human  learning,  or  the  obtani- 
ing  Academical  degrees  and  honours,  be  essential 
qualifications  for  this  office ;  for  though  the  hu- 
man intellect  is  so  great,  that  it  can  dive  as  it 
were  into  the  ocean  and  discover  the  laws  of  fluids, 
and  rise  again  up  to  heaven,  and  measure  the  ce- 
lestial motions,  yet  it  is  incapable  of  itself  of  pe- 
netrating into  divine  things,  so  as  spiritually  to 
know  them  ;  while,  on  the  other  hand,  illiterate 


RELIGION.  219 

men  appear  often  to  have  more  knowledge  on 
these  subjects  than  the  most  learned.  Indeed  the 
Quakers  have  no  notion  of  a  human  qualification 
for  a  divine  calling.  The}^  reject  all  school  di- 
vinity, as  necessarily  connected  with  the  ministry. 
They  believe  that  if  a  knowledge  of  Christianity 
had  been  attainable  by  the  acquisition  of  the 
Greek  and  Roman  languages,  and  through  the 
medium  of  the  Greek  and  Roman  philosophers, 
then  the  Greeks  and  Romans  themselves  had 
been  the  best  proficients  in  it;  whereas,  the  Gos- 
pel was  only  foolishness  to  many  of  these.  They 
say  with  St.  Paul  to  the  Colossians,  ^  "  Beware 
lest  any  man  spoil  you  through  philosophy  and 
vain  deceit,  after  the  tradition  of  men,  after  the 
rudiments  of  the  world,  and  not  after  Christ." 
And  they  say  with  the  same  Apostle  to  Timothy, 
1  "  O  Timothy !  keep  that  which  is  committed  to 
thy  trust,  avoid  profane  and  ^  ain  babblings,  and 
oppositions  of  science  falsely  so  called,  which  some 
professing  have  erred  concerning  the  faith." 

This  notion  of  the  Quakers,  that  human  learn- 
ing and  academical  honours  are  not  necessary  for 
the  priesthood,  is  very  ancient.  Though  George 
Fox  introduced  it  into  his  new  society,  and  this 

k  Coloss.  2,  I.  11  Tim.  6.  20.  21. 


220  RELIGION. 

without  any  previous  reading  upon  the  subject, 
yet  it  had  existed  long  before  his  time.  In  short, 
it  was  connected  with  the  tenet,  early -dissemina- 
ted in  the  church,  that  no  person  could  know  spi- 
ritual things  but  through  the  medium  of  the  spirit 
of  God,  from  whence  it  is  not  difficult  to  pass  to 
the  doctrine,  that  none  could  teach  spiritually 
except  they  had  been  taught  spiritually  them- 
selves. Hence  we  find  Justin  the  Martyr,  a 
Platonic  philosopher,  but  who  was  afterwards  one 
of  the  earliest  Christian  writers  after  the  Apostles, 
and  other  learned  men  after  him  down  to  Chry- 
sostom,  laying  aside  their  learning  and  their  phi- 
losophy for  the  school  of  Christ.  The  first  au- 
thors also  of  the  reformation,  contended  for  this 
doctrine.  Luther  and  Calvin,  both  of  them,  sup- 
ported it.  Wicklilfe,  the  first  reformer  of  the 
English  church,  and  Tyndal  the  Martyr,  the  first 
translator  of  the  Bible  into  the  English  language, 
supported  it  also.  In  ]65'2,  S3'^drach  Simpson, 
Master  of  Pembroke-Hall  in  Cambridge,  preach- 
ed a  sermon  before  the  Univer.sity,  contending 
that  the  Universities  corresponded  with  the 
schools  of  the  prophets,  and  that  human  learning 
was  an  essential  qualification  for  the  priesthood. 
This  sermon,  however,  was  ansvrered  by  William 
Dell,  Master  of  Caius  Colle£:e  in  the  same  Uni- 


RELIGION.  221 

vcrsity,  in  which  he  stated,  after  having  argued 
tlie  points  in  question,  that  the  Universities  did 
not  correspond  with  the  schools  of  the  prophets, 
but  with  those  of  Heathen  men  ;  that  Plato,  Aris- 
totle, and  Pythagoras,  were  more  honoured  there, 
than  Moses  or  Christ ;  that  grammar,  rhetoric, 
logic,  ethics,  physics,  metaphysics,  and  the  ma- 
thematics, were  not  the  instruments  to  be  used  in 
the  promotion  or  the  defence  of  the  Gospel ;  that 
Ciu'istian  schools  had  originally  brought  men  from 
Heathenism  to  Cliristianity,  but  that  the  Uni- 
versity schools  were  likely  to  carry  men  from 
Christianity  to  Heathenism  again.  This  language 
of  William  Dell  was  indeed  the  general  language 
of  the  divines  and  pious  men  in  those  times  in 
which  George  Fox  lived,  though  unquestionably 
the  opposite  doctrine  had  been  started,  and  had 
been  received  by  many.  Thus  the  great  John 
Milton,  who  lived  in  these  very  times,  may  be 
cited  as  speaking  in  a  similar  manner  on  the 
same  subject.  "  Next,  says  he,  it  is  a  fond  error, 
though  too  much  believed  among  us,  to  think  that 
the  University  makes  a  minister  of  the  gospel. 
AVhat  it  may  conduce  to  other  arts  and  sciences, 
I  dispute  not  now.  But  that,  which  makes  fit  a 
?vlinister,  the  Scripture  can  best  inform  us  to  be 
only  from  above  3  whence  also  we  are  bid  to  seek 


222  RELIGION. 

them.  "»  Thus  St.  Matthew  says,  "  Pray  ye 
therefore  the  Lord  of  the  harvest,  that  he  will  send 
forth  labourers  into  his  harvest."  Thus  St.  Luke : 
"  "  The  flock,  over  which  the  Holy  Ghost  hath 
made  you  overseers."  Thus  St.  Paul:  °  "  How 
shall  they  preach,  unless  they  be  sent  r"  But  by 
whom  sent  ?  By  the  university,  or  by  the  magis- 
trate ?  No,  surely.  But  sent  by  God,  and  by  him 
only." 

The  Quakers  then,  rejecting  school  divinity, 
continue  to  think  with  Justin,  Luther,  Dell,  Mil- 
ton, and  indeed  with  those  of  the  church  of  En- 
gland and  others,  that  those  only  can  be  proper 
ministers  of  the  church,  who  have  witnessed  with- 
in themselves  a  call  from  the  spirit  of  God.  If 
men  would  teach  religion,  they  must,  in  the  opin- 
ion of  the  Quakers,  be  Hrst  taught  of  God.  They 
must  go  first  to  the  school  of  Christ ;  must  come 
under  his  discipline  in  their  hearts  ;  must  mortify 
the  deeds  of  the  body  3  must  crucify  the  flesh 
with  the  affections  and  lusts  thereof ;  must  put  off 
the  old  man  which  is  corrupt ;  must  put  on  the 
new  man,  "  which  after  God  is  created  in  righte- 
ousness and  true  holiness  ;"  must  be  in  fact,  "  Mi- 
nisters   of  the   sanctuary   and   true    tabernacle, 

m  Mat.  9.  38.  ii  Acts  20. 28.  o  Roui.  10.  15. 


RELTGTON.  223 

which  the  Lord  hath  pitched,  and  not  man."  And 
whether  those  who  come  forward  as  ministers 
are  really  acted  upon  by  this  Spirit,  or  by  their 
own  imagination  only,  so  that  they  mistake  the 
one  lor  the  other,  the  Quakers  consider  it  to  be 
essentially  necessary,  that  they  should  experience 
such  a  call  in  their  own  feelings,  and  that  purifi- 
cation of  heart,  which  they  can  only  judge  of  by 
their  outward  lives,  should  be  perceived  by  them- 
selves, before  they  presume  to  enter  upon  such 
an  office. 

The  Quakers  believe  that  men,  qualified  in  this 
manner,  are  really  fit  for  the  ministry,  ajid  are 
likely  to  be  useful  instruments  in  it.  For  first,  it 
becomes  men  to  be  changed  themselves,  before 
they  can  change  others.  Those  again,  who  have 
been  thus  changed,  have  the  advantage  of  being 
able  to  state  from  living  experience  what  God  has 
done  for  themj  ^  "  what  they  have  seen  with  their 
eyes ;  what  they  have  looked  upon ;  and  what  theit 
hands  have  handled  of  the  word  of  life."  Men 
also,  Avho,  by  means  of  God's  Holy  Spirit,  have 
escaped  the  pollutions  of  the  world,  are  in  a  fit 
state  to  understand  the  mysteries  of  God,  and  to 
carry  with  them  the  seal  of  their  own  commission. 
Thus  men  under  sin  can  never  discern  spiritual 

• 

p  Colos?.  2.  9. 


224  RELIGION. 

things.  But  "  to  the  disciples  of  Christ,"  and  to 
the  doers  of  his  will,  "  it  is  given  to  know  the 
mysteries  of  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven."  Thus, 
when  the  Jews  marvelled  at  Christ,  saying  i  "  How 
knoweth  this  man  letters,  (or  the  scriptures)  having 
never  learned?  Jesus  answered  them,  and  said. 
My  doctrine  is  not  mine,  but  his  who  sent  me. 
If  any  man  will  do  his  will,  he  shall  know  of  the 
doctrine,  whether  it  be  of  God,  or  whether  I  speak 
of  myself."  Such  ministers  also  are  considered 
as  better  qualified  to  reach  the  inward  state  of  the 
people,  and  to  "  preach  liberty  to  the  captives" 
of  sin,  than  those  who  have  merely  the  advantage 
of  school  divinity,  or  of  academical  learning.  It 
is  believed  also  of  these,  that  they  are  capable 
of  giving  more  solid  and  lasting  instruction, 
when  they  deliver  themselves  at  large:  for  those, 
who  preach  rather  from  intellectual  abilities  and 
from  the  suggestionsof  human  learning,  than  from 
the  spiritual  life  and  power  which  they  fmd  within 
themselves,  may  be  said  to  forsake  Christ,  who  is 
the  '^  living'  fountain,  and  to  hew  out  broken  cis- 
terns which  hold  no  v\'ater,"  either  for  themselves 
or  for  others. 

This  qualificatioji  for  the  ministry  being  allowed 
to  be  the  true  one,  it  will  follow,  the  Quakers 

q  ]  Tim.  C,  20.21. 


RELIGION.  '2-2o 

believe-,  and  it  was  Luther's  belief  also,  that  women, 
may  be  equally  qualified  to  become  ministers  of 
the  Gospel,  as  the  men.     For  they  believe  that 
God  has  given  his  Holy  Spirit,  without  exception', 
to  all.     They  dare  not  therefore  limit  its  operations 
in  the  office  of  the  ministry,  more  than  in  any 
other    of  the  sacred  offices    which  it  may  hold. 
They  dare   not  again   say,  that  women    cannot 
mortify  the  deeds  of  the  tlesh,  or  that  they  cannot 
be  regenerated,  and  walk  in  newness  of  life.     If 
women  therefore  believe  they  have  a  call  to  the 
ministry,  and  undergo  the  purification  necessarily 
connected  with  it,  and  preach  in  consequence,  and 
preach    etfectivcly,   they  dare  not,   under   these 
circumstances,  refuse  to  accept  their  preaching, 
as  the  fruits  of  the  spirit,  merely  because  it  comes 
through  the  medium  of  the  female  sex. 

Against  this  doctrine  of  the  Quakers,  that  a 
female  ministry  is  allowable  under  the  Gospel 
dispensation,  an  objection  has  been  started  from 
the  following  words  of  the  Apostle  Paul :  ^  «  Let 
your  women  keep  silence  in  the  churches,  for  it  is 
not  permitted  unto  them  to  speak" — "  and  if  they 
will  learn  any  thing,  let  them  ask  their  Husbands 

r  1  Cor.  14.  34.  35. 
VOL.  II.  2    G 


326  RELIGION. 

at  home."  But  the  Quakers  conceive,  that  this 
charge  of  the  Apostle  has  no  allusion  to  preaching. 
In  these  early  times,  when  the  Gospel  doctrines 
were  new,  and  people  were  eager  to  understand 
them,  some  of  the  women,  in  the  warmth  of  their 
feelings,  interrupted  the  service  of  the  church,  by 
asking  snch  questions  as  occurred  to  them  on  the 
subject  of  this  new  religion.  These  are  they  whom 
the  Apostle  desires  to  be  silent,  and  to  reserve 
their  questions  till  they  should  return  home.  And 
that  this  was  the  case  is  evident,  they  conceive, 
from  the  meaning  of  the  words,  which  the  Apostle 
uses  upon  this  occasion.  For  the  word  in  the 
Greek  tongue,  which  is  translated  "  speak,"  does 
not  mean  to  preach  or  to  pray,  but  to  speak  as  in 
common  discourse.  And  the  words,  which  im- 
mediately follow  this,  do  not  relate  to  any  evan- 
crelical  instruction,  which  these  women  were  de- 
sirous  of  communicating  publicly,  but  which  they 
were  desirous  of  receiving  themselves  from  others. 
That  the  words  quoted  do  not  relate  to  praying 
or  preaching  is  also  equally  obvious,  in  the  opinion 
of  the  Quakers;  for  if  they  had  related  to  these 
offices  of  the  church,  the  word  "  prophesy"  had 
been  used  instead  of  the  word  "  speak."  Add  to 
which  that  the  Apostle,  in  the  same  epistle  in 
which  the  preaching  of  women  is  considered  to  be 


RELIGFON.  927 

forbidden,  gives  them  a  rule  to  which  he  expects 
them  to  conform,  when  tliey  should  either  prophesy 
or  pray:  but  to  give  women  a  rule  to  be  observed 
during  their  preaching,  and  to  forbid  them  to 
preach  at  the  same  time,  is  an  absurdity  too  great 
to  be  fixed  upon  the  most  ordinary  person,  and 
nuich  more  upon  an  inspired  Apostle. 

That  the  objection  has  no  foundation,  the 
Quakers  believe  again,  from  the  consideration 
that  the  ministry  of  women,  in  the  days  of  the 
Apostles,  is  recognized  in  the  New  Testament, 
and  is  recognized  also,  in  some  instances,  as  an 
acceptable  service. 

Of  the  hundred  and  twenty  persons  who  were 
assembled  on  the  day  of  pentecost,  it  is  said  by 
St.  Luke  that '  some  were  women.  That  these 
received  the  Holy  Spirit  as  well  as  the  men,  and 
that  they  received  it  also  for  the  purpose  of  pro- 
phesying or  preaching,  is  obvious  from  the  same 
Evangelist.  For  first,  he  says,  that  "^  all  were  filled 
with  the  Holy  Ghost."  And  secondly,  he  says, 
that  Peter  stood  up,  and  observed  concerning  the 
circumstance  of  inspiration  having  been  given  to 
the  women  upon  this  occasion,  that  Joel's  prophecy- 
was  then  fulfilled,  in  which  were  to  be  found  these 
words:  "  And  it  shall  come  to  pass  in  the  last  days, 

s   Acts,  C'lnp    1 


228  RELIGION. 

that  your  sons  and  your  daughters  shall  prophesy 
— and  on  my  servants  and  handmaidens  I  will 
pour  out  in  those  days  of  my  spirit;  and  they  shall 
prophesy." 

That  women  preached  afterwards,  or  in  times 
subsequent  to  the  day  of  pentecost,  they  collect 
from  the  same  Evangelist.  ^  For  he  mentions 
Philip,  who  had  four  daughters,  all  of  whom 
prophesied  at  Caesarea.  Now  by  prophesying, 
if  we  accept  "^  St.  Paul's  interpretation  of  it,  is 
meant  a  speaking  to  edification,  and  exhortation, 
and  comfort,  under  the  influence  of  the  Holy  Spirit. 
It  was  also  a  speaking  to  the  church :  it  was  also 
the  speaking  of  one  person  to  the  church,  while 
the  others  remained  silent. 

That  women  also  preached  or  prophesied  in  the 
church  of  Coiinth,  the  Quakers  show  from  the 
testimony  of  St.  Paul:  for  he  states  the  manner  in 
which  they  did  it,  or  that  ^  they  prayed  and 
prophesied  with  their  heads  uncovered. 

That  women  also  were  ministers  of  the  Gospel 
in  other  places;  and  that  they  were  highly  service- 
able to  the  church,  St  Paul  confesses  with  great  sa- 
tisfaction, in  his  Epistle  to  the  Romans,  in  which  he 
sends  his  salutation  to  dilferent  persons,  for  whom 
he  professed  an  affection  or  an  esteem  :  ^^  thus — 

t  ^\cts21.  9.  V  1  Cor.  11.  j. 

u  1  Cor.  14,  ^v  llomans  16.  1, 


RELIGION.  229 

"•  I  commend  unto  you  Ph(rbe  our  sisttr,  w  ho  i<i 
a  servant  of  the  church,  whicli  is  at  Cenchrea." 
Upon  this  passage  the  Quakers  usually  make  two 
observations.  The  first  is,  that  the  "  Greek  word, 
which  is  translated  servant,  should  have  been 
rendered  minister.  It  is  translated  minister,  when 
applied  by  St.  Paul  to  y  Timothy,  to  denote  his 
oflice.  It  is  also  translated  minister,  when  applied 
to  ^  St.  Paul  and  Apollos.  And  there  is  no  reason 
why  a  change  should  have  been  made  in  its  mean- 
ing in  the  present  case.  The  second  is,  that 
History  has  handed  down  Phoebe  as  a  woman 
eminent  for  her  Gospel  labours.  "  She  was  ce- 
lebrated, says  ""  Theodoret,  throughout  the  world; 
for  not  only  the  Greeks  and  the  Romans,  but  the 
Barbarians,  knew  her  likewise." 

St.  Paul  also  greets  Priscilla  and  Aquila.  IIi' 
greets  them  under  the  title  of  fellow-helpers  or 
fellow-labourers  in  Jesus  Christ.  But  this  is  the 
same  title  which  he  bestows  upon  Timoth}-,  to  de- 
note his  usefulness  in  the  church.  Add  to  which, 
that  Priscilla  and  Aquila  were  the  persons  of  whom 
St.  Luke  ^  says,  "  that  they  assisted  A])ollos  in 


y  1  Thess.  3.  2.  z   1  Cor.  3.  j. 

a  III  Universa  TeiTu  cek-biis  facta  c»f  ;  iic»*  cam  soli  Tlomani,  k' 

b  .Acts  IS.  C+.  'K: 


'2S{)  RELIGION. 

expounding  to  him  the  way  of  God  more  perfect- 

ly-" 

In  the  same  epistle  he  recognizes  also  other  wo- 
men, as  having  been  useful  to  him  in  Gospel-la- 
bours. Thus — "  Salute  Tryphena,  and  Tryphosa, 
who  labour  in  the  Lord."  *'  Salute  the  beloved 
Persis,  who  laboured  much  in  the  Lord." 

From  these,  and  from  other  observations,  which 
might  be  made  upon  this  subject,  the  Quakers  are 
of  opinion,  that  the  ministry  of  the  women  was  as 
acceptable,  in  the  time  of  the  Apostles,  as  the  mi- 
nistry of  the  men.  And  as  there  is  no  prohibition 
against  the  preaching  of  women  in  the  New  Tes- 
tament, they  see  no  reason  why  they  should  not 
be  equally  admissible  and  equally  useful  as  mi- 
nisters at  the  present  day. 


RELIGION.  231 


SECT.  II. 


jraij  in  ichich  Quaker's  are  admiUcd  into  Uic  minis- 
Irij — JVhcn  achnowledged,  thai  prcadiy  like  other 
pastors^  to  tin  ir  different  eon gi^egat ions  or  meet- 
ings— They  visit  oeeasionalhi  the  different  families 
in  their  oivn  counties  or  quarterl}}  meetings — Man- 
ner of  fliese  family-visits — Sometimes  travel  as 
ministers  through  particular  counties  or  tlie  king- 
dom at  large — Sometimes  into  foreign  parts — 
Women  share  in  these  labours — Expense  of  voy- 
ages on  such  occasions  defrayed-  out  of  the  national 
stock. 


1  HE  way  in  which  Quakers,  whether  men  or 
women,  who  conceive  themselves  to  be  called  to 
the  oftice  of  the  ministry,  are  admitted  into  it,  so 
as  to  be  acknowledged  by  the  society  to  be  mi- 
nisters of  the  Quaker-church,  is  simply  as  follows. 
Any  member  has  a  right  to  rise  up  in  the  meet- 
ings for  worship,  and  to  speak  publicly.  If  any 
one  therefore  should  rise  up  and  preach,  who  has 
never  done  so  before,  he  is  heard.  The  congre- 
gation are  all  witnesses  of  his  doctrine.  The  el- 
ders, however,  who  may  be  present,  and  to  whose 


932  RELIGION. 

province  it  more  immediately  belongs  to  judge  of 
the  fitness  of  ministers,  observe  the  tenoiir  of  his 
discourse.     They  watch  over  it  for  its  autliority ; 
that  is,  they  judge  by  its  spiritual  influence  on 
the  mind,  v\^hether  it  be  such  as  corresponds  with 
that  which  may  be  presumed  to  come  from  the 
spirit  of  God.      If  the  new  preacher  delivers  any 
thing  that  appears  exceptionable,  and  continues 
to  do  so,  it  is  the  duty  of  the  elders  to  speak  to 
him  in  private,  and  to  desire  him  to  discontinue 
his  services  to  the  church.     But  if  nothing  excep- 
tionable occurs,  nothing  is  said  to  him,  and  he  is 
allowed  to  deliver  himself  publicly  at  future  meet- 
ings.    In  process  of  time,  if,  after  repeated  at- 
tempts  in  the  office  of  the   ministry,   the    new 
preacher  should  have  given  satisfactory  proof  of 
his  gifts,  he  is  reported  to  the  monthly  meeting 
to  which  he  belongs.     And  this  meeting,  if  satis- 
fied with  his  ministry,  acknowledges  him  as  a  mi- 
nister, and  then  recommends  him  to  the  meeting 
of  ministers  and  elders  belonging  to  the  same. 
No  other  act  than  this  is  requisite.    He  receives  no 
verbal  or  written  appointment  or  power  for  the 
execution  of  the  sacerdotal  oflice.     It  may  be  ob- 
served also,  that  he  neither  gains  any  authority, 
nor  loses  any  privilege,  l>y  thus  becoming  a  mi- 
nister of  the  Gospel.     Except,  while  in  the  im- 


RELIGION.  233 

mediate  exercise  of  his  calling,  he  is  only  a  com- 
mon member.  He  receives  no  elevation  by  the 
assumption  of  any  nominal  title,  to  distinguish 
him  from  the  rest.  Nor  is  he  elevated  by  the 
prospect  of  any  increase  to  his  vvordly  goods  in 
consequence  of  his  new  oflice  ^  for  no  minister  in 
this  society  receives  any  pecuniary  emolument 
for  his  spiritual  labours. 

When  ministers  are  thus  approved  and  ac- 
knowledged, they  exercise  the  sacred  office  in 
public  assemblies,  as  they  immediately  feel  them- 
selves influenced  to  that  work.  They  may  engage 
also,  with  the  approbation  of  their  own  monthly 
meeting,  in  the  work  of  visiting  such  Quaker  fa- 
milies as  reside  in  the  county,  or  quarterly  meet- 
ing to  which  they  belong.  In  this  case  they  are 
sometimes  accompanied  by  one  of  the  elders  of 
the  church.  These  visits  have  the  name  of  fami- 
ly visits,  and  are  conducted  in  the  following  man- 
ner :  — 

When  a  Quaker  minister,  after  having  com- 
menced his  journey,  has  entered  the  house  of  the 
first  family,  the  individual  members  are  collected 
to  receive  him.  They  then  sit  in  silence  for  a 
time.  As  he  believes  himself  concerned  to  speak, 
he  delivers  that  which  arises  in  his  mind  with 
religious  freedom.     The  master,  the  wife,  and  the 

VOL.  II,  2  H 


S34  RELIGION. 

other  branches  of  the  family,  are  sometimes  se- 
verally addressed.  Does  the  minister  feel  that 
there  is  a  departure  in  any  of  the  persons  present, 
from  the  principles  or  practice  of  the  society, 
he  speaks,  if  he  believes  it  required  of  him,  to 
these  points.  Is  there  any  well  disposed  person 
under  any  inward  discouragement ;  this  person 
may  be  addressed  in  the  language  of  consolation. 
AH  in  fact  are  exhorted  and  advised  as  their  seve- 
ral circumstances  may  seem  to  require.  When 
the  religious  visit  is  over,  the  minister,  if  there  be 
occasion,  takes  some  little  refreshment  with  the 
family,  and  converses  with  them  ;  but  no  light  or 
trifling  subject  is  ever  entered  upon  on  these  oc- 
casions. From  one  family  he  passes  on  to,  an- 
other, till  he  has  visited  all  the  families  in  the  dis- 
trict, for  which  he  had  felt  a  concern. 

Though  Quaker  ministers  frequently  confuie 
their  spiritual  labours  to  the  county  or  quarterly 
meeting  in  which  they  reside,  yet  some  of  them 
feel  an  engagement  to  go  beyond  these  bounda- 
ries, and  to  visit  the  society  in  particular  counties, 
or  in  the  kingdom  at  large.  They  who  feel  a  con- 
cern of  this  kind,  must  lay  it  before  their  own 
monthly  meetings.  These  meetings,  if  they  feel 
it  right  to  countenance  it,  grant  them  certificates 
for  the  purpose.      These  certificates  are  nccessa- 


RELIGION.  235 

vy ;  first,  because  ministers  might  not  be  person- 
ally known  as  ministers  out  of  their  own  district; 
and  secondly,  because  Quakers,  who  were  not 
ministers,  and  other  persons  who  might  counter- 
feit the  dress  of  Quakers,  might  otherwise  impose 
upon  the  society,  as  they  travelled  along. 

Such  persons,  as  thus  travel  in  the  work  of  the 
ministry,  or  public  friends  as  they  are  called,  sel- 
dom or  never  go  to  an  inn  at  any  town  or  village, 
where  Q.uakers  live.  They  go  to  the  houses  of 
the  latter.  While  at  these,  they  attend  the  week- 
ly, monthly,  and  quarterly  meetings  of  the  dis- 
trict, as  they  happen  on  their  route.  They  call 
also  extraordinary  meetings  of  worship.  At 
these  houses  they  are  visited  by  many  of  the 
members  of  the  place  and  neighbourhood,  who 
call  upon  and  converse  with  them.  During 
these  times  they  appear  to  have  their  minds  bent 
on  the  object  of  their  mission,  so  that  it  would  be 
difficult  to  divert  their  attention  from  the  work  in 
hand.  When  they  have  staid  a  sufficient  time  at 
a  town  or  village,  they  depart.  One  or  more 
guides  are  appointed  by  the  particular  meeting, 
belonging  to  it,  to  show  them  the  way  to  the  next 
place,  where  they  propose  to  labour,  and  to  con- 
vey them  free  of  expense,  and  to  conduct  them  to 
the  house  of  some  member  there.     From   this 


236  RELIGION. 

house,  when  their  work  is  finished,  they  are  con- 
veyed and  conducted  hy  new  guides  to  anotheFj 
and  so  on,  till  they  return  to  their  respective 
homes. 

But  the  religions  views  of  the  Quaker  ministers 
are  not  always  confined  even  within  the  boundaries, 
of  the  kingdom.  Many  of  them  believe  it  to  be 
their  duty  to  travel  into  foreign  parts.  These,  as 
their  journey  is  now  extensive,  must  lay  their  con- 
cern not  only  before  theii  own  monthly  meeting, 
but  before  their  own  quarterly  meeting,  and  before 
the  meeting  of  Ministers  and  Elders  in  London 
also.  On  receiving  their  certificates,  they  depart. 
Some  of  them  visit  the  continent  of  Europe,  but 
most  of  them  the  churches  in  America,  where  they 
diligently  labour  in  the  vineyard,  probably  for  a 
year  or  two,  at  a  distance  from  their  families  aiul 
friends.  And  here  it  may  be  observed,  that,  while 
Quaker  ministers  from  England  are  thus  visiting: 
America  on  a  religious  errand,  ministers  from 
America,  impelled  by  the  same  inlluence,  are  en- 
gaging in  Apostolical  missions  to  England.  These 
foreign  visits,  on  both  sides,  are  not  undertaken 
by  such  ministers  only  as  are  men.  AVoinen  en- 
gage in  them  also.  U'hey  cross  the  Atlantic,  and 
labour  in  the  vineyard  in  the  same  manner.  It 
may  be  mentioned  here,  that  though  it  be  a  prin- 


RELIGION.  257 

ciple  in  the  Quaker  society,  that  no  minister  of  the 
Gospel  ought  to  be  paid  for  his  religious  labours, 
yet  the  expense  of  the  voyage,  on  such  occasions, 
is  allow  ed  to  be  defrayed  out  of  the  fund,  which  is 
denouiiiiated  by  the  Quakers  their  national  stock. 


^58  kELlGION^. 


CHAP.  XI. 


Elders-- Their  appointment — One  part-  of  their 
office  to  watch  over  the  doctrines  and  conduct  of 
ministers — Another  part  of  their  office  to  meet  the 
ministers  of  the  churchy  and  to  confer  and  exhort  for 
religious  good — None  to  meddle  at  these  conferences 
With  the  govermne?it  of  the  church. 


1  MENTIONED  in  the  preceding  chapter,  as  the 
reader  must  have  observed,  that  certain  persons, 
called  Elders,  watched  over  those  who  came  forward 
in  the  ministry,  with  a  view  of  ascertaining  if  they 
had  received  a  proper  qualification  or  call.  I  shall 
now  state  who  the  elders  are,  as  well  as  more 
particularly  the  nature  of  their  office. 

To  every  particular  meeting  four  elders,  two 
men  and  two  women,  but  sometimes  more  and 
sometimes  less,  according  as  persons  can  be  found 
qualified,  are  appointed.  These  are  nominated  by 
a  committee  appointed  by  the  monthly  meeting, 
in  conjunction  with  a  committee  appointed  by  the 
quarterly  meeting.  And  as  the  office  annexed  to 
the  name  of  elder  is  considered  peculiarly  import- 
ant by  the  Quakers,  particular  care  is  taken,  that- 


RELIGION.  239 

persons  of  clear  discernirient,  and  such  as  excel 
in  the  spiritual  ear,  and  such  as  are  blameless  in 
their  lives,  are  appointed  to  it.  It  is  recommended 
that  neither  wealth  nor  age  be  allowed  to  operate 
as  inducements  in  the  choice  of  them.  Indeed,  so 
much  care  is  required  to  be  taken  with  respect  to 
the  filling  up  this  office,  that  if  persons  perfectly 
suitable  are  not  to  be  found,  the  meetings  are  to 
be  left  without  them. 

It  is  one  part  of  the  duty  of  the  elders,  when 
appointed,  to  watch  over  the  doctrine  of  young 
ministers,  and  also  to  watch  over  the  doctrine  and 
conduct  of  ministers  generally,  and  tenderly  to 
•advise  with  such  as  ap})ear  to  them  to  be  deficient 
in  any  of  the  qualifications  which  belong  to  their 
high  calling. 

Wlien  we  consider  that  every  religious  society 
attaches  a  more  than  common  respectability  to  the 
person  who  performs  the. sacerdotal  office,  there 
will  be  no  difficulty  in  supposing,  whenever  a 
minister  may  be  thought  to  err,  that  many  of  those 
who  are  aware  of  his  error,  will  want  the  courage 
to  point  it  out  to  him,  and  that  others  will  excuse 
themselves  from  doing  it,  by  saying  that  interfer- 
ence on  this  occasion  does  not  belong  more  im- 
mediately to  them  than  to  others.  This  institution 
therefore  of  elders  fixes  the  office  on  individual;?. 


2i0  RELIGION, 

It  makes  it  'their  duty  to  watch  and  advise — It 
makes' thetn  responsible  for  the  unsound  doctrine, 
or  the  bad^  conduct  of  their  ministers.  And  this 
responsibility  is  considered  as  likely  to  give  per- 
sons that  courage  in  watching  over  the  ministry, 
which  they  might  otherwise  want.  Hence,  if  a 
minister  in  the  Qaaker  church  were  to  preach 
unsaundly,  or  to  act  inconsistently  with  his  calling, 
he  would  be  generally  sure  of  being  privately 
spoken  to  by  one  or  another  elder. 

This  office  of  elders,  as  far  as  it  is  concerned  in 
advising  ministers  of  the  Gospel,  had  its  foundation 
laid  by  George  Fox.  Many  persons,  who  engaged 
in  the  ministry  in  his  time,  are  described  by  him 
as  "  having  run  into  imaginations,"  or  as  "  having 
gone  beyond  their  measiu-e ;"  and  in  these  cases, 
whenever  they  should  happen,  he  recommended 
tliat  one  or  two  friends,  if  they  saw  tit,  should 
advise  with  them  in  love  and  v/isdom.  In  process 
of  time,  however,  this  evil  seems  to  have  increased; 
for  as  the  society  spread,  numbers  pressed  forward 
to  become  Gospel  ministers  ;  many  supposed  they 
had  a  call  from  the  spirit,  and  rose  up,  and  preach- 
ed, and  in  the  heat  of  their  imaginations,  delivered 
themselves  unjjrofitably.  Two  or  three  persons 
also,  in  the  frenzy  of  their  enthusiasm,  frequently 
rose  up,  and  spoke  at  the,  same  time.     Now  this 


RELIGION.  241 

was  easily  to  be  done  in  a  religious  society,  where 
all  were  allowed  to  speak,  and  where  the  qualifica- 
tions of  ministers  were  to  be  Judged  of  in  part  by 
the  truths  delivered,  or  rather,  where  ordination 
was  no  mark  of  the  ministry,  or  where  an  human 
appointment  of  it  was  unknown.  For  these  rea- 
sons, that  mode  of  superintendence  which  had 
only  been  suggested  by  George  Fox,  and  left  to 
the  discretion  of  individuals,  was  perfected  into  an 
establishment,  out  of  imperious  necessity,  in  after 
times.  Men  were  appointed  to  determine  between 
the  effects  of  divine  inspiration  and  human  imagi- 
nation ;  to  judge  between  the  cool  and  the  sound ; 
and  the  enthusiastic  and  the  defective  ;  and  to  put 
a  bridle  as  it  were  upon  those  who  were  not  likely 
to  become  profitable  labourers  in  the  harvest  of 
the  Gospel.  And  as  this  olTice  was  rendered 
necessary  on  account  of  the  principle  that  no 
ordination  or  human  appointment  could  make  a 
minister  of  the  Gospel;  so  the  same  principle 
continuing  among  the  Quakers,  the  office  has  been 
continued  to  the  present  day. 

It  devolves  upon  the  elders  again,  as  a  second 
branch  of  their  duty,  to  meet  the  ministers  of  the 
church  at  stated  seasons,  generally  once  in  three 
months,  and  to  spend  some  time  with  them  in  re- 
ligious retirement.     It  is  supposed  that  opportu- 

VOL.    TI.  2    1 


^242  RELIGION. 

nities  may  be  afforded  here,  of  encouraging  and 
strengthening  young  ministers,  of  confirming  the 
old,  and  of  giving  religious  advice  and.  assistance 
in  various  ways:  and  it  must  be  supposed  at  any 
rate,  that  religious  men  cannot  meet  in  religious 
conference,  without  some  edification  to  each 
other.  At  these  meetings,  queries  are  proposed 
relative  to  the  conduct  both  of  ministers  and  el- 
ders, which  they  answer  in  writing  to  the  quar- 
terly meetings  of  ministers  and  el'lers  to  which 
they  belong.  Of  the  ministers  and  elders  thus 
assembled,  it  may  be  observed,  that  it  is  their  du- 
ty to  confine  themselves  wholly  to  the  exhortation 
of  one  another  for  good.  They  can  make  no 
laws,  like  the  ancient  synods  and  other  convoca- 
tions of  the  clergy,  nor  dictate  any  article  of 
faith.  Neither  can  they  meddle  with  the  govern- 
ment of  the  church.  The  Quakers  allow  neither 
ministers  nor  elders,  by  virtue  of  their  office,  to 
interfere  with  their  discipline.  Every  proposition 
of  this  sort  must  be  determined  upon  by  the  year- 
ly meeting,  or  by  the  body  at  large. 


HELTGION.  243 

CHAP.  XII. 
SECT.  r. 

Worship — Consists  of  prayer  and  preachino — AVz- 
tlicr  of  these  effectual  but  bt/  the  Spirit — Hence 
no  liti/rgi/  or  form  of  wordst  or  studied  sermons, 
in  tiie  Quaker-church — Singular  manner  of  deliv- 
ering sermons — Tone  of  the  voice  usually  censured 
— This  may  arise  from  the  difference  betioeen  na- 
ture and  art — Objected,  that  there  is  little  variety 
of  subject  in  the<<e  sermons — Variety  not  so  neces- 
sary  to  Quakers — Other  objections — Replies — Ob- 
servations of  Francis  Lambert y  of  Avignon. 


A.S  no  person,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers, 
can  be  a  true  minister  of  the  gospel,  unless  he 
feel  himself  called  or  appointed  by  the  spirit  of 
God,  so  there  can  be  no  true  or  effectual  worship, 
except  it  come  through  the  aid  of  the  same  spirit. 

The  public  worship  of  God  is  usually  made  to 
consist  of  prayer  and  preaching. 

Prayer  is  a  solemn  address  of  the  soul  to  God. 
It  is  a  solemn  confession  of  some  weakness,  or 
thanksgiving  for  some  benefit,  or  petition  for  some 


244  RELIGION. 

favour.  Bat  tlie  Quakers  consider  such  an  ad- 
dress as  deprived  of  its  life  and  power,  except 
it  be  spiritually  conceived.  "  "  For  the  spirit 
helpeth  our  infirmities.  For  we  know  not  what 
we  should  pray  for  as  we  ought.  But  the  Spirit 
itself  makcth  intercession  for  us  with  groanings 
which  cannot  be  uttered." 

Preaching,  on  the  other  hand,  is  an  address  of 
man  to  men,  that  their  attention  may  be  turned 
towards  God,  and  their  minds  be  prepared  for 
the  secret  and  heavenly  touches  of  his  spirit.  But 
this  preaching,  again,  cannot  be  effectually  per- 
formed, except  the  spirit  of  God  accompany  it. 
Thus  St.  Paul,  in  speaking  of  himself,  says,  'i 
"  And  my  speech  and  my  preaching  was  not  with 
enticing  words  of  man's  w^isdom,  but  in  demon- 
stration of  the  spirit  and  with  power,  that  your 
faith  should  not  stand  in  the  wisdom  of  men,  but 
in  the  power  of  God."  So  the  Quakers  believe 
that  no  words,  however  excellent,  which  men  may 
deliver  now,  will  avail,  or  will  produce  that  faith 
which  is  to  stand,  except  they  be  accompanied 
by  that  power  which  shall  demonstrate  them  to  be 
of  God. 

From  hence  it  appears  to  be  the  opinion  of  the 

L-  Rom.  8.  26.  tl  1   Cor.  2.  4. 


RELIGION.  245 

Quakers,  that  the  whole  worship  of  God,  whetlier 
it  consist  of  prayer  or  of  preaching,  must  be  spi- 
ritual. Je.sus  Christ  has  also,  tiiey  say,  left  this 
declaration  upon  record,  '  that  "  God  is  a  spirit, 
and  that  they  that  worship  him,  must  worship 
him  in  spirit  and  in  truth."  By  wor.shipping 
him  in  truth,  they  mean,  that  men  are  to  worsliij) 
him  only  when  they  feel  a  right  disposition  to  do 
it,  and  in  such  a  manner  as  they  judge,  from 
their  own  internal  feelings,  to  be  the  manner 
which  the  spirit  of  God  then  signifies. 

For  these  reasons,  when  the  Quakers  enter  into 
their  meetings,  they  use  no  liturgy  or  form  of 
pra3'er.  Such  a  form  would  be  made  up  of  the 
words  of  man's  wisdom.  Neither  do  they  deliv^er 
any  sermons  that  have  been  previously  conceived 
or  written  down.  Neither  do  they  begin  their  ser- 
vice immediately  after  the}'  are  seated.  But  when 
they  sit  down,  they  wait  in  silence,  ^  as  the  Apos- 
tles were  commanded  to  do.  They  endeavour  to 
be  calm  and  composed.  They  take  no  thought  as 
to  what  they  shall  say.  They  avoid,  on  the  other 
hand,  all  activity  of  the  imagination,  and  every 
thing  that  arises  from  the  will  of  man.  The  crea- 
ture is  thus  brought  to  be  passive,  and  the  spirit- 

e  John  4.  2-i.  f  Mat.   lf>.    19.   Acts  1.  -V. 


246  RELIGION. 

ual  faculty  to  be  disencumbered,  so  that  it  cati  re- 
ceive and  attend  to  the  spiritual  language  of  the 
Creator.  ^  If,  durins^  this  vacation  from  all  men- 
tal activity,  no  impressions  should  be  given  to 
them,  they  say  nothing.  If  impressions  should  be 
afforded  to  tliem,  but  no  impulse  to  oral  delivery, 
they  remain  equally  silent.  But  if,  on  the  other 
hand,  impressions  are  given  them,  with  an  impulse 
to  u'terance,  they  deliver  to  the  congregation  as 
faithfully  as  they  can,  the  copies  of  the  several 
images,  which  they  conceive  to  be  painted  upon 
their  minds. 

This  utterance,  when  it  manifests  itself,  is 
resolvable  into  prayer  or  preaching.  If  the 
minister  engages  in  prayer,  the  whole  company 
rise  up,  and  the  men  with  the  minister  take  off 
their  hats,  that  is,  ^  uncover  their  heads.  If  he 
preaches  only,  they  do  not  rise,  but  remain  upon 
their  seats  as  before,  with  their  heads  covered. 
The  preacher,  however,  uncovers  his  own  head 
upon  this  occasion.   . 

There  is  somethino^  sinsjular  in  the  manner  in 

g  Tliey  believe  it  their  duty,  (to  sneak  in  the  Quaker  language,)  to 
maintain  the  watch,  by  preserving  the  imagination  from  being  carried 
away  by  thoughts  originating  in  man  ;  and,  in  such  watch,  patiently  to 
await  for  the  arising  of  thatTifc,  wh'ch,  by  subduing  the  thoughts  of  man, 
produces  an  inward  silence,  and  tiicrciu  bestows  a  true  sight  of  his  condi- 
tion upon  him  h  1  Cor.  Cb.  11. 


RELIGION.  247 

which  the  Quakers  deliver  themselves  when  they 
preach  In  the  beginnmgof  their  discourses,  they 
generally  utter  their  words  with  slowness;  indeed, 
with  a  slowness,  which  sometimes  renders  their 
meaning  almost  unintelligible  to  persons  unaccus- 
tomed to  such  a  mode  of  delivery;  for  seconds 
sometimes  elapse  between  the  sounding  of  short 
sentences  or  single  words,  so  that  the  mind  cannot 
always  easily  carry  the  first  words,  and  join  them 
to  the  intermediate,  and  connect  them  witli  the 
last.  As  they  proceed,  they  communicate  their 
impressions  in  a  brisker  manner;  till,  at  length, 
getting  beyond  the  quickness  of  ordinary  delivery, 
they  may  be  said  to  utter  them  rapidly.  At  this 
time,  some  of  them  appear  to  be  much  alTected, 
and  even  agitated  by  their  subject.  This  method 
of  a  very  slow  and  deliberate  pronunciation  at  firsts 
and  of  an  accelerated  one  afterwards,  appears  to 
me,  as  far  as  I  have  seen  or  heard,  to  be  universal: 
for  though  undoubtedly  some  may  make  less^ 
pauses  between  the  introductory  words  and  sen- 
tences than  others,  yet  all  begin  slower  thart 
they  afterwards  proceed. 

This  singular  custom  may  be  probably  account- 
ed for  in  the  following  manner.  The  Quakers 
certainly  believe  that  the  spirit  of  God  furnishes 
them  with  impressions  on  these  occasions,  but 
that  the  desGnption  of  these  is  left  to  themselves. 


248  RELIGION. 

Hence  a  faithful  watch  must  be  kept,  that  these 
may  be  delivered  to  their  hearers  conformably 
to  what  is  delivered  to  them.  But  if  so,  it  may 
perhaps  be  necessary  to  be  more  watchful  at  the 
outset,  in  order  to  ascertain  the  dimensions  as  it 
were  of  these  impressions,  and  of  their  several  ten- 
dencies and  bearings,  than  afterwards,  when  such 
a  knowledge  of  them  has  been  obtained.  Or  it 
may  be  that  ministers,  who  go  wholly  unprepared 
to  preach,  have  but  a  small  view  of  the  subject 
at  first.  Hence  they  speak  slowly.  But  as  their 
views  are  enlarged,  their  speech  becomes  quick- 
ened, and  their  feelings  become  interested  with  it. 
These,  for  any  thing  I  know,  may  be  solutions, 
upon  Quaker  principles,  of  this  extraordinary 
practice. 

Against  the  preaching  of  the  Quakers,  an  objec- 
tion is  usually  made  by  the  world,  namely,  that 
their  ministers  generally  deliver  their  doctrines 
with  an  unpleasant  tone.  But  it  may  be  observed 
that  this,  which  is  considered  to  be  a  defect,  is  by 
no  means  confined  to  the  Quakers.  Persons  of 
other  religious  denominations,  who  exert  them- 
selves in  the  ministry,  are  liable  to  the  same  charge. 
It  may  be  observed  also,  that  the  dilTerence  be- 
tween the  accent  of  the  Quakers,  and  that  of  the 
speakers  of  the  world,  may  arise  in  the  diifcrencc 
!)ctween  art  and  nature.     The  person  who  pre- 


RELIGION.  249 

pares  bis  lecture  for  the  lecture-room,  or  his  ser- 
mon for  the  pulpit,  studies  the  formation  of  his 
sentences,  which  are  to  be  accompanied  by  a 
modulation  of  the  voice.  This  modulation  is  ar- 
tificial, for  it  is  usually  taught.  The  Quakers,  on 
the  other  hand,  neither  prepare  their  discourses, 
nor  vary  their  voices  purposely,  according  to  the 
rules  of  art.  The  tone  which  comes  out,  and 
which  appears  disagreeable  to  those  who  are  not 
used  to  it,  is  nevertheless  not  unnatural.  It  is 
rather  the  modeofspeaking  which  nature  imposes, 
in  any  violent  exertion  of  the  voice,  to  save  the 
lungs.  Hence  persons  who  have  their  wares  to 
cry,  and  this  almost  every  other  minute,  in  the 
streets,  are  obliged  to  adopt  a  tone.  Hence  per- 
sons with  disordered  lungs,  can  sing  words  with 
more  ease  to  themselves  than  they  can  utter  them, 
with  a  similar  pitch  of  the  voice.  Hence  Quaker 
women,  when  they  preach,  have  generally  more 
of  this  tone  than  the  Quaker  men,  for  the  lungs  of 
the  female  are  generally  weaker  than  those  of  the 
other  sex. 

Against  the  sermons  of  the  Quakers  two  objec- 
tions are  usually  made;  the  first  of  which  is,  that 
ihey  contain  but  little  variety  of  subject.  Among 
dissenters  it  is  said,  but  more  particularly  in  the 
establishment,  that  you  may  hear  fifty  sermons 

VOL.   IT.  2    K 


250  RELIGION. 

following  each  other,  where  the  subject  of  each  is 
different.  Hence  a  man,  ignorant  of  letters,  may 
collect  all  his  moral  and  religious  duties  from  the 
pulpit  in  the  course  of  the  year.  But  ihis  variety, 
it  is  contended,  is  not  to  be  found  in  the  Quaker 
church. 

That  there  is  less  variety  in  the  Quaker  sermons 
than  in  those  of  others,  there  can  be  no  doubt. 
Bat  such  variety  is  not  so  necessary  to  Quakers, 
on  account  of  their  peculiar  tenets,  and  the 
universality  of  their  education,  as  to  others.  For 
it  is  believed,  as  I  have  explained  before,  that  the 
spirit  of  God,  if  duly  attended  to,  is  a  spiritual 
guide  to  man,  and  that  it  leads  him  into  all  truth ; 
that  it  redeems  him  ;  and  that  it  qualifies  him 
therefore  for  happiness  in  a  future  state.  Thus  an 
injunction  to  attend  to  the  teachings  of  the  spirit, 
supersedes,  in  some  measure,  the  necessity  of 
detailing  the  moral  and  religious  obligations  of 
individuals.  And  this  necessity  is  still  farther 
su|)erseded  by  the  consideration,  that,  as  all  the 
members  of  the  Quaker  society  can  read,  they  can 
collect  their  Christian  duly  from  the  scriptures, 
independently  of  their  own  ministers  j  or  that  they 
can  collect  those  dati(\sfor  tliemselves,  v.hich  oth- 
ers, who  are  illiterate,  are  obliged  to  collect  from 
the  church. 


RELIGION,  .  25[ 

^. 

The  second  objection  is,  that  the  Quaker  dis- 
courses have  generally  less  in  them,  and  are 
octasifinall V  less  connected  or  more  confused  than 
those  of  others. 

It  must  be  obvious,  when  we  consider  that  the 
Q  laker  ministers  are  often  persons  of  but  little 
erudition,  and  that  their  principles  forbid  them  to 
premeditate  on  these  occasions,  that  we  can  hardly 
expect  to  find  the  same  logical  division  of  the 
subject,  or  the  same  logical  provings  of  given 
points,  as  in  the  sermons  of  those  who  spend 
hours,  or  even  days  together,  in  composing  tiiem. 

With  respect  to  the  apparent  barrenness,  or  the 
little  matter  sometimes  discoverable  in  their  ser- 
mons, they  would  reply,  that  God  has  not  given  to 
every  man  a  similar  or  equal  gift.  To  some  he 
has  given  largely;  to  others  in  a  less  degree. 
Upon  some  he  has  bestowed  gifts,  that  may  edify 
the  learned;  ui>on  others  such  as  may  edify  the 
illiterate.  Men  are  not  to  limit  his  spirit  by  their 
own  notions  of  qualification.  Like  the  wind,  it 
bloweth  not  only  where  it  listeth,  but  as  it  listeth. 
Thus  preaching,  which  may  appear  to  a  scholar 
as  below  the  ordinary  standard,  may  be  more 
edifying  to  the  simple  hearted,  than  a  discourse 
better  delivered,  or  more  eruditely  expressed. 
Thus  again,  preaching,  which  may  be  made  up  of 


252  RELIGION. 

high  sounding  words,  and  of  a  mechanical  manner 
and  an  affected  tone,  and  which  may,  on  these 
acconnts,  please  the  man  of  learning  and  taste, 
may  be  looked  upon  as  dross  by  a  man  of  moderate 
abiiiiies  or  acquirements.  And  thus  it  has  hap- 
pened, that  many  hav  e  left  the  orators  of  the  world 
and  joined  the  Quaker  society,  on  account  of  the 
barrenness  of  the  discourses  which  they  have 
heard  among  them. 

With  respect  to  Quaker  sermons  being  some- 
times iess  connected  or  more  confused  than  those 
of  others,  they  wouhl  admit  that  this  might 
apparently  happen  ;  and  they  would  explain  it  in 
the  following  manner.  Their  ministers,  they 
would  say,  when  they  sit  among  the  congregation, 
are  often  given  to  feel  and  discern  the  spiritual 
states  of  individuals  then  })resent,  and  sometimes 
to  believe  it  necessary  to  describe  such  states,  and 
to  add  such  advice  as  these  may  seem  to  require 
Now  these  states  being  frequently  different  from 
each  other,  the  descriptioa  of  them,  in  consequence 
of  an  aiu'upt  transition  from  one  to  the  other,  may 
sometimes  occasion  an  apparent  inconsistency  in 
their  discourses  on  such  occasions.  The  Quakers, 
however,  consider  all  such  discourses,  or  those 
in  which  states  are  described,  as  among  the  most 
efficacious  and  useful  of  those  delivered. 


RELIGION.  253 

But  whatever  may  be  the  merits  of  the  Quaker 
sermons,  there  are  circumstances  worthy  of  no- 
tice with  respect  to  the  Quaker  preachers.  In  the 
first  pUice,  they  always  deliver  their  discourses 
with  ij^reat  seriousness.  They  are  also  singularly 
bold  and  honest,  when  they  feel  it  to  be  their  du- 
ty, in  the  censure  of  the  vices  of  individuals,  what- 
ever may  be  the  riches  they  enjoy.  They  are  re- 
ported also  from  unquestionable  authority,  to 
have  extraordinary  skill  in  discerning  the  internal 
condition  of  those  who  attend  their  ministry,  so 
that  many,  feeling  the  advice  to  be  addressed  to 
themselves,  have  resolved  upon  their  amendment 
in  the  several  cases  to  which  their  preaching  seem- 
ed to  have  been  applied. 

As  I  am  speaking  of  the  subject  of  ministers,  I 
will  answer  one  or  two  questions,  which  I  have 
often  heard  asked  concerning  it. 

The  first  of  these  is,  do  the  Quakers  believe 
that  their  ministers  are  uniformly  moved,  Avhen 
they  preach,  by  the  spirit  of  God  ? 

I  answer — the  Quakers  believe  they  may  be  so 
moved,  and  that  they  ought  to  be  so  moved. 
They  believe  also  that  they  are  often  so  moved. 
But  they  believe  again,  that  except  their  ministers 
are  peculiarly  cautious,  and  keep  particularly  on 
their  watch,  they  may  mistake  their  own  imagin- 


254  RELIGION. 

ations  for  the  agency  of  this  spirit.  And  upon 
this  latter  belief  it  is,  in  part,  that  the  oTice  of 
elders  is  founded,  as  before  described. 

The  second  is,  as  there  are  no  defined  bounda- 
ries between  the  reason  of  man  and  the  revelation 
of  God,  how  do  the  Quakers  know  that  th*-y  are 
favoured  at  any  particular  time,  either  when  they 
preach  or  when  they  do  not  preach,  with  the  visit- 
ation of  this  spirit,  or  that  it  is,  at  any  particular 
time,  resident  within  them  ? 

Richard  Claridge,  a  learned  and  pious  clergy- 
man of  the  church  of  England  in  the  last  century, 
but  who  gave  up  his  benefices  and  joined  the 
society  of  the  Quakers,  has  said  a  few  words  in 
his  Tractatus  Hierographicus,  upon  this  subject, 
a  part  of  which  I  shall  transcribe  as  an  answer  to 
this  latter  question. 

"  Men,  sa}s  he,  may  certainly  know,  that  they 
do  believe  on  the  Son  of  God,  with  that  faith  that 
is  unfeigned,  and  by  which  the  heart  is  purified: 
for  this  faith  is  evidential  and  assuring,  and  con- 
sequently the  knowledge  of  it  is  certain.  Now 
they,  who  certainly  know  that  they  iiave  this 
knowledge,  may  be  certain  also  ol  the  spirit  of 
Christ  dwelling  in  them^  for  '  "  lie  tiiat  bciievelh 

i  1  Job  a  5.  10. 


RELIGION.  255 

on  the  Son  of  God,  hafli  the  to/fncs's-  in  himself;'' 
and  this  witness  is  the  spirit;  for  it  is  k«  the  spirit 
tliiit  beareth  witness,"  of  whose  testimony  they 
may  be  as  certain,  as  of  that  faith  the  spirit  bear- 
eth w  itne>s  to." 

Again — "  They  may  certainly  know  that  they 
love  the  Lord  a')ove  all,  and  their  neighl)our 
as  themselves.  For  the  command  implies  not 
only  a  possibility  of  knowing  it  in  general,  but 
also  of  such  a  knowledge  as  respects  their  own 
immediate  concernment  therein,  and  personal 
benefit  arising  from  a  sense  of  their  conformity 
and  obedience  thereunto.  And  seeing  they  may 
certainly  know  this,  they  may  also  as  certainly 
know,  that  the  spirit  of  Christ  dwelleth  in  themj* 
for  "  God  is  love,  and  he  that  dwelleth  in  love, 
dwelleth  in  God,  and  God  in  him."  And  «>  "if 
we  love  one  another,  God  dwelleth  in  us,  and  his 
love  is  perfected  in  us."  In  the  same  manner  he 
goes  on  to  enumerate  many  other  marks  from  texts 
of  scripture,  by  which  he  conceives  this  question 
may  be  determined  ". 

k  1  John  5.  6.  11  John  4.  16.  ml  Johu  4.  12. 

11  The  Quakers  conceive  it  to  be  no  more  difficult  for  tliem  to  distinguish 
tlie  motions  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  than  for  those  of  the  church  of  England,  who 
are  candidates  for  holy  orders.  Every  such  candidate  is  asked,  "  Do  5'ou 
trust  that  you  are  inwardly  moved  by  the  Holy  Ghost  to  take  upon  yo*^ 
this  office  and  Hiinistratiou  J"  Tiic  answer  isj  "  I  tnist  so." 


256  RELIGION. 

I  shall  conclude  this  chapter  on  the  subject  of 
the  Quaker  preaching,  by  an  extract  from  Francis^ 
Lanjbert  of  Avngnon,  whose  book  was  published 
in  the  year  1516,  long  before  the  society  of  the 
Quakers  took  its  rise  in  the  world.  "  Beware,  say& 
he,  that  thou  determine  not  precisely  to  speak 
what  before  thou  hast  meditated,  whatsoever  it  be; 
for  thousrh  it  be  lawful  to  determine  the  text 
which  thou  art  to  expound,  yet  not  at  all  the  in- 
terpretation ;  lest,  if  thou  doest  so,  thou  takest  from 
the  Holy  Spirit  that  which  is  his,  namely,  to  direct 
thy  speech  that  thou  may  est  preach  in  the  name 
of  the  Lord,  void  of  all  learning,  meditation,  and 
experience  ;  and  as  if  thou  hadst  studied  nothing 
at  all,  committing  thy  heart,  thy  tongue,  and  thy- 
self, wholly  unto  his  spirit ;  and  trusting  nothing  to 
thy  former  studying  or  meditation,  but  saying 
to  thyself  in  great  confidence  of  the  divine  pro- 
mise, the  Lord  will  give  a  word  with  much  power 
unto  those  that  preach  the  Gospel." 


RELIGION.  257 

SECT.  II. 

Hut   besides  oral  or  vocal,   there  is  silent  zcorsliip 

among  the  ^^uakers — Many  meeting'^  idierc  not  a 

word  is  saiil,  and  ijet  zcoj'ship  is  considered  to  have 

hegi/n^  and  to  he  proceeding — -Worship  not  necessa- 

rili/  CO /I  nee  fed  with  ivords — This   the  opinion  of 

other  pious  men  beside^   Quakers — Of  Hoioe — - 

» 
JIales — Cell — Smaldridgc,    bishop  of  Bristol — 

Monro — Advantages  which  the  Quakers  attach  to 

their  silent  zoo r ship. 


1  HAVE  hitherto  confined  myself  to  those  meethigs 
of  the  Quakers,  where  the  minister  is  said  to  have 
received  impressions  from  the  Spirit  of  God,  with 
a  desire  of  expressing  them,  and  where,  if  he  ex- 
presses them,  he  ought  to  dehver  them  to  the  con- 
gregation as  the  pictures  of  his  will ;  and  this,  as  ac- 
curately as  the  mirror  represents  the  object  that  is 
set  before  it.  There  are  times,  however,  as  I  men- 
tioned in  the  last  section,  when  either  no  impres- 
sions may  be  said  to  be  felt,  or,  if  any  are  felt,  tliere 
is  no  concomitant  impulse  to  utter  tliem.  In  this 
case  no  person  attempts  to  speak:  for  to  speak  or 
to  pray,  where  the  heart  feels  no  impulse  to  do  it, 

VOL.  II.  2      L 


258  RELIGION. 

would  be,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  to  mock 
God,  and  not  to  worship  him  in  spirit  and  in  truth. 
They  sit  therefore  in  silence,  and  worship  in  si- 
lence ;  and  they  not  only  remain  silent  the  whole 
time  of  their  meetings,  but  many  meetings  take 
place,  and  these  sometimes  in  succession,  when 
not  a  word  is  uttered. 

Michael  de  Molinos,  who  was  chief  of  the  sect 
of  the  Quietists,  and  whose  "  Spiritual  Guide  "  was 
printed  at  Venice  in  1685,  speaks  thus  :  "There 
are  three  kinds  of  silence;  the  first  is  of  words, 
the  second  of  desires,  and  the  third  of  thoughts. 
The  first  is  perfect ;  the  second  is  more  perfect ; 
and  the  third  is  most  perfect.  In  the  first,  that  is, 
of  words,  virtue  is  acquired.  In  the  second,  name- 
ly, of  desires,  quietness  is  attained.  In  the  third? 
of  thoughts,  internal  recollection  is  gained.  By 
not  speaking,  not  desiring,  and  not  thinking,  one 
arrives  at  the  true  and  perfect  mystical  silence, 
where  God  speaks  with  the  soul,  communicates 
himself  to  it,  and  in  the  abyss  of  its  own  depth, 
teaches  it  the  most  perfect  and  exalted  wisdom." 

Many  people  of  other  religious  societies,  if  they 
were  to  visit  the  meetings  of  the  Quakers  while 
under  their  silent  worship,  would  be  apt  to  consi- 
der the  congregation  as  little  better  than  stocks  or 
stones,  or  at  any  rate  as  destitute  of  that  life  and 


RKl.KJIOX.  259 

animation  which  constitute  the  essence  of  religion. 
Thev  would  have  no  idea  that  a  people  were  wor- 
shipping God,  whom  they  observed  to  deliver  no- 
thing from  their  lips.  It  does  not  follow,  how- 
ever, because  nothing  is  said,  that  God  is  not  wor- 
shipped. The  Quakers,  on  the  other  hand,  con- 
tend, that  these  silent  meetings  form  the  sublimest 
part  of  their  worship.  The  soul,  they  say,  can 
have  intercourse  with  God.  It  can  feel  refresh- 
ment, joy,  and  comfort,  in  him.  It  can  praise 
and  adorfe  him ;  and  all  this,  without  the  interven- 
tion  of  a  word. 

This  power  of  the  soul  is  owing  to  its  constitu- 
tion or  nature.  "  It  follow?,  says  tlie  learned 
Howe,  in  his  "Living  Temple,"  that  having  form- 
ed this  his  more  excellent  creature  according  to 
Jiis  own  more  express  likeness ;  stampt  it  with  the 
more  glorious  characters  of  his  living  image;  given 
it  a  nature  suitable  to  his  own,  and  thereby  made 
it  capable  of  rational  and  intelligent  converse  with 
him,  he  hath  it  even  in  his  power  to  maintain  a 
continual  converse  with  this  creature,  by  agreea- 
ble communications,  by  letting  in  upon  it  the 
vital  beams  and  influences  of  his  own  light  and 
love,  and  receiving  back  the  return  of  its  grateful 
acknowledgments  and  praises  :  wherein  it  is 
manifest  he  should  do  jio  greater  thing  than  he 


260  RELIGION. 

bath  done.  For  who  sees  not  that  it  is  a  mattei 
of  no  greater  difiiculty  to  converse  with,  than  to 
make  a  reasonable  creature?  Or  who  would  not 
be  ashamed  to  deny,  that  he  who  hath  been  the 
only  author  of  the  soul  of  man,  and  of  the  excel- 
lent powers  and  faculties  belonging  to  it,  can 
more  easily  sustain  that  which  he  hath  made,  and 
converse  with  his  creature  suitably  to  the  way, 
wherein  he  hath  made  it  capable  of  his  converse  ? 

That  worship  may  exist  without  the  interven- 
tion of  words,  on  account  of  this  constitution  of 
the  soul,  is  a  sentiment  which  has  been  espoused 
by  many  pious  persons  who  were  not  Quakers. 
Thus  the  ever  memorable  John  Hales,  in  his 
Golden  Remains,  expresses  himself:  "  Nay,  one 
thing  I  know  more,  that  the  prayer  which  is  the 
most  forcible,  transcends,  and  far  exceeds,  all 
power  of  words.  For  St.  Paul,  speaking  unto  us 
of  the  most  effectual  kind  of  prayer,  calls  it  sighs 
and  groans,  that  cannot  be  expressed.  Nothing 
cries  so  loud  in  the  ears  of  God,  as  the  sighing  of 
a  contrite  and  earnest  heart." 

"  It  requires  not  the  voice,  but  the  mind;  not 
the  stretching  of  the  hands,  but  the  intention  of 
the  heart;  not  any  outward  shape  or  carriage  of 
the  body,  but  the  inward  behaviour  of  the  under- 
standing.    How  then  can  it  slacken  your  worldly 


RELIGION.  261 

business  and  occasions,  to  mix  them  with  sighs 
and  groans,  which  are  the  most  elVcctual  i)rayer?" 

Dr.  Gcll,  before  quoted,  says^ — "  Words  conceiv- 
ed onlv  in  an  earthly  mind,  and  uttered  out  of  the 
memory  by  man's  voice,  which  make  a  noise  in  the 
ears  of  flesh  and  blood,  are  not,  nor  can  be  ac- 
counted a  prayer,  before  our  father  which  is  in 
Heaven." 

Dr.  Smaldridgc,  bisliop  of  Bristol,  has  the  fol- 
lowing expressions  in  his  sermons :  "  Prayer 
doth  not  consist  either  in  the  bending  of  our  knees, 
or  the  service  of  our  lips,  or  the  lifting  up  of  our 
hands  or  eyes  to  heaven,  but  in  the  elevation  of  our 
souls  towards  God.  These  outward  expressions 
of  our  inward  thoughts  are  necessary  in  our  pub- 
lic, and  often  expedient  in  our  private  devotions; 
but  they  do  not  make  up  the  essence  of  prayer, 
which  may  truly  and  acceptably'-  be  performed, 
where  these  are  wanting." 

And  he  says  afterwards,  in  other  parts  of  his 
work — *'  Devotion  of  mind  is  itself  a  silent  prayer, 
which  wants  not  to  be  clothed  in  words,  that  God 
may  better  know  our  desires.  He  regards  not  the 
service  of  our  lips,  but  the  inward  disposition  of 
our  hearts." 

Monro,  before  quoted,  speaks  to  the  same  effect, 
in  his  Just  Measures  of  the  Pious  Institutions  of 


2G'2  RELIGION. 

Youth.  "  The  breathings  of  a  recollected  soul  are 
not  noise  or  clamour.  The  language  in  whicU 
devotion  loves  to  vent  itself,  is  that  of  the  inward 
man,  which  is  secret  and  silent,  but  yet  God  hears 
it,  and  makes  gracious  returns  unto  it.  Sometimes 
the  pious  ardours  and  sensations  of  good  souls  arc 
such  as  they  cannot  clothe  with  words.  They  feel 
what  they  cannot  express.  I  would  not,  however, 
be  thought  to  insinuate,  that  the  voice  and  words 
are  not  to  be  used  at  all.  It  is  certain  that  public 
and  common  devotions  cannot  be  performed  with- 
out them  J  and  that  even  in  private,  they  are  not 
only  very  profitable,  but  sometimes  necessary. 
What  I  here  aim  at  is,  that  the  youth  should  be 
made  sensible,  that  words  are  not  otherwise  valu- 
able than  as  they  are  images  and  copies  of  what 
passes  in  the  hidden  man  of  the  heart;  especially 
considering  that  a  great  many,  who  appear  very 
angelical  in  their  devotions,  if  we  take  our  mea- 
sures of  them  from  their  voice  and  tone,  do  soon, 
after  these  intervals  of  seeming  seriousness  are 
over,  return  with  the  dog  to  the  vomit,  and  give 
palpable  evidences  of  their  carthliness  and  sensu- 
ality ;  their  passion  and  their  pride." 

Again — "  I  am  fpersuaded,  says  he,  that  it 
would  be  vastly  advantageous  for  the  youth,  if 
care  were  taken  to  train  them  up  to  this  method 


RELIGION.  06S 

of  prayer;  that  is,  if  they  were  taught  frequently 
to  place  themselves  in  the  divine  presence,  and 
there  silently  to  adore  their  Creator,  Redeemer,and 
Sanctifier.  For  hereby  they  vi^ould  become  ha^i 
bitually  recollected.  Devotion  Avould  be  their 
element;  and  they  would  know,  by  experience, 
what  our  blessed  Savour  and  his  great  Apostle 
meant,  when  they  enjoin  us  to  pray  without  ceas- 
ing. It  was,  I  suppose,  by  some  such  method  of 
devotion  as  I  am  now  speaking  of,  that  Enoch 
walked  with  God;  that  Moses  saw  him  that  is  in- 
visible ;  that  the  royal  Psalmist  set  the  Lord  always 
before  him;  and  that  our  Lord  Jesus  himself  con- 
tinued uhole  nights  in  prayer  to  God.  No  man, 
I  believe,  will  imagine  that  his  prayer,  during  all 
the  space  in  whicli  it  is  said  to  have  continued, 
was  altogether  vocal.  When  he  was  in  his  agony  in 
the  garden,  he  used  but  a  {^ew  words.  His  vocal 
prayer  then  consisted  only  of  one  petition,  and  au 
act  of  pure  resignation  thrice  repeated.  But  1 
hope  all  uill  allow,  that  his  devotion  lasted  longer 
tlian  while  he  was  employed  in  the  uttering  a  few 
sentences." 

These  meetings  then,  which  are  usually  deno- 
minated silent,  and  in  which,  though  not  a  word  be 
spoken,  it  appears  from  the  testimony  of  others 
that  God  may  be  truly  worshipped,  the  Quakers 


264  RELIGION. 

consider  as  an  important  and  sublime  part  of  their 
church  service,  and  as  possessing  advantages  which 
are  not  to  be  found  in  the  worship  which  proceeds 
solely  through  the  medium  of  the  mouth. 

For  in  the  first  place  it  must  be  obvious  that,  in 
these  silent  meetings,  men  cannot  become  charge- 
able before  God,  either  with  hypocrisy  or  falsehood, 
by  pretending  to  worship  him  with  their  lips,  when 
their  affections  are  far  from  him,  or  by  uttering  a 
language  that  is  inconsistent  with  the  feelings  of 
the  heart. 

It  must  be  obvious,  again,  that  every  man's  de- 
votion, in  these  silent  meetings,  is  made,  as  it  ought 
to  be,  to  depend  upon  himself^  for  no  man  can 
work  out  the  salvation  of  another  for  him.  A  man 
does  not  depend  at  these  times  on  the  words  of  a 
minister,  or  of  any  other  person  present;  but  his 
own  soul,  worked  upon  by  the  divine  influence, 
pleads  in  silence  with  the  Almighty  its  own  cause. 
And  thus,  by  extending  this  idea  to  the  congre- 
gation at  large,  we  shall  find  a  number  of  indivi- 
duals offering  up  at  the  same  time  their  own  several 
confessions;  pouring  out  their  own  several  peti- 
tions; givingtheirown  thanks  severally,  or  praising 
and  adoring;  all  of  them  in  different  languages, 
adapted  to  their  several  conditions,  and  yet  not 
interrupting  one  aiiOther. 


RELIGION.  265 

Nor  is  it  the  least  recommendation  of  this  wor- 
:!?hip,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  that,  being 
thus  wholly  spiritual,  it  is  out  of  the  power  of  the 
natural  man  to  obstruct  it.  No  man  can  break  the 
chains  that  thus  binds  the  spirit  of  man  to  the 
spirit  of  God  ^  for  this  chain,  which  is  spiritual,  is 
invisible.  But  this  is  not  the  case,  the  Quakers 
say,  with  any  oral  worship.  "  For  how,  says 
Barclay,  alluding  to  his  own  times,  can  the  Papists 
say  their  mass,  if  there  be  any  there  to  disturb  and 
interrupt  them  ?  Do  but  take  away  the  mass-book, 
the  chalice,  the  host,  or  the  priest's  garments  3 
yea,  do  but  spill  the  water,  or  the  wine,  or  blow 
out  the  candles,  (a  thing  quickly  to  be  done,)  and 
the  whole  business  is  marred,  and  no  sacrifice  can 
be  offered.  Take  from  the  Lutherans  and  Episco- 
palians their  liturgy  or  common  prayer-book, 
and  no  service  can  be  said.  Remove  from  the 
Calvinists,  Arminians,  Socinians,  Independents,  or 
Anabaptists,  the  pulpit,  the  bible,  and  the  hour- 
glass, or  make  but  such  a  noise  as  the  voice  of 
the  preacher  cannot  be  heard,  or  disturb  him  but 
so  before  he  come,  or  strip  him  of  his  bible  or  his 
books,  and  he  must  be  dumb  :  for  they  all  think  it 
an  heresy  to  wait  to  speak,  as  the  spirit  of  God 
giveth  utterance  ;  and  thus  easily  their  whole  wor- 
ship may  be  marred." 

VOL.    II.  2    M 


266  HELIGION. 


SECT.  III. 


Quakers  reject  every  thing  formal^  ostentatious ,  ami 
spiritless,  from  their  worship — Gi^oiind  on  which 
their  Meeting-houses  stand,  not  consecrated-^-The 
latter  plain — Women  sit  apart  from  the  men — No 
Pews — nor  priest'' s  garments — nor  psalmody — No 
one  day  thought  more  holy  than  another — But  as 
public  zvorship  is  necessary,  days  have  been  fixed 
upon  for  that  purpose. 


Jesus  Christ,  as  he  was  sitting  at  Jacob's  well, 
and  talking  with  the  woman  of  Samaria,  made  use 
of  the  following,  among  other  expressions,  in  his 
discourse :  "  Woman,  believe  me,  the  hour  cometh 
when  3'e  shall  neither  in  this  mountain,  nor  yet  at 
Jerusalem,  worship  the  Father.  But  the  hour 
cometh,  and  now  is,  when  the  true  worshippers 
shall  worship  the  Father  in  spirit  and  in  truth." 

These  expressions  the  Quakers  generally  render 
thus  :  I  tell  you  that  a  new  dispensation  is  at 
hand.  Men  will  no  longer  worship  at  Jerusalem 
more  acceptably  than  in  any  other  place.  Neither 
will  it  be  expected  of  them,  that  they  shall  wor- 
ship in  temples,  like  the  temple  there.     Neither 


RELIGION.  267 

the  glory,  nor  the  ornaments  of  gold  and  silver 
and  precious  stones,  nor  the  splendid  garments  of 
the  High  Priest,  will  he  any  parts  of  the  new  wor- 
ship that  is  approaching.  All  ceremonies  will 
be  done  away,  and  men's  religion  will  be  reduced 
simply  to  the  worshippinc^  of  God  in  spirit  and  in 
truth.  In  short,  the  Quakers  believe,  that,  when 
Jesus  came,  he  ended  the  temple,  its  ornaments, 
its  music,  its  Levitical  priesthood,  its  tithes,  its 
new  moons,  and  sabbaths,  and  the  various  cere- 
monial ordinances  that  had  been  engrafted  into 
the  religion  of  the  Jews. 

The  Quakers  reject  every  thing  that  appears  to 
them  to  be  superstitious,  or  formal,  or  ceremoni- 
ous, or  ostentatious,  or  spiritless,  from  their  wor- 
ship. 

They  believe  that  no  ground  can  be  made  holy ; 
and  therefore  they  do  not  allow  the  places  on 
which  their  Meeting-houses  are  built  to  be  con- 
secrated by  the  use  of  any  human  forms. 

Their  Meeting-houses  are  singularly  plain. 
There  is  nothing  of  decoration  in  the  interior  of 
them.  They  consist  of  a  number  of  plain  long 
benches  with  backs  to  them.  There  is  one  elevat- 
ed seat  at  the  end  of  these.  This  is  for  their  mi- 
nisters. It  is  elevated  for  no  other  reason,  than 
that  their  ministers  may  be  the  better  heard. 


f6«  RELIGION. 

The  W(^m^n  occupy  one  half  of  these  benches, 
and  sit  apart  from  the  men. 

These  benches  are  not  intersected  by  partitions. 
Hence  therp  are  no  distinct  pCM^s  for  the  families 
of  the  rich,  or  of  such  as  can  afford  to  pay  for 
them  :  for  in  the  first  place,  the  Quakers  pay  no- 
thing for  their  seats  in  their  Meeting-houses  J  and, 
in  the  second,  they  pay  no  respect  to  the  outward 
Oftndition  of  one  another.  If  they  consider  them- 
selves, when  out  of  doors,  as  all  equal  to  one  an- 
other in  point  of  privileges,  much  more  do  they 
abolish  all  distinctions,  when  professedly  assem- 
bled in  a  place  of  worship.  They  sit  therefore  in 
their  Meeting-houses  undistinguished  with  respect 
to  their  outward  circumstances,  °  as  the  children 
of  the  same  great  parent,  who  stand  equally  in 
need  of  his  assistance;  and  as  in  the  sight  of  Him 
who  is  no  respecter  of  persons,  but  who  made  of 
one  blood  all  the  nations  of  men  who  dwell  on  all 
the  face  of  the  earth. 

The  Quaker  ministers  are  not  distinguishable, 
when  in  their  places  of  worship,  by  their  dress. 
They  wear  neither  black  clothes,  nor  surplices, 
nor  gowns,  nor  bands.  Jesus  Christ,  when  he 
preached  to  the  multitude,  is  not  recorded  to  have 

o  Spiritual  officers,  such  as  elders  and  overseers,  sit  at  the  upper  part  of 
*he  Meeting-house. 


RELIGION.  369 

I)ut  on  a  dress  dilTercnt  from  that  which  he  wore 
on  other  occasions.  Neither  do  the  Quakers  be- 
lieve that  ministers  of  the  church  ought,  under  the 
new  dispensation,  to  be  a  separate  people,  as  the 
Levites  were,  or  to  be  distinguished  on  account 
of  their  office  from  other  men. 

The  Quakers  differ  from  other  Christians  in  the 
rejection  of  psalmody,  as  a  service  of  the  church. 
If  persons  feel  themselves  so  influenced  in  their 
private  devotions,  ^  that  they  can  sing,  as  the 
Apostle  says,  "  with  the  spirit  and  the  understand- 
ing," or  "  can  sing  i  and  make  melody  in  their 
hearts  to  the  Lord,"  the  Quakers  have  no  objec- 
tion to  this  as  an  act  of  worship.  But  they  con- 
ceive that  music  and  psalmody,  though  they 
might  have  been  adapted  to  the  ceremonial  ijdVi- 
gion  of  the  Jews,  are  not  congenial  with  the  new 
dispensation  that  has  followed  ;  because  this  dis- 
pensation requires,  that  all  worship  should  be 
performed  in  spirit  and  in  truth.  It  requires  that 
no  act  of  religion  should  take  place,  unless  the 
spirit  influences  an  utterance,  and  that  no  words 
should  be  used,  except  ihey  are  in  unison  with 
the  heart.  Now  this  coincidence  of  spiritual  im- 
pulse and  feeling  with  this  act,  is  not  likely  to 
happen,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  with 
public  psalmody.     It  is  not  likely  that  all  in  the 

p  I  Cor.  14.14,  <1  Kpbes.  5.  19, 


1 


270  RETTGION. 

congreofation  will  be  impelled,  in  the  same  mo- 
mentj  to  a  spiritual  soHg,  or  that  all  will  be  in  the 
state  of  mind  or  spirit  which  the  words  of  the 
psalm  describe.  Thus  how  few  will  be  able  to 
sing  truly  with  David,  if  the  following  verse  should 
be  brought  before  them :  "  As  the  hart  panteth 
after  the  water-brooks,  so  panteth  my  soul  after 
thee,  O  God,"  To  this  it  may  be  added,  that 
where  men  think  about  musical  harmony  or  vocal 
tunes  in  their  worship,  the  amusement  of  the  crea- 
ture will  be  so  mixed  with  it,  that  it  cannot  be  a 
pure  oblation  of  the  Spirit,  and  that  those  who 
think  they  can  please  the  Divine  Being  by  musical 
instruments,  or  the  varied  modulations  of  their 
own  voices,  must  look  upon  him  as  a  Being  with 
corporeal  organs,  sensible,  like  a  man,  of  fleshly 
delights,  and  not  as  a  Spirit,  who  can  only  be 
pleased  with  the  worship  that  is  in  spirit  and  in 
truth. 

The  Quakers  reject  also  the  consecration  and 
solemnization  of  particular  ddys  and  times.  As 
the  Jews,  when  the}?^  became  Christians,  were  en- 
joined by  the  Apostle  Paul,  not  to  put  too  great 
a  value  upon  "  days,  "  and  months,  and  times,  and 
years;"  so  the  Quakers  think  it  their  duty  as  Chris- 
tians to  attend  to   the   same   injunction.     They 

r   Gal.  4.  10. 


RELIGION,  ^i71 

uever  meet  upon  saints  days,  as  such,  tlmt  is,  as 
(lays  demanding  tlie  religious  asseinbhngs  ol"  men, 
more  than  others;  first,  because  they  conceive  this 
would  be  giving  into  popisii  superstition  ;  and  se- 
condly, because  thcse.days  were  originally  the  ap- 
pointment of  men  and  not  of  God,  and  no  human 
appointment,  they  believe,  can  make  one  day 
holier  than  another. 

For  the  latter  reason  also  they  do  not  assemble 
for  worship  on  those  days  which  their  own  go- 
vernment, though  they  are  greatly  attached  to  it, 
appoint  as  fasts.  They  are  intluenced  also  by 
r  another  reason  in  this  latter  case.  They  conceive 
as  religion  is  of  a  spiritual  nature,  and  must  de- 
ll' pend  upon  the  spirit  of  God,  that  true  devotion 
cannot  he  excited  for  given  purposes  or  at  a  giv- 
en time.  They  are  influenced  again  by  the  con- 
sideration, that  the  real  fast  is  of  a  different  nature 
from  that  required.  * "  Is  not  this  the  fast,  says 
Isaiah,  that  I  have  chosen,  to  loose  the  bands  of 
uickedness,  to  undo  the  heavy  burdens,  and  to  let 
the  oppressed  go  free,  and  that  ye  break  every 
yoke  ?  Is  it  not  to  deal  thy  bread  to  the  hungry, 
and  that  thou  bring  the  poor  that  are  cast  out,  to 
thy  house?  When  thou  seest  the  naked,  that  thou 
cover  him,  and  that  thou  hide  not  tluselffrom  thy 
own  flesh?"  This  the  Quakers  believe  to  be  the 

s   [saimli  ^H.  G.  7. 


272  RELIGION. 

true  fast,  and  not  the  work  of  a  particular  day^ 
but  to  be  the  daily  work  of  every  real  Christian. 

Indeed  no  one  day,  in  the  estimation  of  the  Qua- 
kers, can  be  made  by  human  appointment  either 
more  holy  or  more  proper  for  worship  than  another. 
They  do  not  even  believe  that  the  Jewish  Sabbath, 
which  was  by  the  appointment  of  God,  continues 
in  Gospel  times,  or  that  it  has  been  handed  down 
by  divine  authority  as  the  true  Sabbath  for  Chris- 
tians. All  days  with  the  Quakers  are  equally  holy, 
and  all  equally  proper  for  the  worship  of  God. 
In  this  opinion  they  coincide  with  the  ever  memo- 
rable John  Hales.  "  For  prayer,  indeed,  says  this 
venerable  man,  was  the  Sabbath  ordained:  yet 
prayer  itself  is  Sabbathless,  and  admits  of  no  rest, 
no  intermission  at  all.  If  our  hands  be  clean,  we 
must,  as  our  Apostle  commands  us,  lift  them  up 
every  where,  at  all  times,  and  make  every  place 
a  church,  every  day  a  Sabbath-day,  every  hour 
canonical.  As  you  go  to  the  market ;  as  you  stand 
in  the  streets;  as  you  walk  in  the  fields — in  all  these 
places,  you  may  pray  as  well,  and  with  as  good 
acceptance,  as  in  the  church :  for  you  yourselves 
are  temples  of  the  Hoh^  Ghost,  if  the  grace  of 
God  be  in  you,  more  precious  than  any  of  those 
which  are  made  with  hands," 

Though,  however,  the  Quakers  believe  no  one 
day  in  the  sight  of  God  to  be  holier  than  another. 


RELIGION.  ^1S 

and  no  one  capable  of  being  rendered  so  by  hu- 
man authority,  yet  they  tliink  that  Christians  ought 
to  assemble  for  the-public  worship  of  God.  They 
think  they  ought  to  bear  an  ontvvard  and  public 
testimony  for  God  J  and  this  can  only  be  done  by 
becoming  members  of  a  visible  church,  where  they 
may  be  seen  to  acknowledge  him  publicly  in  the 
face  of  men.  They  think  also,  that  the  public 
worship  of  God  increases,  as  it  were,  the  fire  of 
devotion,  and  enlarges  the  sphere  of  spiritual  life 
in  the  souls  of  men.  "  God  causes  the  inward 
life,  says  Barclay,  the  more  to  abound  when  his 
children  assemble  themselves  diligently  together, 
to  wait  upon  him  ;  so  that  as  iron  sharpeneth  iron, 
the  seeing  the  faces  of  one  another,  when  both  are 
inwardly  gathered  unto  the  life,  giveth  occasion 
for  the  life  secretly  to  rise,  and  to  pass  from  vessel 
to  vessel:  and  as  many  candles  lighted  and  put  in 
one  place,  do  greatly  augment  the  light  and  make 
it  more  to  sliine  forth,  so  when  many  are  gathered 
together  into  the  same  life,  there  is  more  of  the 
glory  of  God,  and  his  power  appears  to  the  refresh- 
ment of  each  individual;  for  that  he  partakes  not 
only  of  the  light  and  life  raised  in  himself,  but  in 
all  the  rest.  And  therefore  Christ  hath  particu- 
larly promised  a  blessing  to  such  as  assemble  in 
his  name,  seeing  he  will  be  in  the  midst  of  them." 

VOL.  II.  2   N 


274  RELIGION. 

For  these  and  other  reasons,  the  Quakers  think  it 
proper,  that  men  should  be  drawn  together  to  the 
public  worship  of  God:  but  if  so,  they  must  be 
drawn  together  at  certain  times.  Now  as  ope  day 
has  never  been,  in  the  eyes  of  the  Quakers,  more 
desirable  for  such  an  object  than  another,  their 
ancestors  chose  the  first  day  in  the  week,  because 
the  Apostles  had  chosen  it  for  the  religious  assem- 
bling of  themselves  and  their  followers.  And  in 
addition  to  this,  that  more  frequent  opportunities 
might  be  afforded  them  of  bearing  their  outward 
testimony  publicly  for  God,  and  of  enlarging  the 
sphere  of  their  spiritual  life,  they  appointed  a  meet- 
ing on  one  other  day  in  the  week  in  most  places, 
and  two  in  some  others,  for  the  same  purpose. 


RELIGION.  275 


GHAP.  XIII. 


Miscellaneous  particularities — Quakers  careful  about 
the  use  of  such  words  as  relate  to  religion — Never 
use  the  zcords  "  original  sin'' — nor  **  word  of 
God,"  for  the  scriptures — Nor  the  word  "  Trinity'* 
—  Never  pry  into  the  latter  mystery — Believe  in  tJie 
fnanhood  and  divinity  of  Jesus  Christ — Also  in  a 
resurrectiouy  but  never  attempt  to  fathom  that  sub' 
ject — Make  little  difference  between  sanctifcation 
a?id justification^-  Their  ideas  concerning  the  latter. 


1  HE  Quakers  are  remarkably  careful,  both  in 
their  conversation  and  their  writings,  on  religious 
subjects,  as  to  the  terms  which  they  use.  They 
express  scriptural  images  or  ideas,  as  much  as  may 
be,  by  scriptural  terms.  By  means  of  this  parti- 
cular caution,  they  avoid  much  of  tlie  perplexity 
and  many  of  the  difficulties  which  arise  to  others, 
and  escape  the  theological  disputes  which  disturb 
the  rest  of  the  Christian  world. 

The  Quakers  scarcely  ever  utter  the  words 
-*  original  sin,"  because  they  never  find  them  in 
use  in  the  sacred  writings. 

The   scriptures    are  usually  denominated    by 


276  RELIGION. 

Christians  "  the  word  of  God."  Though  the  Qua-- 
kers  believe  them  to  have  been  given  by  divine 
inspiration,  yet  they  reject  this  term.  They  ap- 
prehend that  Christ  is  the  word  of  God,  They 
Cannot  therefore  consistently  give  to  the  scriptures, 
however  they  reverence  them,  that  name  which 
St.  John  the  Evangelist  gives  exclusively  to  the 
Son  of  God. 

Neither  do  they  often  make  use  of  the  word 
"  Trinity."  This  expression  they  can  no  where 
lind  in  the  sacred  writings.  This  to  them  is  a 
sufficient  warrant  for  rejecting  it.  They  consider 
it  as  a  term  of  mere  human  invention,  and  of  too 
late  a  date  to  claim  a  place  among  the  expressions 
of  primitive  Christianity.  For  they  find  it  neither 
in  Justin  Martyr,  nor  in  Irenasus,  nor  in  Ter- 
tuUian,  nor  in  Origen,  nor  in  the  Fathers  of  the 
three  first  centuries  of  the  church. 

And  as  they  seldom  use  the  term,  so  they  sel- 
dom or  never  try,  when  it  offers  itself  to  them, 
either  in  conversation  or  in  books,  to  fathom  its 
meaning.  They  judge  that  a  curious  inquiry  in- 
to such  high  and  speculative  things,  though  ever 
so  great  truths  in  themselves,  tends  little  to  God- 
liness, and  less  to  peace ;  and  that  their  principal 
concern  is  with  that  only  which  is  clearly  reveal- 
ed, and  which  leads  practically  to  holiness  of  life. 


RELIGION,  277 

Consistently  vvith  this  judgment,  we  find  but 
little  said  respecting  the  Trinity  by  the  Quaker 
writers. 

It  is  remarkable  that  Barclay,  in  the  course  of 
his  apology,  takes  no  notice  of  this  subject. 

M  illiam  Penn  seems  to  have  satisfied  himself 
with  refuting  what  he  considered  to  be  a  gross  no- 
tion, namely,  tliat  of  three  persons  in  the  Trinity. 
For  after  having  shown  what  the  Trinity  was  not, 
he  no  where  attempts  to  explain  what  he  conceiv- 
ed it  to  be.  He  says  only,  that  he  acknowledges 
a  Father,  a  Word,  and  a  Holy  Spirit,  according 
to  the  scriptures,  but  not  according  to  the  notions 
of  men  ;  and  that  these  Three  are  truly  and  pro- 
perly One,  of  one  nature  as  well  as  will. 

Isaac  Pennington,  an  ancient  Quaker,  speaks' 
thus:  "  That  the  three  are  distinct,  as  three  seve- 
ral beings  or  persons,  the  Quakers  no  where  read 
in  the  scriptures;  but  they  read  in  them  that  they 
are  one.  And  thus  they  believe  their  being  to  be 
one,  their  life  one,  their  light  one,  their  wisdom 
one,  their  power  one.  And  he  that  knoweth  and 
seeth  any  one  of  them,  knoweth  and  seeth  them 
all,  according  to  that  saying  of  Christ  to  Philip, 
-'  He  that  hath  seen  me,  hath  seen  the  Father." 

Joini  Crook,  another  ancient  writer  of  this  so 
ciety,  in  speaking  of  the  Trinity,  says,  tb^t  the 


278  KELIGION. 

Quakers  "  acknowledge  one  God,  the  Father  of 
Jesus  Christ,  witnessed  within  man  only  by  the 
spirit  of  truth;  and  these  three  are  one,  and  agree 
in  one ;  and  he  that  honours  the  Father,  honours 
the  Son  that  proceeds  from  him;  and  he  that  de- 
nies the  Spirit,  denies  both  the  Father  and  the 
Son."  But  nothing  farther  can  be  obtained  from 
this  author  on  this  subject. 

Henry  Tuke,  a  modern  writer  among  the  Qua- 
kers, and  vvdio  published  an  account  of  the  princi- 
ples of  the  society  only  last  year,  says  also  little 
upon  the  point  before  us.  "  This  belief,  says  he, 
in  the  Divinity  of  the  Father,  the  Son,  and  the 
Holy  Spirit,  induced  some  of  the  teachers  in  the 
Christian  church,  about  three  hundred  years  after 
Christ,  to  form  a  doctrine,  to  which  they  gave  the 
name  of  Trinity;  but,  in  our  writings  we  seldom 
make  use  of  this  term,  thinking  it  best,  on  such 
a  subject,  to  keep  to  scriptural  expressions,  and 
to  avoid  those  disputes  which  have  since  perplex- 
ed the  Christian  world,  and  led  into  speculations 
beyond  the  power  of  human  abilities  to  decide.  l[ 
we  consider  that  we  ourselves  are  composed  of  a 
union  of  body,  soul,  and  spirit,  and  yet  cannot  de- 
term.ine  how  even  these  are  united;  how  much 
less  may  we  expect  perfect  clearness  on  a  subject, 
so  far  above  our  finite  comprehension,  as  that  of 
the  Divine  Nature  r" 


RELIGION.  1279 

The  Quakers  believe,  that  Jesus  Christ  was 
man,  because  he  took  flesh,  and  inhabited  the  bo- 
dy prepared  for  him,  and  was  subject  to  human 
infirmities;  but  they  believe  also  in  his  Divinity, 
because  he  was  the  word. 

They  believe  also  in  the  doctrine  of  the  resur- 
rection of  the  dead,  as  connected  with  the  Chris- 
tian religion.  "  In  explaining  our  belief  of  this 
doctrine,  says  Henry  Tuke,  we  refer  to  the  fif- 
teenth chapter  of  the  first  epistle  to  the  Corinthi- 
ans. In  this  chapter  is  clearly  laid  down  the  re- 
surrection of  a  Vjody,  though  not  of  the  same  bo^ 
dy  that  dies.  *'  There  are  celestial  bodies,  and 
there  are  bodies  terrestrial;  but  the  glory  of  the 
celestial  is  one,  and  Ihc  glory  of  the  terrestrial  is 
another.  So  also  is  the  resurrection  of  the  dead : 
It  is  sown  a  natural  body,  it  is  raised  a  spiritual 
body :  there  is  a  natural  body,  and  there  is  a  spi- 
ritual body.  Now  this  I  say,  brethren,  that  flesh 
and  blood  cannot  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God ; 
neither  doth  corruption  inherit  incorruption." 
Here  we  rest  our  belief  in  this  mystery,  without 
desiring  to  pry  into  it  beyond  what  is  revealed  to 
us;  remembering  "  that  secret  things  belong  unto 
the  Lord  our  God  ;  but  those  things  which  are 
revealed,  belong  unto  us  and  to  our  children." 

The  Quakers  make  but  little  difference,  and  not 


^80  RELIGION. 

such  as  many  other  Christians  do,  between  sane- 
tification  and  justification.  "  Faith  and  works, 
says  Richard  Claridge,  are  both  concerned  in  our 
complete  justification." — "  Whosoever  is  justified, 
he  is  also  in  measure  sanctified  j  and  as  far  as  he  is 
sanctified,  so  far  is  he  justified,  and  no  farther." 
But  the  justification  I  now  speak  of,  is  the  making 
of  us  just  or  righteous  by  the  continual  help, 
work,  and  operation  of  the  Holy  Spirit." — "  And 
as  we  wait  for  the  continual  help  and  assistance 
of  his  Holy  Spirit,  and  come  to  witness  the  effec- 
tual working  of  the  same  in  ourseh'^es,  so  we  shall 
experimentally  find,  that  our  justification  is  pro- 
portionable to  our  sanctification  ;  for  as  our  sanc- 
tification  goes  forward,  which  is  always  commen- 
surate to  our  faithful  obedience  to  the  manifesta- 
tion, influence,  and  assistance,  of  the  grace,  light, 
and  spirit  of  Christ,  so  shall  we  also  feel  and  per- 
ceive the  progress  of  our  justification." 

The  ideas  of  the  Quakers,  as  to  justification  it- 
self, cannot  be  better  explained  than  in  the  words 
of  Henry  Tuke  before  quoted :  "  So  far  as  re- 
missions of  sins,  and  a  capacity  to  receive  salva- 
tion, are  parts  of  justification,  ^^e  attribute  it  to 
the  sacrifice  of  Christ ;  "  In  whom  we  have  re- 
demption through  his  blood,  the  forgiveness  of 
%ins,  according  to  the  riches  of  his  grace."     But 


RELIGION.  281 

when  we  consider  justification  as  a  state  of  divine 
favour  and  acceptance,  we  ascribe  it,  not  sim])ly 
either  to  iaith  or  works,  but  to  the  sanctifying 
operation  of  tlie  spirit  of  Christ,  from  which  living 
faith  and  acceptable  works  alone  proceed  ;  and  by 
which  \\c  may  come  to  know,  that  "  the  spirit  it- 
self beareth  witness  with  our  spirits,  that  we  are 
the  children  of  God." 

"  In  attributyig  our  justification,  through  the 
grace  of  God  in  Christ  Jesus,  to  the  operation  of 
the  Holy  Spirit,  which  sanctifies  the  heart  and 
produces  the  work  of  regeneration,  Ave  are  sup- 
ported by  the  testimony  of  the  Apostle  Paul,  who 
says,  "  Not  by  works  of  righteousness  which  we 
jjave  done,  but  of  his  mercy  he  saved  us,  by  the 
washing  of  regeneration,  and  renewing  of  tlie  Ho- 
ly Ghost."  Again — "  But  ye  are  washed,  but  ye 
are  sanctified,  but  ye  are  Justitied,  in  the  name  of 
the  Lord  Jesus,  and  by  the  spirit  of  our  God." 

"  By  this  view  of  the  doctrine  of  Justification, 
we  conceive  the  a^Dparently  difl'erent  sentiments 
of  the  Apostles  Paul  and  James  are  reconciled, 
^^either  of  them  say  that  faith  alone,  or  works 
alone,  are  the  cause  of  our  being  justified  ;  but  as 
one  of  them  asserts  the  necessity  of  faith,  and  the 
other  of  works,  for  effecting  this  great  object,  a 

VOL.  II.  2   O 


^J8^  KELIGION. 

clear  and  convincing  proof  is  afforded,  that  both 
contribute  to  our  justification;  and  that  faith 
without  works,  and  works  without  faith,  are  equal- 
ly dead." 


RELIGION.  283 


CHAP.  XIV. 


Quakers  reject  Baptism  and  the  Lord's  Supper — 
Much  censured  for  it — Indulgence  solicited  for 
them  on  account  of  the  difficulties  connected  xoith 
these  subjects — Christian  Religion  spiritual — Jezv- 
ish  types  to  be  abolished — Different  meanings  of 
the  zoord  "  Baptize  " — Disputes  concerning  the 
mode  of  Baptism — Concerning  also  the  nature  and 
constitution  of  the  Supper — Concerning  also  the 
time  and  manner  of  its  celebration — This  indul- 
gence also  proper,  because  the  Quakers  give  it  to 
others ,  zcho  differ  from  them  as  a  bodj/  oji  the  sub- 
ject of  Religion . 


1  HE  Quakers,  among  other  particularities,  reject 
the  application  of  water-baptism,  and  tlie  adminis- 
tration of  the  Sacrament  of  the  Supper,  as  Chris- 
tian rites. 

These    ordinances  have   been    considered  by 
many  as  so  essentially  interwoven  with   Chris- 
tianity, that  the  Q.iakers,  by  rejecting  the  use  of 
•Ihem,  have  been  denied  to  be  Christians. 

But  whatever  may  be  the  difference  of  opinion 
between  the  world  and  the  Quakers,  upon  these 
subjects,  great  indulgence  is  due  to  tlie  latter  on 


'284  RELIGION. 

this  occasion.  People  have  received  the  ordinan* 
ces  in  question  from  their  ancestors.  They  have 
been  brought  up  to  the  use  of  them.  TJiey  have 
seen  them  sanctioned  by  the  world.  Finding 
their  authority  disputed  by  a  body  of  men,  who 
are  insignificant  as  to  numbers,  when  compared 
with  others,  they  have  let  loose  their  censure  upon 
them,  and  this  without  any  inquiry  concerning 
the  grounds  of  their  dissent.  They  know  perhaps 
nothing  of  the  obstinate  contentions ;  nothing 
of  the  difficulties  which  have  occurred;  and  no- 
thing of  those  which  may  still  be  started  on 
these  subjects.  I  shall  state  therefore  a  few  con- 
siderations by  way  of  preface,  during  which 
the  reader  will  see,  that  objections  both  fair  and 
forcible  may  be  raised  by  the  best  disposed  Chris- 
tians, on  the  other  side  of  the  question;  that  the 
path  is  not  so  plain  and  easy  as  he  may  have 
imagined  it  to  be ;  and  that  if  the  Quakers  have 
taken  a  road  different  from  himself  on  this  occa- 
sion, the}^  are  entitled  to  a  fair  hearing  of  all  they 
have  to  say  in  their  defence,  and  to  expect  the 
same  candour  and  indulgence  which  he  himself 
would  have  claimed,  if,  with  the  best  intentions, 
he  had  not  been  able  to  come  to  the  same  conclu*^ 
^ion,  on  any  given  point  of  importance,  as  had 
been  adopted  by  others. 

Let  me  then  ask,  in  the  fn*st  place,  what  is  the 
great  characteristic  of  the  religion  we  profess  ? 


RELIGIOIf.  QS5 

If  we  look  to  divines  for  an  answer  to  this 
question,  wo  may  easily  obtain  it.  We  shall  tind 
some  of  them  in  their  sermons  speaking  of  eir- 
cumcision,  baptismal  \yashings  and  purifications, 
new  moons,  feasts  of  the  passover  and  unleavened 
bread,  sacrifices,  and  other  rites.  We  shall  find 
them  dwelling  on  these  as  constituent  parts  of 
the  religion  of  the  Jews,  We  shall  fmd  them  im- 
mediately passing  from  thence  to  the  religion  of 
Jesus  Christ.  Here  all  is  considered  by  them  to 
be  spiritual.  Devotion  of  the  heart  is  insisted 
upon  as  that  alone  which  is  acceptable  to  God, 
If  God  is  to  be  worshipped,  it  is  laid  down  as  a 
position,  that  he  is  to  be  worshipped  in  spirit  and 
in  truth.  We  shall  find  them  also,  in  other  of 
their  sermons,  but  particularly  in  those  preached 
after  the  reformation,  stating  the  advantages  ob- 
tained by  that  event.  The  Roman  Catholic  sys- 
tem is  here  considered  by  them  to  be  as  ceremo- 
nial as  that  of  the  Jews,  The  Protestant  is  held 
out  as  of  a  more  spiritual  nature,  and  as  more  con- 
genial therefore  with  the  spirit  of  the  gospel.  But 
what  is  this  but  a  confession,  in  each  case,  that  in 
proportion  as  men  give  up  ceremonies  and  become 
spu'itual  in  tlieir  worship,  their  religion  is  the  best, 
or  tliat  spirituality  is  the  grand  characteristic  of 
the  religion  of  Jesus  Christ?  Now  there  imme- 
diately arises   a  presumption,    if  spirituality   of 


286  RELIGION. 

feeling  had  been  intended  as  the  characteristic 
of  any  religion,  that  no  ceremonious  ordinances 
would  have  been  introduced  into  it. 

If,  again,  I  were  to  make  an  assertion  to  di- 
vines, that  Jesus  Christ  came  to  put  an  end  to  the 
ceremonial  parts  of  the  Jewish  law,  and  to  the 
types  and  shadows  belonging  to  the  Jewish  dis- 
pensation, they  would  not  deny  it.  But  baptism 
and  the  supper  were  both  of  them  outward  Jew- 
ish ceremonies,  connected  with  the  Jewish  reli- 
gion. They  were  both  of  them  types  and  sha- 
dows, of  which  the  antet3'pes  and  substances  had 
been  realized  at  the  death  of  Christ.  And  there- 
fore a  presumption  arises  again>  that  these  were 
not  intended  to  be  continued. 

And  that  they  were  not  intended  to  be  continu- 
ed, may  be  presumed  from  another  consideration. 
For  what  was  baptism  to  any  but  a  Jew  ?  What 
could  a  Gentile  have  understood  by  it  ?  What  no- 
tion could  he  have  formed,  by  means  of  it,  of  the 
necessity  of  the  baptism  of  Christ  ^  Unacquainted 
with  purifications  by  water  as  symbols  of  purifica- 
tion of  heart,  he  could  never  have  entered,  like  a 
.Jew,  into  the  spiritual  life  of  such  an  ordinance. 
And  similar  observations  may  be  made  with  re- 
spect to  the  Passover-Supper.  A  Gentile  could 
have  known  nothing,  like  a  Jew,  of  the  meaning  of 
this  <}eremony.     He  could  never  have  seen  in  the 


RELIGION.  287 

Paschal  Lamb  any  type  of  Christ,  or  in  the  de- 
liverance of  the  Israelites  from  Egyptian  bondage, 
any  type  of  his  own  deliverance  from  sin,  so 
clearly  or  so  feelingly  as  if  the  facts  and  customs 
had  related  to  his  own  history,  or  as  if  he  had  been 
trained  to  the  connexion  by  a  long  series  of  pro- 
phecies. In  short,  the  passover  conld  have  had 
but  little  meaning  to  him. 

From  these  circumstances, therefore,there  would 
be  reason  to  conclude,  that  these  ceremonies  were 
not  to  be  continued,  at  least  to  any  but  Jews;  be- 
cause they  were  not  fitted  to  the  knowledge,  the 
genius,  or  the  condition  of  the  Gentile  world. 

But,  independently  of  these  difficulties,  which 
arise  from  a  general  view  of  these  ordinances 
as  annexed  to  a  religion  which  is  confessed  to 
be  spiritual,  others  arise  from  a  particular  view 
of  each.  On  the  subject  of  baptism,  tliere  is 
ground  for  argument,  as  to  the  meaning  of  the 
word  "  baptize."  This  word,  in  consequence  of 
its  representation  of  a  watery  ceremony,  is  usually 
connected  with  water  in  our  minds.  But  it  may 
also,  very  consistently,  be  connected  even  with 
fire.  Its  general  meaning  is  to  purify.  In  this 
sense  many  understand  it.  And  those  who  do, 
and  who  apply  it  to  the  great  command  of  Jesus 
to  his  disciples,  think  they  give  a  better  interpre- 


28«  RELIGION. 

tation  of  it,  than  those  who  connect  it  with  water. 
For  they  think  it  more  reasonable  that  the  Apos- 
tles shotiM  have  been  enjoined  to  go  into  all  na- 
tions, and  to  endeavour  to  purify  the  hearts  of  in- 
dividuals by  the  spirit  and  power  of  their  preach- 
ing, from  the  dross  of  Heathen  notions,  and  to  lead 
them  to  spirituality  of  mind  by  the  inculcation  of 
Gospel  principles,  than  to  dip  them  under  water, 
as  an  essential  part  of  their  new  religion. 

But  on  a  supposition  that  the  word  baptize 
should  signify  to  immerse,  and  not  to  purify,  an- 
other diiiiculty  occurs  ;  for,  if  it  was  thought  pro- 
per or  necessary  that  persons  should  be  initiated 
into  Christianity  by  water-baptism,  in  order  to 
distinguish  their  new  .state  from  that  of  the  Jews 
or  Heathens,  who  then  surrounded  them,  it  seems 
unnecessary  for  the  children  of  Christian  parents, 
who  were  born  in  a  Christian  community,  and 
whose  ancestors  for  centuries  have  professed  the 
Christian  name. 

Nor  is  it  to  be  considered  as  any  other  than  a 
difficulty  that  the  Christian  world  have  known  so 
little  about  water-baptism,  that  they  have  been  di- 
vided as  to  the  right  manner  of  performing  it. 
The  eastern  and  western  churches  differed  early 
upon  this  point,  and  Christians  continue  to  diffei* 
upon  it  to  the  present  day-  some  thinking  that 


<: 


t 


♦  RELIGION.  *289 

none  but  adults;  others,  that  none  but  infants 
should  be  baptized :  some,  that  the  faces  only  of 
the  baptized  should  be  sprinkled  with  water; 
others,  that  their  bodies  should  be  immersed.        ^ 

On  tiie  snl>jert  ofthe  sacrament  of  supper,  simi- 
lar difliculties  have  occurred. 

Jesus  Christ  unquestionably  permitted  his  dis- 
ciples to  meet  together  in  remembrance  of  their 
last  supper  with  him.  But  it  is  not  clear,  that 
this  was  any  other  than  a  permission  to  those  who 
were  present,  and  who  had  known  and  loved  him. 
The  disciples  were  not  ordered  to  go  into  all' na- 
tions, and  to  enjoin  it  to  their  converts  to  observe 
the  same  ceremony.  Neither  did  the  Apostles 
leave  any  command  by  which  it  was  enjoined  as 
an  ordinance  ofthe  Christian  church. 

Another  difliculty  which  has  arisen  on  the  sub- 
ject ofthe  supper,  is,  that  Christians  seem  so  little 
to  have  understood  the  nature  of  it,  or  in  what  it 
consisted,  that  they  have  had,  in  diflercnt  ages, 
different  views,  and  encouraged  different  doctrines 
concerning  it.  One  has  placed  it  in  one  thing, 
and  another  in  another.  Most  of  them,  again, 
have  attempted  in  their  explanation  of  it,  to  blend 
the  enjoyment  of  the  spiritual  essence  with  that 
ofthe  corporeal  substance  ofthe  body  and  blood 
of  Christ,  and  thus  to  unite  a  spiritual  with  a  cere- 

VOL.   TT.  2   P 


290  RELIGIOX. 

monial  exercise  of  religion.  Grasping,  therefore^ 
at  things  apparently  irreconcilable,  they  have 
conceived  the  strangest  notions;  and,  by  giving 
these  to  the  world,  they  have  only'  afforded  fuel 
for  contention  among  themselves  and  others. 

In  the  time  of  the  Apostles,  it  was  the  custom  of 
converted  persons,  grounded  on  the  circumstances 
that  passed  at  the  supper  of  the  passover,  to  meet 
in  religious  communion.  They  used,  on  these 
occasions,  to  break  their  bread,  and  take  their  re- 
freshment and  converse  together.  The  object  of 
these  meetings  was  to  imitate  the  last  friendly 
supper  of  Jesus  with  his  disciples,  to  bear  a  public 
memorial  of  his  sufferings  and  his  death,  and  to 
promote  their  love  for  one  another.  But  thi.s 
custom  was  nothing  more,  as  far  as  evidence  can 
be  had,  than  that  of  a  brotherly  breaking  of  bread 
too-ether.  It  was  no  sacramental  eating.  Neither 
was  the  body  of  Jesus  supposed  to  be  enjoyed, 
nor  the  spiritual  enjoyment  of  it  to  consist  in  the 
partaking  of  this  outward  feast. 

In  process  of  time,  after  the  days  of  the  Apos- 
tles, when  this  simple  custom  iiad  declined,  we 
find  another  meeting  of  Christians,  in  imitation  of 
that  at  the  passover  supper,  at  which  both  bread 
and  wine  were  introduced.  This  different  com- 
memoration of  the  same  event  had  a  new  name 


relic;  ION.  291 

Q:i\cn  to  it;  for  it  was  distinguished  from  the  other 
bv  the  name  of  Eucharist. 

Alexander,  the  sevcntli  bishop  of  Rome,  who 
introduced  holy  water  both  into  houses  and 
chureltes  for  spiritual  purposes,  made  some  al- 
terations in  the  ingredients  of  the  Eucharist,  by 
mixing  water  with  the  wine,  and  by  substituting 
unleavened  for  common  bread. 

In  the  time  of  Irenceus  and  Justin  the  Martyr, 
we  find  an  account  of  the  Eucharist  as  it  was  then 
thought  of  and  celebrated.  Great  stress  was  then 
laid  upon  the  bread  and  wine  as  a  holy  arul  sacra- 
mental repast":  prayers  were  made  tliat  the  Holy 
Ghost  would  descend  into  each  of  these  substances. 
It  was  believed  that  it  did  so  descend  ^  and  that  as 
soon  as  the  bread  and  wine  perceived  it,  the  for- 
mer operated  virtually  as  the  bodj'^,  and  the  better 
as  the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ.  From  this  time  the 
bread  was  considered  to  have  great  virtues;  and 
on  this  latter  account,  not  only  children,  but  suck- 
ing infants,  were  admitted  to  this  sacrament.  It 
was  also  given  to  persons  on  the  approach  of  death. 
And  many  afterwards,  who  had  great  voyages  to 
make  at  sea,  carried  it  with  them  to  preserve  them. 
both  from  temporal  and  spiritual  dangers. 

In  the  twelfth  century,  another  notion,  a  little 
modified  from  the  former,  prevailed  on  this  subject^ 


2921  RELIGION'. 

which  was,  that  consecration  by  a  Priest  had  the 
power  of  abolishing  the  substance  of  the  bread, 
and  of  substituting  the  very  body  of  Jesus  Christ. 

This  was  called  the  doctrine  of  Transubstan- 
tiation. 

This  doctrine  appeared  to  Luther,  at  the  dawn 
of  the  reformation,  to  be  absurd ;  and  he  was  of 
opinion  that  the  sacrament  consisted  of  the  sub- 
stance of  Christ's  body  and  blood,  together  with 
the  substance  of  the  bread  and  wine;  or,  in  other 
words,  that  the  substance  of  the  bread  remained, 
but  the  body  of  Christ  was  inherent  in  it,  so  that 
both  the  substance  of  the  bread  and  of  the  body 
and  blood  of  Christ  was  there  also.  This  was 
called  the  doctrine  of  Consubstantiation,  in  con- 
tradiction to  the  former. 

Calvin  again  considered  the  latter  opinion  erro- 
neous :  he  gave  it  out  that  the  bread  was  not  actual- 
ly the  body  of  Jesus  Christ,  northe  wine  his  blood  j 
but  that  both  his  body  and  blood  were  sacramen- 
tally  received  by  the  faithful,  in  the  use  of  the 
bread  gnd  wine.  Calvin,  however,  confessed  him- 
self unable  to  explain  even  this  his  own  doctrine. 
For  he  says,  "  if  it  be  asked  me  how  it  is,  that  is, 
how  believers  sacramentally  receive  Christ's  body 
and  blood  ?  I  shall  not  be  ashamed  to  confess,  that 
it  is  a  secret  too  high  for  me  to  comprehend  in  my 
spirit,  or  explain  in  words." 


RELIGION.  op3 

But  independently  of  thedifi'iciilties  which  have 
arisen  from  these  dilVerent  notions  concerning  the 
nature  and  constitution  of  the  Lord's  supper,  oth- 
ers have  arisen  concerning  the  time  and  the  man- 
ner of  the  celebration  of  it. 

The  Christian  churches  of  the  east,  in  the  early 
times,  justifying  themselves  by  tradition  and  the 
custom  of  tlic  pasbover,  maintained  that  the  four- 
teenth day  of  the  month  Nissan  ought  to  be  observ- 
ed as  the  day  of  the  celebration  of  this  feast,  be- 
cause the  Jews  were  commanded  to  kill  the  Paschal 
Lamb  on  that  day.  The  western,  on  the  other 
hand,  maintained  the  authority  of  tradition  and 
the  primitive  practice,  that  it  ought  to  be  kept  on 
no  other  day  than  that  of  the  resurrection  of  Jesus 
Christ.  Disputes  again  of  a  did'erent  complexion 
agitated  the  Christian  world  upon  the  same  subject. 
One  church  contended  that  the  leavened,  another 
that  unleavened  bread  only  should  be  used  upon 
this  occasion  :  others  contended,  whether  the  ad- 
ministration of  this  sacrament  should  be  by  the 
hands  of  the  clergy  only :  others,  whether  it 
should  not  be  confmed  to  the  sick  :  others,  whether 
it  should  be  given  to  the  young  and  mature  pro- 
miscuously :  others,  M'hether  it  should  be  received 
by  the  communicant  standing,  sitting,  or  kneel- 
ing, or  as  the  Apostles  received  it :    and  others, 


294  RELIGION. 

whether  it  should  be  administered  in  the  night 
time  as  by  our  Saviour,  or  whether  in  the  day,  or 
whether  only  once,  as  at  the  passover,  or  whether 
oftener  in  the  year. 

Another  difficulty,  but  of  a  different  nature,  has 
occurred  with  respect  to  the  Lord's  supper.  This 
has  arisen  from  the  circumstance,  that  other  cere- 
monies were  enjoined  by  our  Saviour  in  torms 
equally  positive  as  this,  but  which  most  Christians, 
notwithstanding,  have  thought  themselves  at  li- 
berty to  reject.  Among  these  the  washing  of  feet 
is  particularly  to  be  noticed.  This  custom  was  of 
an  emblematic  nature.  It  was  enjoined  at  the 
%ame  time  as  that  of  the  Lord's  supper,  and  on  tlie 
same  occasion.  But  it  was  enjoined  in  a  more 
forcible  and  striking  manner.  The  Sandimanians, 
when  they  rose  into  a  society,  considered  the  in- 
junction for  this  ordinance  to  be  so  obligatory, 
that  they  dared  not  dispense  with  it;  and  there- 
fore, when  they  determined  to  celebrate  the  sup- 
per, they  determined  that  the  washing  of  feet 
should  be  an  ordinance  of  their  church.  Most 
other  Christians,  however,  have  dismissed  the 
washing  of  feet  from  their  religious  observance. 
The  reason  given  has  principally  been,  that  it  was 
an  eastern  custom,  and  therefore  local.  To  this 
the   answer   has   been,  that   the   passover,   from 


RELIGION.  '295 

whence. the  Lord's  supper  is  taken,  was  an  east- 
ern custom  also,  but  that  it  was  much  more  local. 
Travellers  of  ditlerent  nations  had  their  feet  washed 
for  them  in  the  east.  But  none  but  those  of  the  cir- 
cumcision were  admitted  to  the  passover-supper. 
If,  therefore,  the  injunction  relative  to  the  washing 
of  feet,  be  equally  strong  with  that  relative  to 
the  celebration  of  the  supper,  it  has  been  presum- 
ed, that  both  ought  to  have  been  retained ;  and,  if 
one  has  been  dispensed  with  on  account  of  its  lo- 
cality, that  both  ought  to  have  been  discarded. 

That  the  washing  of  feet  was  enjoined  much 
more  emphatically  than  the  supper,  we  may  col- 
lect from  Barclay,  whose  observations  upon  it  I 
shall  transcribe  on  this  occasion. 

"  But  to  give  a  farther  evidence,  says  he,  how 
these  consequences  have  not  any  bottom  from  the 
practice  of  that  ceremony,  nor  from  the  words  fol- 
lowing, "  Do  this  in  remembrance  of  me,"  let  us 
consider  another  of  the  like  nature,  as  it  is  at 
length  expressed  by  John.  '  '*  Jesus  riseth  from 
supper  and  laid  aside  his  garments,  and  took  a 
towel,  and  girded  himself:  after  that,  he  pourcth 
water  into  a  bason,  and  began  to  wash  the  disci- 
ples' feet,    and    to    wipe   them   with    the   towel 

t  John  13.  3.  &c. 


296  RELIGION. 

wherewith  he  was  girded.  Peter  said  unto  hiiij. 
Thou  shalt  never  wash  my  feet.  Jesus  answer- 
ed him,  If  I  wash  thee  not,  thou  hast  no  part  with 
me.  So  after  he  had  washed  their  feet,  he  said. 
Know  ye  what  I  have  done  to  you  ?  If  I  then, 
your  I^ord  and  master,  have  washed  your  feet,  ye 
also  ought  to  wash  one  another's  feet :  for  I  have 
given  you  an  example,  that  ye  should  do  as  I 
have  done  to  you."  As  to  which  let  it  be  ob- 
served, continues  Barclay,  that  John  relates  this 
passage  to  have  been  done  at  the  same  time  with 
the  other  of  breaking  <  bread ;  both  being  done 
the  night  of  the  passover,  after  supper.  If  we 
regard  the  narration  of  this,  and  the  circum- 
stances attending  it,  it  was  done  with  far  more  so- 
lemnity, and  prescribed  far  more  punctually  and 
particularly,  than  the  former.  It  is  said  only,  "  as 
he  was  eating  he  took  bread ;"  so  that  this  would 
seem  to  be  but  an  occasional  business:  but  here 
*'he  rose  up, he  laid  by  his  garments,  he  girded  him- 
self, he  poured  out  the  water,  he  washed  their  feet, 
he  wiped  them  with  a  towel."  He  did  this  to  all 
of  them  ;  which  are  circumstances  surely  far  more 
observable  than  those  noted  in  the  other.  The 
former  was  a  practice  common  among  the  Jews, 
used  by  all  masters  of  families,  npon  that  occa- 
sion ;  but  this,  as  to  the  manner,  and  person  act- 


RELIGION.  897 

ing  it,  to  wit,  for  tlie  master  to  rise  up,  an<l  wash 
the  feet  of  his  servants  and  disciples,  was  more 
singular  and  observable.    In  the  breaking  of  bread 
and  giving  of  wine,  it  is  not  pleaded  by  our  adver- 
saries, nor  yet  mentioned  in  the  text,  that  he  parti- 
cularly put  them  into  the  hands  of  all ;  but  break- 
ing it,  and  blessing  it,  gave  it  the  nearest,  and 
so  they  from  hand  to  hand.     Bat  here  it  is  men- 
tioned, that  he  washed  not  the  feet  of  one  or  two, 
but  of  many.     Pie  saitli  not  in  the  forijier,  that  if 
they  do  not  eat  of  that  bread,  and  drink  of  that 
wine,  that   they  shall  be  prejudiced  by  it ;  but 
here  he  says  expressly  to  Peter,  that  *'  if  he  wash 
him  not,  he  hath  no  part  with  him  ;"  which  being 
spoken  upon  Peter's  refusing  to  let  him  wash  his 
feet,  would  seem  to  import  no  less,  than  not  the 
continuance  only,  but  even  the  necessity  of  this 
ceremony.      In    the   former,  he  saith   as  it  were 
passingly,  "  Do  this  in  remembrance  of  me  :"  but 
here  he  sitteth  down  again  j  he  desires  them  to 
consider  what  he  hath  donej  tells  them  positively 
"  that  as  he  hath  done  to  them,  so  ought  they  to  do 
to  one  another  :"  and  yetagani  he  redoubles  that 
precept,  by  telling  them,  "  that  he  has  given  them 
an  example,  that  they  should  do  so  likewise."     If 
we  respect  the   nature  of  the  thing,  it  hath  as 
much  in  it  as  either  baptism  or  the  breaking  of 

VOL.  IT.  2  Q 


298  RELIGION. 

the  bread;  seeing  it  is  an  outward  element  of  a 
cleansing  nature,  applied  to  the  outward  man,  by 
the  command  and  the  example  of  Christ,  to  signify^ 
an  inward  purifying.  I  would  willingly  propose 
this  seriously  to  men,  that  will  be  pleased  to  make 
use  of  that  reason  and  understanding  that  God 
hath  given  them,  and  not  be  imposed  upon,  nor 
abused  by  the  custom  or  tradition  of  others,  vrhe- 
ther  this  ceremony,  if  we  respect  either  the  time 
that  it  was  appointed  in,  or  the  circumstances 
wherewith  it  was  performed,  or  the  command  en- 
joining the  use  of  it,  hath  not  as  much  to  recom- 
mend it  for  a  standing  ordinance  of  the  Gospel, 
as  either  water-baptism,  or  bread  and  wine,  or 
an}'  other  of  that  kind?  I  wonder  then,  Avhat  rea- 
son the  Papists  can  give,  why  they  have  not  num- 
bered it  among  their  sacraments,  except  merely 
Voluntas  EcclesicC  et  Traditio  Patrum,  that  is,  the 
Tradition  of  the  Fathers,  and  the  Will  of  the 
Church." 

The  reader  will  see  by  this  time,  that,  on  sub- 
jects which  have  given  rise  to  such  controversies 
as  baptism  and  the  Lord's  supper  have  now  been 
described  to  have  done,  people  may  be  readilv  ex- 
cused, if  they  should  entertain  their  own  opinions 
about  them,  though  these  may  be  diflcrent  from 
those  which  are  generally  received  by  the  world 


RF.I.ICION.  209 

The  difliciilties  indeed,  which  have  occurred  with 
respect  to  these  ordinances,  should  make  us  ten- 
der of  casting  reproach  upon  others,  who  sliould 
dilicr  from  ourselves  concerninsrthem.     For  when 

o 

we  consider,  that  there  is  no  one  point  connect- 
ed with  these  ordinances,  about  which  there  has 
not  been  some  dispute;  that  those  who  have  en- 
gaged in  these  disputes,  have  been  men  of  equal 
learning  and  piety  •  that  all  of  them  have  pleaded 
primitive  usage,  in  almost  all  cases,  in  behalf  of 
their  own  opinions ;  and  that  these  disputes  are 
not  even  now,  all  of  them,  settled  ;  who  will  take 
upon  him  to  censure  his  brother  either  for  the 
omission  or  the  observance  of  one  or  the  other 
rite  ?  And  let  the  Quakers,  among  others,  find  in- 
dulgence from  their  countrymen  for  their  opinions 
on  these  subjects.  This  indulgence  they  have  a 
right  to  claim  from  the  consideration,  that  they 
themselves  never  censure  others  of  other  deno- 
minations on  account  of  their  religion.  AV'ith  re- 
spect to  those  who  belong  to  the  society,  as  the  re- 
jection of  these  ceremonies  is  one  of  the  funda- 
mentals of  Quakerism,  it  is  expected  that  they 
should  be  consistent  with  what  they  are  considered 
to  profess.  But  with  respect  to  others,  they  have 
no  unpleasant  feelings  towards  those  who  observe 
them.  If  a  man  believes  that  baptism  is  an  es» 
sential  rite  of  the  Christian  churcii,  the  Quakcrfr 


300  RELIGION. 

would  not  judge  liim  if  he  were  to  go  himself, 
or  il  he  were  to  carry  his  children,  to  receive  it. 
And  if,  at  the  communion  table,  he  shouM  fmd 
his  devotion  to  be  so  spiritualized,  that,  in  the 
taking  of  the  bread  and  wine,  he  really  and  spirit- 
ually discerned  the  body  and  blood  of  Christ,  and 
was  sure  that  his  own  conduct  would  be  inriuenc- 
ed  morally  by  it,  they  would  not  censure  him  for 
becoming  an  attendant  at  the  altar.  In  short, 
the  Quakers  do  not  condemn  others  for  their  at- 
tendances on  these  occasions.  They  only  hope, 
that  as  they  do  not  see  these  ordinances  in  the 
same  light  as  others,  they  may  escape  censure,  if 
they  should  refuse  to  admit  them  among  them- 
selves. 


RELIGION.  30) 

CHAP.  XV. 

SECT.  I. 

Baptism — Tioo  baptisms- — Thaf  of  John  and  of  Christ 
—  That  of  John  ivas  by  water ^  a  Jewish  ordinance, 
and  used  preparatory  to  religions  convei^sion  and 
worship — Hence  John  used  it  as  preparatory  to 
conversion  to  Christianity — Jesus  sulnnitted  to  it 
to  fulfil  all  righteousness — Others  as  to  a  baptism 
to  repentance — But  it  was  not  initiative  into  the 
Christian  church,  but  belonged  to  the  Old  Testa- 
ment— Xor  icas  John  under  the  Gospely  but  under 
the  law. 


1  COME  now  to  the  arguments  which  the  Quakers 
have  to  offer  for  the  rejection  ofthe  use  of  baptism 
and  ofthe  sacrament  of  the  supper  j  and  first  for 
that  ofthe  use  ofthe  former  rite. 

Two  baptisms  are  recorded  in  scripture — the 
baptism  of  .Tolin,  and  the  ])aptism  of  Christ. 

The  baptism  of  John  was  by  water,  and  a  Jew- 
ish ordinance.  The  washing  of  garments  and  of 
the  bod}'-,  which  were  called  baptisms  by  the  Ellea- 
istic  Jews,  were  enjoined  to  the  Jewish  nation,  as 
modes  of  purification  from  legal  pollutions,  sym- 
bolical of  that  inward  cleansing  ofthe  heart,  which 


302  RELIGION. 

was  necessary  to  persons  before  thev  could  hold 
sacred  oflices,  or  pay  their  religious  homage  in 
the  temple,  or  become  the  true  worshippers  of 
God.  The  Jews,  therefore,  in  after  times,  when 
they  made  proselytes  from  the  Heathen  nations, 
enjoined  these  the  same  customs  as  they  observed 
themselves.  They  generally  circumcised,  at  least 
the  proselytes  of  the  covenant,  as  a  mark  of  their 
incorporation  into  the  Jev/ish  church,  and  they 
afterwards  washed  them  with  water  or  baptized 
them,  which  was  to  be  a  sign  to  them  of  their  hav- 
ing been  cleansed  from  the  filth  of  idolatry,  and 
an  emblem  of  their  fitness,  in  case  of  a  real  cleans- 
ing, to  receive  the  purer  precepts  of  the  Jewish  re- 
ligion, and  to  walk  in  newness  of  life. 

Baptism  therefore  was  a  Jewish  ordinance,  used 
on  religious  occasions:  and  therefore  John,  when 
he  endeavoured  by  means  of  his  preaching  to  pre- 
pare the  Jews  for  the  coming  of  the  Messiah,  and 
their  minds  for  the  reception  of  the  nevv  religion, 
used  it  as  a  symbol  of  the  purification  of  heart,  that 
was  necessary  for  the  dispensation  which  was  then 
at  hand.  He  knew  that  his  hearers  would  under- 
stand the  meaning  of  the  ceremony.  He  had  rea- 
son also  to  believe,  that  on  account  of  tiie  nature 
of  his  mission,  they  would  expect  it.  Hence  the 
Sanhedrim,  to  whom  the  cognizance  of  the  legal 
clcansinG:s  belons-ed,  when  tliey  were  informed  of 


RELIGION.  303 

llic  baptiiim  of  John,  never  expressed  any  surprise 
at  it,  as  a  new,  or  unusiial,  or  improper  custom. 
Tliey  only  found  fault  wiUi  him  for  the  admi- 
nistration of  it,  when  he  denied  himself  to  be  cither 
Elias  or  Christ. 

It  was  partly  upon  one  of  the  principles  that 
have  been  mentioned,  that  Jesus  received  the  bap- 
tism of  John.  Me  received  it  as  it  is  recorded,  be- 
cause "  thus  it  became  him  to  fulfil  all  righteous- 
ness." By  the  fulfilling  of  righteousness  is  meant 
the  fulfilling  of  the  ordinances  of  the  law,  or  the 
customs  required  by  the  Mosaic  dispensation  in 
particular  cases.  He  had  already  undergone  cir- 
cumcision as  a  Jewish  ordinance,  and  he  now  sub- 
mitted to  baptism.  For  as  Aaron  and  his  Sons 
were  baptized  previously  to  the  taking  upon  them 
of  the  office  of  the  Jewish  priesthood,  so  Jesus  was 
baptized  by  John  previously  to  his  entering  upon 
his  own  ministry,  or  becoming  the  high  priest  of 
the  Christian  dispensation. 

But  though  Jesus  Christ  received  the  baptism 
of  John,  that  he  might  fulfil  all  righteousness, 
others  received  it  as  the  baptism  of  repentance 
from  sins,  that  they  might  be  able  to  enter  thr 
ki  ngdom  that  was  at  hand.  This  baptism,  however, 
was  not  initiative  into  the  Christian  church.  For 
the  Apostles  rebaptized  some  who  had  been  bap- 
tized by  John.     Those,  again,  who  received  the 


304  RELIGION. 

baptism  of  John,  did  not  profess  faith  in  Christ. 
John  again,  as  well  as  his  doctrines,  belonged  to 
the  Old  Testament.  He  was  no  minister  under  the 
new  dispensation,  but  the  last  prophet  under  the 
law.  Hence  Jesus  said,  that  though  none  of  the 
prophets  "  were  greater  than  John  the  baptist,  yet 
he  that  is  least  in  the  kingdom  of  Heaven  is  greater 
than  lie."  Neither  did  he  ever  hear  the  Gospel 
preached;  for  Jesus  did  not  begin  his  ministry 
till  John  had  been  put  into  prison,  where  he  was 
beheaded  by  the  orders  of  Herod,  John,  in  sliort, 
was  with  respect  to  Jesus,  what  Moses  was  with 
respect  to  Joshua.  Moses,  though  he  conducted 
to  the  promised  land,  and  was  permitted  to  see  it 
from  Mount  Nebo,  yet  never  entered  it,  but  gave 
place  to  Joshua,  whose  name,  like  that  of  Jesus, 
signifies  a  Saviour.  In  the  same  manner  John  con- 
ducted to  Jesus  Christ.  He  saw  him  once  with 
his  own  eyes,  but  he  was  never  permitted,  whde 
alive,  to  enter  into  his  spiritual  kingdom. 


RELIGION.  305 

SECT.    II. 

Second  baptism,  or  that  of  Christ — This  the  baptism 
of  t hi'  gospel — This  distinct  fro f?i  t lie  former  in 
point  of  time  ;  and  in  nature  and  essence — As  that 
of  John  zcas  ouiiiard,so  this  zvas  to  be  inward  and 
spiritual — It  zvas  to  cleanse  the  heart- — and  zcas 
to  be  capable  of  making  even  the  Centiles  the 
seed  of  Abraham — -This  distinction  of  watery  and 
spiritual  baptism  pointed  out  bij  Jesus  Christ — by 
St.  Peter—and  by  St.  Paul 


A.  HE  second  baptism,  recorded  in  the  scriptures, 
is  that  of  Christ.  This  may  be  called  the  baptism 
of  the  Gospel,  in  contradistinction  to  the  former, 
Avhich  was  that  of  the  law. 

This  baptism  is  totally  distinct  from  the  former. 
John  himself  said,  "  "  I  indeed  baptize  you  with 
water  unto  repentance;  but  he  that  conieth  after 
me,  is  mightier  than  I,  whose  shoes  I  am  not  wor- 
thy to  bear.  He  shall  baptize^yOu  with  the  Holy 
Ghost,  and  with  fire." 

From  these  words  it  appears,  that  this  baptism 
is  distinct,  in  point  of  time,  from  the  former;  for  it 

M  JMattli.  3.  11. 

VOL.  II.  2  R 


;^06  RELIGIOT^. 

was  to  follow  the  baptism  of  .lohn:  and  secondly, 
in  nature  and  essence;  for  whereas  that  of  John 
was  by  water,  this  was  to  be  by  the  spirit. 

This  latter  distinction  is  insisted  upon  by  John 
jn  other  places.  For  when  he  was  questioned  by 
the  Pharisees  ""  "  why  he  baptized,  if  he  was  not 
that  Christ,  nor  Elias,  nor  that  prophet,"  he  thought 
it  a  sufficient  excuse  to  say,  "  I  baptize  with  wa- 
ter;" that  is,  I  baptize  with  water  only;  I  use  only 
an  ancient  Jewish  custom;  I  do  not  intrude  upon 
the  office  of  Christ,  who  is  coming,  after  me,  or 
pretend  to  his  baptism  of  the  spirit.  We  lind  also, 
that  no  less  than  three  times  in  eight  verses,  when 
he  speaks  of  his  own.  baptism,  he  takes  care  to  add 
to  it  the  word  '''  "  water,"  to  distinguish  it  from  the 
baptism  of  Christ. 

As  the  baptism  of  John  cleansed  the  body  from 
the  filth  of  the  flesh,  so  that  ofChrist  was  really  to 
cleanse  the  soul  from  the  filth  of  sin.  Thus  John, 
speaking  of  Jesus  Christ,  in  allusion  to  this  bap- 
tism, says,  ""  "  whose  fan  is  in  his  hand,  and  he  will 
thoroughly  purge  his  floor,  and  gather  his  wheat 
into  his  garner,  but  he  will  burn  up  the  chaff  with 
unquenchable  fire."  By  this  he  insinuated,  that  in 
the  same  manner  as  the  farmer,  with  the  fan  in 
his  hand,  Avinnows  the  corn,  and  separates  the  light 

'•  John  1.  '25.  w   Jolyi  I.  from  2j  t«  34.  x  Mat.r).  1?. 


REUGION.  307 

and  bad  grains  from  \hv  licavy  and  the  good,  and 
in  the  same  manner  as  the  Are  afterwards  destroys 
the  chalf,  so  the  baptism  of  Christ,  lor  which  he 
was  preparing  them,  was  of  an  inward  and  spirit- 
ual nature,  and  would  eflectually  destroy  the  light 
and  corrupt  affections,  and  thorougldy  cleanse  the 
floor  of  the  human  heart. 

Thfs  baptism,  too,  was  to  be  so  searching  as  to 
be  able  to  penetrate  the  hardest  heart,  and  to 
make  even  the  Gentiles  the  real  children  of  Abra^ 
ham.  ^  "  For  think  not,  says  John,  in  allusion  to 
the  same  baptism,  to  say  within  yourselves,  we 
have  Abraham  to  our  Father  j  for  I  say  unto  you, 
that  God  is  able  of  these  stones  to  raise  up  chil- 
dren unto  Abraham."  As  if  he  had  said,  I  acknow- 
ledge that  you  Pharisees  can,  many  of  you,  boast  of 
relationship  to  Abraham  by  a  strict  and  scrupu- 
lous attention  to  shadowy  and  figurative  ordinan- 
ces; that  many  of  you  can  boast  of  relationship 
to  him  by  blood;  and  all  of  you  by  circumcision. 
But  it  does  not  follow,  therefore,  that  you  are  the 
children  of  Abraham.  Those  only  will  be  able  to 
boast  of  being  his  seed,  to  whom  the  fan  and  fire 
of  Christ's  baptism  shall  be  applied.  The  baptism 
of  him,  who  is  to  come  after  me,  and  whose  king- 

V  .IVfath.  '*.  9-. 


308  RELIGION. 

dom  is  at  hand,  is  of  that  spiritual  and  purifying 
nature,  that  it  will  produce  effects  very  different 
from  those  of  an  observance  of  outward  ordinances. 
It  can  so  cleanse  and  purify  the  hearts  of  men, 
that  if  there  are  Gentilesin  the  most  distant  lands, 
ever  so  far  removed  from  Abraham,  and  possess- 
ing hearts  of  the  hardness  of  stones,  it  can  make 
them  the  real  children  of  Abraham  in  the  sight  of 
God. 

This  distinction  between  the  watery  baptism  of 
John,  and  the  liery  and  spiritual  Ijaptisni  of 
Christ,  was  pointed  out  by  Jesus  Christ  himself; 
for,  he  is  reported  to  have  appeared  to  his  disci- 
ples after  his  resurrection,  and  to  have  command- 
ed them  "^  "  that  they  should  not  depart  from  Je- 
rusalem, but  wait  for  the  promise  of  the  Father, 
which,  says  he,  ye  have  heard  from  me.  For  John 
truly  baptized  with  water,  but  ye  shall  be  baptiz- 
ed with  the  Holy  Ghost  not  many  days  hence." 

Saint  Luke  also  records  a  transaction  which 
took  place,  in  which  Peter  was  concerned,  and  on 
which  occasion  he  first  discerned  the  baptism  of 
Christ,  as  thus  distinguished  in  the  words  which 
have  been  just  given.  *  "  And  as  1  began  to 
speak,  says  he,  the  Floly  Ghost  fell  on  them,  as  on 

z  Acts  1.  i.  a  Acts  11.  15,  16. 


RELIGION.  009 

US  at  the  beginning.  Then  remembered  I  the 
word  of  the  Lord,  liovv  thai  he  said,  John,  indeed, 
baptized  with  water,  but  ye  shall  be  baptizrd  by 
the  Holy  Spirit." 

A  similar  distinction  is  made  also  by  St.  Paul; 
for  when  he  found  that  certain  disciples  had  been 
baptized  only  with  the  baptism  of  John,  ^  he  laid 
his  hand  upon  them,  and  baptized  them  again;  but 
this  was  with  the  baptism  of  the  spirit.  In  his 
epistle  also,  to  the  Corinthians,  we  fmd  the  fol- 
lowing expression  :  "  "  For  by  one  spirit  are  we 
all  baptized  unto  one  body." 


I)  Acts  J9.  c  1  Cov.  12.  13. 


310  RELIGION. 


SECT.  Ill, 


Question  is,  tvhich  of  these  two  baptisms  is  inctuded 
in  the  great  commission  given  bij  Jesus  to  his  Apos- 
tles, "  of  baptizing  in  the  name  of  the  Father, 
the  Son,  and the^Holx)  Ghost?'' — 'Quakers  deny  it 
to  be  that  of  John,  because  contrarij  to  the  ideas 
of  St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul— because  the  object  of 
Johns  baptism  had  been  completed — because  it  was 
a  type  under  the  law,  and  such  types  zvere  to  cease. 


It  appears  then  that  there  are  two  baptisms  re- 
corded in  Scripture ;  the  one,  the  baptism  of  John, 
the  other  that  of  Christ ;  that  these  are  distinct 
from  one  another ;  and  that  the  one  does  not  in- 
clude the  other,  except  he  \i'ho  baptizes  with  wa- 
ter, can  baptize  at  the  same  time  with  the  Holy 
Ghost.  Now  St.  Paul  speaks  only  of  ^  one  bap- 
tism as  effectual ;  and  St.  Peter  must  mean  the 
same,  when  he  spcciks  of  the  baptism  that  saveth. 
The-question  therefore  is,  which  of  the  two  bap- 
tisms that  have  been  mentioned,  is  the  one  effec- 
tual, or  saving  baptism  ?    or,  which  of  these  it  is, 

d  Eph,  4.  ?. 


RELIGION.  311 

tliat  Jesus  Christ  included  in  his  great  commission 
to  the  Apostles,  when  he  commanded  them  "  to 
i^o  and  teach  all  nations,  baptizing  them  in  the 
name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the 
Holy  Ghost." 

The  Quakers  say,  that  the  baptism,  included  in 
this  commission,  was  not  the  baptism  of  John. 

In  the  first  place,  St.  Peter  says  it  was  not,  in 
these  words  :  -^  *'  Which  sometimes  were  disobedi- 
ent, when  once  the  long  suffering  of  God  waited 
in  the  days  of  Noah  while  the  Ark  was  preparing, 
wherein  few,  that  is,  eight  souls,  were  saved  by 
water  ;  ^  whose  antetype  baptism  doth  also  now 
save  us,  (not  the  putting  away  of  the  fillh  of  the 
flesh,  but  the  answer  of  a  good  conscience  towards 
God,)  by  the  resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ." 

The  Apostle  states  here  concerning  the  bap- 
tism that  IS  effectual  and  saving;  first,  that  it  is  not 
the  putting  auay  of  the  filth  of  tlie  ilesii,  which  is 
effected  by  water.  He  carefully  puts  those  ui)on 
their  guard,  to  whom  he  writes,  lest  they  should 
consider  John's  baptism,  or  that  of  water,  to  be 
the  saving  one,  to  which  he  alludes;  for,  having 
made  a  beautiful  comparison  between  an  outward 


c   1   Peter  3,  20.  21.  f  Antf^type  i^  t!ic  jivopeV  traiiUaliim. 

anrl  not  "  the.  figure  \Yheicmitf<. 


312  RELIGION. 

salvation  in  an  outward  ark,  by  the  outward  wa- 
ter, with  this  inward  salvation  by  inward  and  spi- 
ritual water,  in  the  inward  ark  of  the  Testament, 
he  is  fearful  that  his  reader  should  connect  these 
images,  and  fancy  that  water  had  any  thing  to  do 
with  this  baptism.  Hence  he  puts  his  caution  in  a 
parenthesis,  thus  guarding  his  meaning  in  an  ex- 
traordinary manner. 

He  then  shows  what  this  baptism  is,  and  calls  it 
the  answer  of  a  good  conscience  towards  God  by 
the  resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ.  In  fact,  he 
states  it  to  be  the  baptism  of  Christ,  which  is  by 
the  Spirit.  For  he  maintains,  that  he  only  is  truly 
baptized,  whose  conscience  is  made  clear  by  the 
resurrection  of  Christ  in  his  heart.  But  who  can 
make  the  answer  of  such  a  conscience,  except  the 
Holy  Spirit  shall  have  first  purified  the  floor  of 
the  heart;  except  the  spiritual  fan  of  Christ  shall 
have  first  separated  the  wheat  from  the  chatf,  and 
except  his  spiritual  fire  shall  have  consumed  the 
latter  ? 

St.  Paul  makes  a  similar  declaration  :  "  For  as 
many  of  you  as  have  been  baptized  into  Christ, 
have  put  on  Christ."  But  no  man,  the  Quakers 
sa}^  merely  by  being  dipped  under  water,  can 

g  Galat.  5.   17. 


RELIGION.  513 

put  on  Christ,  that  is,  his  life,  his  nature,  his  dis- 
position, his  l)ve,  iTie<'kiiess,  and  temperance,  ad 
all  those  virtues  which  should  characterize  a  Chris- 
tian. 

To  the  same  pnrport  are  those  other  words  by 
the  same  Apostle:  i»  "  Know  ve  not,  that  so 
manv  of  us  as  were  hapti/ed  nnto  Jesus  Clirst, 
were  baptized  into  his  death;  that  like  as  Christ 
was  raised  up  from  the  dead  by  the  glory  O'  the 
Father,  even  so  we  also  sljould  walk  in  newness  of 
life."  And  again — ' ''  B.iried  with  hnn  in  bap- 
tism, wherein  also  ye  are  risen  with  him,  through 
the  faith  of  the  co-ojieration  of  G xl,  who  hath 
raised  him  from  the  dead."  By  these  passages 
the  Apostle  Paul  testifies  that  lie  alone  is  truly 
baptized,  who  first  dies  unto  sin,  and  is  raised  up 
afterwards  from  sin  unto  righteousness,  or  who  is 
raised  up  into  life  witli  Cnrist,  or  wlio  so  feels  the 
inward  resurrection  and  glory  of  Ciirist  in  iiis 
soul,  that  he  walks  in  nevvness  of  life. 

The  Quakers  show  again,  that  tiie  baptism  of 
John  could  not  have  been  included  in  the  great 
commission,  because  the  object  of  John's  baptism 
had  been  completed  even  before  the  preaching  of 
Jesus  Christ. 

The  great  object  of  John's  baptism,  w'as  to  make 

h  Rom.  6.  3.  4.  i  Cylos.  2.  12. 

VOL.  11-.  2  S 


314  RELIGION. 

Jesus  known  to  the  Jews.  John  himself  declared 
this  to  be  the  object  of  it.  ^  "  But  that  he  should 
be  made  manifest  unto  Israel,  therefore  am  I  come 
baptizing  with  water."  This  object  he  accom- 
plished two  ways ;  first,  by  telling  all  whom  he 
baptized  that  Jesus  was  coming,  and  these  were 
the  Israel  of  that  time;  for  he  is  reported  to  have 
baptized  all  Jerusalem,  which  was  the  metropolis, 
and  all  Judea,  and  all  the  country  round  about 
Jordan.  Secondly,  by  pointing  him  out  person- 
ally. ^  This  he  did  to  Andrew,  so  that  Andrew 
left  John  and  followed  Jesus.  Andrew,  again, 
made  him  known  to  Simon,  and  these  to  Philip, 
and  Philip  to  Nathaniel;  so  that  by  means  of 
John,  an  assurance  was  given  that  Jesus  of  Naza- 
reth was  the  Christ. 

The  Quakers  believe  again,  that  the  baptism  of 
John  was  not  included  in  the  great  commission, 
because  it  was  a  type  under  the  law,  and  all  types 
and  shadows  under  the  law  were  to  cease  under 
the  Gospel  dispensation,  or  the  law  of  Christ. 

The  Scdvation  of  the  Eight  by  water,  and  the 
baptism  of  John,  were  both  types  of  the  baptism 
of  Christ.  John  was  sent  expressly  before  Jesus, 
baptizing  the  bodies  of  men  with  water,  as  a  live- 
ly image,  as  he  himself  explains  it,  of  the  latter 

i  John  1.31.  k  John  1.  40. 


RELIGION.  315 

baptizing  their  souls  with  the   Holy  Ghost  and 
with  fire.     The  baptism  of  John,  therefore,  was 
both  preparative  and  typical   of  that  of  Christ. 
And  it  is  remarked  by  the  Quakers,  that  no  soon- 
er was  Jesus  baptized  by  John  with  water  in  the 
type,  than  he  was,  according  to  all  the  Evange- 
lists, baptized  by  the  '  Holy  Ghost  in  the  ante- 
type.     No  sooner  did  he  go  up  out  of  the  water, 
than  John  saw  the  Heavens  opened,  and  the  spi- 
rit of  God  descending  like  a  dove,  and  lighting 
upon  him.     It  was  this  baptism  of  Jesus  in  the 
antetype    which   occasioned  John   to  know  him 
personally,  and  enabled  him  to  discover  him  to 
others.     The  baptism  of  John,  therefore,  being  a 
type  or  figure  under  the  law,  was  to  give  way, 
when  the  antetype  or  substance  became  apparent. 
And  that  it  was  to  give  way  in   its  due  time,  is 
evident  from  the  confession  of  John  himself     For 
on  a  question  which  arose  between  some  of  John's 
disciples  and  the  Jews  about  purifying,  and  on  a 
report  spread  abroad,  that  Jesus  had   begun  to 
baptize,  John  says,  ""  *'  He  (Jesus)  must  increase, 
but  I  must  decrease." — This  confession  of  John 
accords   also  with   the    following  expressions  of 
St.  Paul :  "  "  The  Holy  Ghost  this  signifying,  that 

1  Mat.  3.  16.— Mark  1.  lOv  m  John  3.  30. 

u  Heb.  9.  8.  9.  10. 


316  RFXTGTON. 

the  way  into  the  Holiest  of  all  was  not  yet  made 
manifest,  while  as  the  first  tabernacle  was  yet 
standinc:,  which  was  a  figure  for  the  time  then 
present," — «  hich  stood  only  in  meats  and  drinks, 
and  diveis  washinc:s,  and  carnal  ordinances  im- 
posed on  them  untd  the  time  of  reformation," 


RELIOTON.  317 


SECT.   IV. 


Quakers  xfioic  that  the  h(7nfi\m,  includedin  fhe  great 
commission^  wlueh  appears-  not  to  he  the  ban' ism  of 
Ji  hn,  is  the  baptism  of  Clirist^  from  a  eritieal  ex- 
ominafio)i  of  the  words  in  that  coinnussion — ^Va^ 
in  ivhtch  the  Quakers  interpret  these  words — Diis 
inferpretation  confirmed  bi/  citations  from  St. 
Marky  St.  Luke,  and  St.  Paul. 


JriAVTNG  attempted  to  show,  according  to  the 
method  of  the  Quakers,  that  the  baptism  of  John 
is  not  the  baptism  included  in  the  great  commis- 
sion, I  shall  now  produce  those  argumen  s,  by 
■which  they  maintain  tliat  that  baptism,  which  is 
included  in  it,  is  the  ba])tism  of  Christ. 

These  arguments  will  be  found  chielly  in  a  cri- 
tical examination  of  ihe  words  of  that  commission. 

To  enable  the  reader  lo  judge  ot  tne  propriety 
of  their  observations  upon  tijese  words,  1  sliail  tran- 
scribe from  St.  Matthew  the  three  verses  tliat  relate 
to  this  subject. 

o  "  And  Jesus  came  and  spake  unto  them,  say- 
ing. All  power  is  given  unto  me  in  Heaven  an  I  in 
eartli.     Go  ye,  therefore,  and  teacU  all  nations, 

o  Mat.  2S.  18,  19,  20. 


318  RELIGION. 

"baptizing  them  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and  of 
the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost;  teaching  them  to 
observ^e  all  things  whatsoever  I  have  commanded 
you.  And  lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even  unto  the 
end  of  the  world." 

The  first  observation,  which  the  Quakers  make, 
is  upon  the  word  "  THEREFORE."  As  all  power 
is  given  unto  me  both  in  Heaven  and  in  earthy 
and  as  I  can  on  that  account,  and  as  I  will  qualify 
you,  go  ye  therefore,  that  is,  having  previously  re- 
ceived from  me  the  qualification  necessary  for 
your  task,  go  ye. 

The  next  observation  is,  that  the  commission 
does  not  imply  that  the  Apostles  were  to  teach 
and  to  baptize  as  two  separate  acts,  but,  as  the 
words  intimate,  that  they  were  to  teach  baptizing. 

The  Quakers  say  again,  that  the  word  "  teach" 
is  an  improper  translation  of  the  original  ''  Greek. 
The  Greek  word  should  have  been  rendered 
*'  make  disciples  or  proselytes."  In  several  edi- 
tions of  our  own  Bibles,  the  word  "teach"  is  ex- 
plained in  the  margin  opposite  to  it,  "  make  dis- 
ciples or  Christians  of  all  nations,"  or  in  the  same 
manner  as  the  Quakers  explain  it. 

On  the  word  "  baptize,"  they  observe,  that  be- 

p  AiJ«<r;)^w  is  the  usual  word  fur  teach,  but  (jLn^nlnu  is  used  in  the  com- 
mission ;  which  latter  word  occurs  but  seldom  in  the  New  Testament,  and 
always  signilics  to  "  disciple." 


RELIG10>r.  .319 

cause  its  first  meaning  is  to  wash  all  over,  and  be- 
cause baptism  with  Christians  is  alwaj's  with  water, 
people  cannot  easily  separate  the  image  of  water 
from  the  word,  when  it  is  read  or  pronounced. 
But  if  this  image  is  never  to  be  separated  from  it; 
how  will  persons  understand  the  words  of  St.  Paul, 
''  for  by  one  spirit  are  we  all  baptized  into  one 
body?"  Or  those  of  Jesus,  "  Can  ye  drink  of  the 
cup  that  I  drink  of,  or  be  baptized  with  the  bap- 
tism that  I  am  baptized  with  ?"  Or,  if  this  image 
is  not  to  be  separated  from  it,  how  will  they  un- 
derstand the  Evangelists,  who  represent  Jesus 
Christ  as  about  to  baptize,  or  wash  all  over,  with 
fire?  To  baptize,  in  short,  signifies  to  dip  under 
water,  but,  in  its  more  general  meaning,  to  purify. 
Fire  and  water  have  equally  power  in  this  respect, 
but  on  different  objects.  Water  purifies  surfaces. 
Fire  purifies  by  actual  and  total  separation,  bring- 
ing those  bodies  into  one  mass  which  are  homo- 
geneous, or  which  have  strong  affinities  to  each 
other,  and  leaving  the  dross  and  incombustibje 
parts  by  themselves. 

The  word  "  in"  they  also  look  upon  as  improperly 
translated.  This  word  should  have  been  rendered 
1  "  into."  If  the  werd  "  in"  were  the  right  trans- 
lation, the  words  "  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and 
of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost,"  might  be  con- 

(\  Tbe  word  in  the  originaJ  Creek  in  h>)  ^ndjxot  if- 


3^0  RETJGTON. 

struerl  into  a  form  of  words  to  be  used  at  the  time 
of  baptism. 

But  we  have  no  evidence  that  such  a  formula 
wns  ever  used,  when  any  of  the  Apostles  baptized. 
Indeed,  tlie  plain  meaning  of  the  word  is  "  into," 
and  therefore  all  such  formula  is  groundless,  r 
"  J:^sus  Ciu'ist  did  not,  says  Z  linglius,  by  these 
words  institute  a  form  of  baptism,  which  we  should 
use,  as  divines  have  falsely  taught." 

On  the  word  "  name,"  the  Quakers  observe, 
that,  when  it  relates  to  the  Lord,  it  frequently  sig- 
nifies in  scripture,  his  life,  or  his  spirit,  or  his 
power.  Thus, '  "  in  my  name,  shall  they  cast  out 
devils."  And,  *  "  by  what  power,  or  by  what  name 
have  ye  done  this  ?" 

From  the  interpretation,  which  has  now  been 
given  of  the  meaning  of  several  of  the  words  in  the 
verses,  that  have  been  quoted  from  St.  Matthew, 
the  sense  of  the  commission,  according  to  the  Qua- 
kers, will  stand  thus  :  "  All  power  is  given  to  me 
in  Heaven  and  in  earth.  In  virtue  of  the  })ovver 
which  I  liave,  I  will  give  you  power  also.  I  will 
confer  upon  you  the  gift  of  the  Holy  Spirit. 
AVhen  you  have  received  it,  go  into  different  and 
distant  lands ;  go  to  the  Gentiles  who  live  iu  ig- 
norance, darkness,  and  idolatry,  and  make  them 
proselytes  to  my  new  dispensation  ^  so  purifying 

r  Lib.  de  Capt.  p.  3G,  torn.  2,  Oper. 

H  Mark  16.  17.  t  Acts  4.  7-. 


RELIGION.  321 

their  hearts,  or  l)uniin<^  the  chaff  of  their  corrupt 
alTectioiis  b\'  the  active  fire  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
which  shall  accompany  your  preaching,  that  tiiey 
may  1)0  made  partakers  of  the  divine  nature,  and 
walk  in  newness  of  life.  And  lest  this  should  ap- 
pear to  be  too  great  a  work  for  your  faith,  I,  who 
have  the  power,  promise  to  be  with  you  with  this 
my  spirit  in  the  work,  till  the  end  of  the  world." 
The  Quakers  contend,  tliatthisis  the  true  inter- 
pretation of  this  commission,  because  it  exactly 
coincides  with  the  meaning  of  the  saniiC  commis- 
sion as  descril)ed  by  St,  Luke  and  St.  Mark,  an^l 
of  that  also  which  was  given  to  St.  Paul. 
•  St.  Luke  states  the  commission  given  to  the 
Apostles  to  have  been  **  "  that  rei)entance  and  re- 
mission of  sins  should  be  preached  in  his  name 
among  all  nations,  beginning  at  Jerusalem."  The 
meaning  therefore  of  the  commission,  as  stated  by 
St.  L'.ike,  is  precisely  the  same  as  that  stated  by 
St.  Matthew.  For  first,  all  nations  are  included 
in  it.  Secondly,  purification  of  heart,  or  conver- 
sion from  sin,  is  insisted  upon  to  be  the  object  of 
it.  And  thirdly,  this  object  is  to  be  efTected,  not 
by  the  baptism  of  water,  (for  baptism  is  no  where 

u  Lukti  24.  47. 
VOL.  II.  2  T 


^^2^  IlELIGION. 

mentioned,)  but  by  preaching,  in  which  is  inchided 
the  idea  of  the  baptism  of  the  spirit. 

St,  Mark  also  states  the  commission  to  be  the 
same,  in  the  following  words :  ""  "  And  he  said 
unto  them,  Go  ye  into  all  the  world,  and  preach 
the  Gospel  to  every  creature.  He  that  believeth 
and  is  baptized,  shall  be  saved."  Here  all  nations, 
and  the  preaching  of  the  Gospel,  are  mentioned 
again  ;  but  baptism  is  now  added.  But  the  bap- 
tism that  was  to  go  with  this  preaching,  the  Qua- 
kers contend  to  be  the  baptism  of  the  spirit.  For 
fu'st,  the  baptism  here  mentioned  is  connected 
with  salvation.  But  the  baptism,  according  to  St. 
Peter,  which  doth  also  now  save  us,  '*  is  not  th^ 
putting  away  the  fdth  of  the  flesh,  but  the  answer 
of  a  good  conscience  towards  God  by  the  resur- 
rection of  Jesus  Christ  ;"  or  the  baptism  of  the 
spirit.  Secondly,  the  nature  of  the  baptism  here 
mentioned  is  explained  by  the  verse  that  follows 
it.  Thus,  "  he  that  believeth,  and  is  baptized, 
shall  be  saved.  And  these  signs  shall  follow  them 
that  believe:  they  shall  speak  with  new  tongues." 
This  therefore  is  the  same  baptism  as  that  which 
St.  Paul  conferred  upon  some  of  his  disciples  by 
the  laying  on  of  his  hands.  """  "  And  when  Paul  had 
laid  his  hands  upon  them,  the  Holy  Ghost  came 

V  Mork  lf<.  15.  w  Acts  19.  C. 


RELIGION.  ^2ii 

u\):i\i  llicm,  and  they  spake  with  tongues  and  pro- 
pliesied."  Tluis,  again,  it  is  demonstrated  to  be 
the  l)aptism  of  the  spirit. 

The  commission  also,  which  has  been  handed 
down  to  us  by  St.  Maltlicvv,  w  ill  be  found,  as  it  has 
been  now  explained,  to  coincide  in  its  object  with 
that  uhicli  was  given  to  Paul,  as  we  find  by  his 
confession  to  Agrippa.  For  he  declared  "  he  was 
sent  as  a  minister  to  the  Gentiles  "  to  open  their 
eyes,  and  to  turn  them  from  darkness  to  light, 
and  from  the  power  of  Satan  unto  God,  that  they 
might  receive  forgiveness  of  sins,  and  inheritance 
among  them  which  are  sanctified  by  faith  in 
Christ."  But  what  was  this,  the  Quakers  say,  but 
to  baptize  tbem  into  the  life  and  spirit  of  a  new 
and  divine  nature,  or  with  the  baptism  of  Christ? 

And  as  Vv^e  have  thus  obtained  a  knowledge 
Jrom  St.  Paul  of  what  his  own  commission  con- 
tained, so  we  have,  from  the  same  authority, 
a  knowledge  of  vyhat  it  did  not  contain;  for  he 
positively  declares,  in  his  first  Episile  to  the  Co- 
rinthians, that  "  Christ  sent  iiim  not  to  baptize 
(evidently  alluding  to  the  baptism  by  water)  but 
to  preach  the  Gospel."  It  is  clear  therefore  that 
^t.    Paul  did    not  understand  his  commission  to 

X  Acts 26.  17.  IS. 


524  RELIGION. 

refer  to  water.     And  who  was  better  qualified  to 
understand  it  than  himself? 

'  It  is  also  stated  by  the  Quakers,  as  another  ar- 
gument to  the  same  point,  that  if  the  baptism  in 
the  commission  had  been  that  of  water  only,  the 
Apostles  could  easily  have  administered  it  of  them- 
selves, or  without   any  supernatural   assistance ; 
but,  in  order  that  they  might  be  enabled  to  execute 
that  baptism  which  the   commission  pointed  to, 
they  were  desired  to  wait  for  divine  help.     Jesus 
Christ    said,  ^   "  I  send  the  promise  of  my  father 
upon  you ;  but  tarry  ye  in  the  city  of  Jerusalem 
imtil  ye  be  endued  with  the  power  from  on  high  ; 
for  John  truly  baptized  with  water,  but  ye  shall 
be  baptized  with  the  Holy  Ghost  not  many  days 
hence."     Now,  the  Quakers  ask,   if  baptism  by 
water   had  been    the  baptism  contained   in    the 
great  commission,  why  could  not   the  Apostles 
have  performed  it  of  themselves?  What  should  have 
hindered  them  more  than  John  from  going  with 
people  into  the  rivers,  and  immersing  them?  Why 
were  they  first   to  receive  themselves  the  baptism 
of  the  spirit  r  But  if  it  be  allowed,  on  the  other 
hand,  that  when  they  executed  the  great  commis- 
sion, they  were  to  perform  the  baptism  of  Christ, 

y  Luke  24.  49. 


RELIGION.  325, 

tlie  case  is  altered.  It  became  them  then  to  wait 
for  the  divine  help.  For  it  required  more  tlian 
human  pouer  to  give  that  baptism,  which  should 
change  tlie  disposition  and  affections  of  men, 
and  should  be  able  to  bring  them  from  darkness 
unto  light,  and  from  the  power  of  Satan  unto  God. 
And  here  the  Quakers  observe,  that  the  Apostles 
never  attempted  to  execute  the  great  commission, 
till  the  time  fixed  upon  by  our  Saviour,  in  these 
words:  "  But  tarry  ye  in  the  city  of  Jerusalem, 
until  ye  be  endued  with  power  from  on  high." 
This  was  the  day  of  pentecost.  After  this  "  thev 
jireached,  as  St.  Peter  says,  with  the  Holy  Ghost 
sent  down  from  Heaven,"  and  with  such  eificacv, 
that "  the  Holy  Ghost  fell  upon  many  of  them,  W,  a 
heard  their  words." 


^26  RELIGION. 


SECT.  V. 

Objection  to  tlie  foregoing  argiunenfs  (if  the  Quakers 
— namely,  "  If  it  he  not  tJie  baptism  of  John  that 
is  included  in  the  Great  Commission,  hoio  came 
the  Apostles  to  baptize  zcith  water  P'* — Practice 
and  opinions  of  Peter  considered — also  of  Paul — 
also  of  Jesus  Christ — Tins  practice,  as  explained 
by  these  opinions,  considered  by  the  Quakers  to 
tur?i  out  in  favour  of  their  own  doctrine  on  this 
subject. 


1  HAVE  now  stated  the  arguments  by  which  the 
Quakers  have  been  induced  to  believe  that  the 
baptism  by  the  spirit,  and  not  the  baptism  by  wa- 
ter, was  included  by  Jesus  Christ  in  the  great 
commission  which  he  gave  to  his  Apostles,  when 
he  requested  them  "  to  go  into  all  nations,  and  to 
teach  them,  baptizing  in  the  name  of  the  Fathci', 
and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost." 

Against  these  arguments  the  following  ques- 
tion has  been  usually  started,  as  an  objection  :  "  If 
it  be  not  included  in  the  great  commission,  how 
came  the  Apostles  to  baptize  ;  or  would  they  have 


RELIGION'.  327 

baptized,  if  baptism  liad  not  been  considered  by 
them  as  a  Christian  ordinance?" 

The  Quakers,  in  answering  this  objection,  have 
confined  themselves  to  the  consideration  of  the 
Conduct  of  the  Apostles  Peter  and  Paul.  For 
though  Philip  is  said  to  have  baptized  also,  yet 
he  left  no  writings  behind  him  like  the  former; 
nor  are  so  many  circumstances  recorded  of  him, 
by  which  they  may  be  enabled  to  judge  of  his 
character,  or  to  know  uhat  his  opinions  ultimate- 
ly were,  upon  that  subject. 

The  Quakers  consider  the  Apostles  as  men  of 
the  like  passions  with  themselves.  They  find  the 
ambition  of  James  and  John  j  the  apostacy  and 
dissimulation  of  Peter  j  the  incredulity  of  Tho- 
mas ;  the  dissention  between  Paul  and  Barnabas  j 
and  the  jealousies  which  some  of  them  entertain- 
ed towards  one  another,  recorded  in  holy  w^rit. 
They  believe  them  also  to  have  been  mostly  men 
of  limited  information,  and  to  have  had  their  pre- 
judices, like  other  people.  Hence  it  was  not  to 
be  expected  that  ihey  should  come  all  at  once 
into  the  knowledge  of  Christ's  kingdom  ;  that, 
educated  in  a  religion  of  types  and  ceremonials, 
they  should  all  at  once  abandon  these ;  that,  ex- 
pecting a  temporal  Messiah,  they  sh.euld  lay  aside 
at  once  temporal  views  ;  and  that  they  should  come 


328  RELIGION. 

immediately  into  the  full  parity  of  the  gospel  prac- 
tice. 

With  res{)€ct  to  the  Apostle  Peter,  he  gave  early 
signs  of  the  dulness  of  his  comprehension  with 
respect  to  the  nature  of  the  character  and  kingdom 
of  the  Messiah.  "^  For  when  Jesus  had  given  forth 
but  a  simple  parable,  he  was  obliged  to  ask  him 
the  meaning  of  it.  This  occasioned  Jesus  to  say 
to  him,  "  Are  ye  also  yet  without  understanding  ?" 

In  a  short  time  afterwards,  when  our  Saviour 
told  him,  ^  "  that  he  himself  must  go  to  Jerusalem 
and  suffer  many  thmgs,  and  be  killed,  and  be  rais- 
ed again  the  third  day,  Peter  took  him  and  re- 
buked him,  saying.  Be  it  far  from  thee.  Lord. 
This  shall  not  be  unto  thee." 

At  a  subsequent  time,  namely,  just  after  the 
transfiguration  of  Christ,  he  seems  to  have  known 
so  little  about  spiritual  things,  that  he  expressed 
a  wish  to  raise  three  earthly  tabernacles,  one  to 
Moses,  another  to  Elias,  and  a  third  to  Jesus,  for 
the  retention  of  signs  and  shadows  as  a  Gospel 
labour,  at  the  very  time  when  Jesus  Christ  was 
opening  the  dismission  of  all  but  one,  namely, 
"  the  tabernacle  of  God,  that  is  with  men." 

Nor  did  he  seem,  at  a  more  remote  period,  to 

/.  Matt.  15.10.  a  Matt.  16.  21,  22. 


RELIGION.  329 

have  gained  more  large  or  spiritual  ideas.  He 
did  not  even  know  that  the  Gospel  of  Jesus  Christ 
was  to  be  universal.  He  considered  it  as  limited 
to  the  Jews,  though  the  words  in  the  great  com.- 
mission,  which  he  and  tlie  other  Apostles  had 
heard,  ordered  them  to  teach  all  nations.  He  wag 
unwilling  to  go  and  preach  to  Cornelius  on  this 
ver}'  account,  merely  because  he  was  a  Roman 
Centurion,  or  in  other  words,  a  Gentile;  so  that  a 
vision  was  necessary  to  remove  his  scruples  in  this 
particular.  It  was  not  till  after  this  vision,  and 
his  conversation  with  Cornelius,  that  his  mind  be- 
gan to  be  opened ;  and  then  he  exclaimed,  "  Of  a. 
truth,  I  perceive  that  God  is  no  respecter  of  per- 
sons; but  in  every  nation,  he  that  feareth  him  and 
worketh  righteousness,  is  accepted  with  him." 

The  mind  of  Peter  now  began  to  be  opened, 
and  to  see  things  in  a  clearer  light,  when  a  new 
occurrence  that  took  place  nearly  at  the  same 
time,  seems  to  have  taken  the  fdm  still  more  from 
his  eyes:  for  while  he  preached  to  Cornelius,  and 
the  others  present,  he  perceived  that  "  the  Holy 
Ghost  fell  upon  all  of  them  that  heard  his  words, 
as  on  himself  and  the  other  Apostles  at  the  begin- 
ning." Then  remembered  Peter  the  words  of  the 
Iword,  how  that  he  said,  "  John  indeed  baptized 
with  water,   but  ye  shall  be  baptized  with  the 

vol..  II.  2  U 


330  RELIGION. 

Holy  Ghost:"  that  is,  Peter  finding  that  Cornelius 
and  his  friends  had  received,  by  means  of  his  own 
powerful  preaching,  the  Holy  Ghost,  perceived 
then  for  the  first  time,  to  his  great  surprise,  that 
he  had  been  executing  the  great  commission  of 
Jesus  Christ;  or  that  he  had  taught  a  Gentile,  and 
baptized  him  with  the  Holy  Spirit.  Here  it  was 
that  he  first  made  the  discrimination  between  the 
baptism  of  John,  and  the  baptism  of  Christ. 

From  this  time  there  is  reason  to  think  that 
his  eyes  became  fully  open ;  for  in  a  few  years  af- 
terwards, when  we  have  an  opportunity  of  viewing 
his  conduct  again,  we  find  him  an  altered  man  as 
to  his  knowledge  of  spiritual  things.  Being  called 
npon  at  the  council  of  Jerusalem  to  deliberate  on 
the  propriety  of  circumcision  to  Gentile  converts, 
he  maintains  that  God  gives  his  Holy  Spirit  as  well 
to  the  Gentiles  as  to  the  Jews.  He  maintains 
again,  that  God  purifies  hy  faith ;  and  he  delivers 
it  as  his  opinion,  that  circumcision  is  to  be  looked 
upon  as  a  yoke.  And  here  it  may  be  remarked, 
that  circumcision  and  baptism  uniformly  went  to- 
gether, when  proselytes  of  the  covenant  were 
made,  or  when  any  of  the  Heathens  were  desirous 
pf  conforming  to  the  whole  of  the  Jewish  law. 

At  a  time,  again,  subsequent  to  this,  or  when 
i^e  v/rote:  his  Epistles  which  were  to  go  to  the 


RELIGION.  331 

strangers  all  over  Pontus,  Galatia,  Cappadocia, 
Asia,  and  Bitliynia,  he  discovers  himself  to  be  the 
same  full  grown  man  in  spiritual  things  on  the 
subject  of  baptism  itself,  in  these  remarkable  words, 
which  have  been  quoted:  "Whose  antitype  bap- 
tism doth  also  now  save  us,  (not  the  putting  awuy 
the  tilth  of  the  flesh,  but  the  answer  of  a  good  con- 
science towards  God,)  by  the  resurrection  of  Jesus 
Christ."  So  that  the  last  opinion  of  Peter  on  the 
subject  of  vvater-baptism  contradicted  his  practice, 
when  he  was  but  a  noviciate  in  Christ's  kingdom. 

With  respect  to  the  Apostle  Paul,  whose  prac- 
tice I  am  to  consider  next,  it  is  said  of  him,  as 
of  St.  Peter,  that  he  baptized. 

That  Paul  ba[)tized  is  to  be  collected  from  his 
own  writings.  For  it  appears,  by  his  own  account, 
that  there  had  been  divisions  among  the  Corinthi- 
ans. Of  those  who  had  been  converted  to  Chris- 
tianity, some  called  themselves  after  the  name  of 
Cephas;  others  after  the  name  of  Apollos;  others 
after  the  name  of  Paul;  thus  dividing  themselves 
nominally  into  sects,  according  to  the  name  of  him 
who  had  either  baptized  or  converted  them.  St. 
Paul  mentions  these  circumstances,  by  which  it 
comes  to  light,  that  he  used  water-baptism,  and  he 
regrets  that  the  persons  in  question  should  have 
made  such  a  bad  use  of  this  rite^  as  to  call  them- 


33^  RELIGION. 

selves  after   him  who  baptized  them,  instead   of 
calling  themselves  after  Christ,  and  dwelling  on  him 
alone.    ''  "  I  thank  God,  says  he,  that  I  baptized 
none  of  you  but  Crispus  and  Gains;  lest  any  should 
say  that  I  baptized  in  my  own  name.     And  I  bap- 
tized also  the  house  of  Stephanus.     Besides  I  know 
not  whether  I  baptized  any  other,  for  Christ  sent 
tne  not  to  baptize,  but  to  preach  the  Gospel." 
Now  this  confession  of  the  Apostle,  which  is  usu- 
ally brought  against  the  Quakers,  they  consider 
to  be  entirely  in  their  favour,  and  indeed  decisive 
of  the  point  in  question.     For  they  collect  from 
hence,  that  St.  Paul  never  considered  baptism  by 
water  as  any  Gospel  ordinance,  or  as  any  rite  in- 
dispensably necessary,  when  men  were  admitted  as 
members  into  the  Christian  church.     For  if  he  had 
considered  it  in  this  light  he  would  never  have 
said  that  Christ  sent  him  not  to  baptize,  but  to 
preach  the  Gospel.     Neither  would  he  have  thank- 
ed God,  on  account  of  the  mere  abuse  of  it,  that 
he  had  baptized  so  few;  for  doubtless  there  were 
many  among  the  learned  Greeks,  who  abused  his 
preaching,  and  who  called  \t  foolishness,  but  yet  he 
no  where  says,  that  he  was  sorry  on  that  account 
that  he  ever  preached  to  them;  for  preaching  was 

b  1  Cor.  1.  14,  15,  16. 


RELIGION.  333 

a  gospel  ordinance  enjoined  him,  by  which'many 
were  to  be  converted  to  the  Christian  faith. 
Again— If  he  had  considered  water  baptism,  as  a 
necessary  mark  of  initiation  into  Christianity,  he 
would  uniformly  have  adopted  it,  as  men  became 
proselytes  to  his  doctrines.  But  among  the  thou- 
sands, whom  in  all  probability  he  baptized  with 
the  Holy  Spirit  among  the  Corinthians,  it  does 
not  appear,  that  there  were  more  than  the  mem- 
bers of  the  three  families  ofCrispus,  Gaius,  and 
Stephanus,  whom  he  baptized  with  water. 

But  still  it  is  contended,  that  Paul  says  of  himself, 
that  he  baptized.  The  Quakers  agree  to  this,  but 
they  say  that  he  must  have  done  it,  in  these  in- 
stances, on  motives  very  different  from  those  of  an 
indispensable  Christian  rite. 

In  endeavouring  to  account  for  these  motives,  the 
Quakers  consider  the  Apostle  Paul  as  not  in  the 
situation  of  Peter  and  others,  who  were  a  long 
time  in  acquiring  their  spiritual  knowledge,  during 
which  they  might  be  in  doubt  as  to  the  propriety 
of  many  customs j  but  as  coming,  on  the  other 
hand,  quickly  and  powerfully  into  the  knowledge 
of  Christ's  kingdom.  Hence,  when  he  baptized, 
they  impute  no  ignorance  to  him.  They  believe 
he  rejected  water-baptism  as  a  gospel  ordinance, 
but  that  he  considered  it  iu  itself  as  an  harmless 


33A  RELIGION. 

ceremony^  and  that,  viewing  it  in  this  light,  he 
used  it  out  of  condescension  to  those  ellenistic 
Jews,  whose  prejudices,  on  account  of  the  wash- 
ings of  Moses  and  their  customs  relative  to  prose- 
lytes, were  so  strong,  that  they  could  not  separate 
purificafion  by  water  from  conversion  to  a  new- 
religion.  For  St.  Paul  confesses  himself  that  "  to 
the  weak  he  became  as  weak,  that  he  might  gain 
the  weak,  and  was  made  all  things  to  all  men,  that 
he  might  by  all  means  save  some."  Of  this  his 
condescension  many  instances  are  recorded  in  the 
New  Testament,  though  it  may  be  only  necessary 
to  advert  to  one.  At  the  great  council  at  Jerusa- 
lem, where  Paul,  Barnabas,  Peter,  James,  and 
others,  were  present,  it  was  *"  determined  that  cir- 
cumcision was  not  necessary  to  the  Gentiles.  St. 
Paul  himself  with  some  others  carried  the  very 
letter  of  the  council,  containing  their  determina- 
tion upon  this  subject,  to  Antioch  to  the  brethren 
there.  This  letter  was  addressed  to  the  brethren 
of  Antioch,  Syria,  and  Cilicia.  After  having  left 
Antioch,  he  went  to  Derbc  and  Lystra,  where, 
notwithstanding  the  determination  of  himself  and 
the  rest  of  the  council,  that  circumcision  was  not  a 
Christian  rite,  fee  "^  circumcised  Timotheus,  in  con- 

o  Acts  15.  d  ActslR.  Ct 


RELIGION.  335 

desceasion  to  the  weakness  of  the  Jews,  who  were 
in  those  quarters. 

In  addition  to  these  observations  on  the  practice 
and  opinions  of  the  Apostles,  in  the  course  of 
which  the  Quakers  presume  it  will  be  found  that 
the  baptism  of  John  is  not  an  ordinance  of  the 
Gospel,  they  presume  the  same  conclusion  will  be 
adopted,  if  they  take  into  consideration  the  prac- 
tice and  opinions  of  Jesus  Christ. 

That  Jesus  Christ  never  forbad  water-baptism, 
the  Quakers  readily  allow.  But  they  conceive 
his  silence  on  this  subject  to  have  arisen  from  his 
knowledge  of  the  internal  state  of  the  Jews.  He 
knew  how  carnal  their  minds  were ;  how  much 
they  were  attached  to  outward  ordinances;  and 
how  difficult  it  was  to  bring  them  all  at  once  into 
his  spiritual  kingdom.  Hence,  he  permitted  many 
things  for  a  time,  on  account  of  the  weakness  of 
their  spiritual  vision. 

That  Jesus  submitted  also  to  baptism  himself, 
they  allow.  But  he  submitted  to  it,  not  because 
he  intended  to  make  it  an  ordinance  under  the 
new  dispensation,  but  to  use  his  own  words,  "that 
he  might  fulfil  ail  righteousness."  Hence,  also 
he  was  circumcised.  Hence  he  celebrated  the 
Passover.  And  hence,  he  was  enabled  to  use 
these  remarkable  words  upon  the  cross  :  "  It  is 
fuliilled." 


336  RELIGION. 

But  though  Jesus  Christ  never  forbad  water- 
baptism,  and,  though  he  was  baptized  with  water 
by  John,  yet  he  never  baptized  any  one  himself. 
A  rumour  had  gone  abroad  among  the  Pharisees, 
that  the  Jesus  had  baptized  more  disciples  than 
Jolm  the  Baptist.  But  John,  the  beloved  disciple 
of  Jesus,  who  had  leaned  on  his  bosom,  and  who 
knew  more  of  his  sentiments  and  practice  than 
any  other  person,  is  very  careful  in  correcting 
this  hear-say  report,  as  if  unw^orthy  of  the  spiritual 
mind  of  his  master,  and  states  positively,  «  *'  that 
Jesus  baptized  not." 

The  Quakers  lay  a  great  stress  upon  this  cir- 
cumstance :  for  they  say,  that  if  Jesus  never  bap- 
tized with  water  himself,  it  is  a  proof  that  he  never 
intended  to  erect  water-baptism  into  a  Gospel- 
rite.  It  is  difficult  to  conceive,  they  say,  that  he 
should  have  established  a  Sacrament,  and  that  he 
should  never  have  administered  it.'  AVould  he  not, 
on  the  other  hand,  if  his  own  baptism  had  been 
that  of  water,  have  begun  his  ministry  by  baptiz- 
ing his  own  disciples,  notwithstanding  they  had 
previously  been  baptized  by  John  ?  But  he  not 
only  never  baptized,  but  it  is  no  where  recorded  of 
him,  that  he  ordered  his  disciples  to  baptize  "  with 
7vater.'^    ^  He  once  ordered  a  leper  to  go  to  the 

e  John  4.2.  f  Mat.  8.  4, 


RELIGION.  337 

priest,  and  to  offer  the  gift  for  liiscleansings.  At 
another  time,  «  he  ordered  a  blind  man  to  go  and 
wash  in  the  pool  ofSiloam;  but  he  never  ordered 
any  one  to  go  and  be  baptized  with  water.  On 
the  other  hand,  it  is  said  by  flie  Quakers,  that  he 
clearly  intimated  to  three  of  his  disciples,  at  the 
transfiguration,  that  the  dispensations  of  Moses 
and  John  were  to  pass  away ;  and  that  he  taught 
himself,  "  that  the  kingdom  of  God  cometh  not 
with  observation;"  or,  that  it  consisted  not  in  those 
outward  and  lifeless  ordinances,  in  which  many 
of  those  to  whom  he  addressed  himself  placed  tii^ 
essence  of  their  religion. 


John  9. 


vol.  11%  2  X 


3S8  RELIGION. 

CHAP.  XVI. 
SECT,  I, 

Supper  of  the  Lord—^Two  such  suppers,  one  enjoined 
by  Moses y  the  other  by  Jesus  Christ — The  former 
called  the  Passover — Original  manner  of  its  cele- 
bration—The use  of  bread  and  wine  added  to  it — 
These  long  in  use  when  Jesus  Christ  celebrated  it 
' — Sijice  his  time,  alterations  made  in  this  supper 
by  the  Jews — But  bread  and  wine  still  continued 
to  be  component  parts  of  it,  and  continue  so  to 
the  present  day — Modern  manner  of  the  celebra- 
tion of  it. 


X  HERE  are  two  suppers  of  the  Lord  recorded 
in  the  Scriptures  j  the  first  enjoined  by  Moses,  and 
the  second  by  Jesus  Christ. 

The  first  is  called  the  Supper  of  the  Lord,  be- 
cause it  was  the  last  supper  which  Jesus  Christ 
participated  with  his  disciples,  or  which  the  Lord 
and  master  celebrated  with  them  in  commemora- 
tion of  the  passover.  And  it  may  not  improperly 
be  called  the  Supper  of  the  Lord  on  another  ac- 
count, because  it  was  the  supper  which  the  lord 


RELIGION.  339 

and  master  of  every  Jewish  family  celebrated,  on 
the  same  festival,  in  his  own  house. 

This  supper  was  distinguished,  at  the  time  allud- 
ed to,  by  the  name  of  the  Passover  Supper.  The 
object  of  the  institution  of  it  was  to  commemorate 
the  event  of  the  Lord  passing  over  the  houses  of 
tlie  Israelites  in  Egypt,  when  he  smote  the  Egyp- 
tians, and  delivered  the  former  from  their  hard  and 
oppressive  bondage. 

Tiie  directions  of  Moses  concerning  this  festi- 
Tal  were  short,  but  precise. 

On  tlie  fourteenth  day  of  the  first  month,  called 
Nissan,  the  Jews  were  to  kill  a  lamb  in  the  even- 
ing. It  was  to  be  eaten  in  the  same  evening, 
roasted  with  fire,  and  the  whole  of  it  was  to  be  eat- 
en, or  the  remains  of  it  to  be  consumed  with  fire 
before  morning.  They  were  to  eat  it  with  loins 
girded,  with  their  shoes  on  their  feet,  and  with 
their  staves  in  their  hands,  and  to  eat  it  in  haste. 
The  bread  which  thev  were  to  eat,  was  to  be  un- 
leavened,  all  of  it,  and  for  seven  days.  There  was 
to  be  no  leaven  in  their  houses  during  that  time. 
Bitter  herbs  also  were  to  be  used  at  this  feast. 
And  none  who  were  uncircumcised  were  allowed 
to  partake  of  it. 

This  was  the  simple  manner  in  which  the  pass- 
over,  and  the  feast  of  unleavened  bread,  which 


340  RELIGION. 

was  included  in  it,  were  first  celebrated.  But  as 
the  passover,  in  the  age  following  its  institution, 
was  not  to  be  killed  and  eaten  in  any  other  place 
than  where  the  Lord  chose  to  fix  his  name,  which 
was  afterwards  at  Jerusalem,  it  was  suspended  for 
a  time.  The  Jews,  however,  retained  the  festival 
of  unleavened  bread,  wherever  they  dwelt.  At 
this  last  feast,  in  [jrocess  of  time,  they  added  the 
use  of  wine  to  the  use  of  bread.  The  introduc- 
tion of  the  wine  was  followed  by  the  introduction 
of  new  cu.stoms.  The  Lord  or  master  of  the  feast 
used  to  break  the  bread,  and  to  bless  it,  saying, 
"  Blessed  be  thou,  O  Lord,  who  givest  us  the  fruits 
of  the  earth."  He  used  to  take  the  cup,  which 
contained  the  wine,  and  bless  it  also:  "  Blessed  be 
thou,  O  Lord,  who  givest  us  the  fruit  of  the  vine." 
The  bread  was  twice  blessed  upon  this  occasion, 
and  given  once  to  every  individual  at  I  he  feast. 
But  the  cup  was  handed  round  three  times  to  the 
guests.  During  the  intervals  between  the  ble^^s- 
jng  and  the  taking  of  the  bread  and  of  the  wine, 
the  company  acknowledged  the  deliverance  of 
their  ancestors  from  the  Egpytian  bondage  j  they 
lamented  their  present  state,;  they  confessed  their 
sense  of  the  justice  of  God  in  their  punishment; 
and  they  expressed  their  hope  of  his  mercy  from 
his  former  kind  dealings  and  gracious  promises. 


RFXTGTON.  341 

In  process  of  time,  when  the  Jews  were  fixed  at 
Jerusa  en),  they  revived  the  cekbration  of  the 
passover,  and  as  tlie  feast  of  unleavened  bread 
was  connected  with  it,  they  added  the  customs 
of  the  latter,  and  blended  the  eating  of  the  lamb, 
and  the  use  of  the  bread  and  wine,  and  several 
accompaniments  of  consecration,  into  one  cere- 
mony. The  bread  therefore  and  the  wine  had 
been  long  in  use  as  constituent  parts  of  the  passo- 
ver-supper,  and  indeed  of  all  the  solemn  feasts  of 
the  Jews,  when  Jesus  Christ  took  upon  himself, 
as  master  of  his  own  family  of  disciples,  to  cele- 
brate it.  When  he  celebrated  it,  he  did  as  the 
master  of  ever}''  Jewish  family  did  at  that  time. 
He  look  bread,  and  blessed,  and  broke,  and  gave 
to  his  disciples.  He  took  the  cup  of  wine,  and  gave 
it  10  them  also.  But  he  conducted  himself  differ- 
ently from  others  in  one  respect,  for  he  compared 
the  bread  of  the  passover  to  his  own  body,  and  the 
wine  to  his  own  blood,  and  led  the  attention  of  his 
disciples  from  the  old  object  of  the  passover,  or 
deliverance  from  Egyptian  bondage,  to  a  new  one, 
or  deliverance  from  sm. 

Since  the  time  of  our  Saviour,  we  fuKl  that  the 
Jews,  who  have  been  dispersed  in  various  parts 
of  the  world,  have  made  alterations  in  this  supper: 
but  all  of  them  have  concurred  in  retaining  the 


j&f^ 


5¥4  RELIGION, 

bread  and  wine  as  component  parts  of  it.  This 
will  be  seen  by  describing  the  manner  in  which 
it  is  celebrated  at  the  present  day. 

On  the  fourteenth  day  of  the  month  Nissan,  the 
first-born  son  of  every  family  fasts,  because  the 
first-born  in  Egypt  were  smitten  on  that  night. 
A  table  is  then  set  out,  and  covered  with  a  cloth. 
On  the  middle  of  it  is  placed  a  large  dish,  which  is 
covered  with  a  napkin.    A  large  passover  cake  of 
unleavened  bread,  distinguished   by  marks,  and 
denominated  "  Israelite^'  is  then  laid  upon  this 
napkin.     Another,  with  different  marks,  but  de- 
nominated '■'^  Levite^  is  laid  upon  the  first:  and 
a  third,    differently    marked,   and    denominated 
"  Priest,''  is  laid  upon   the   second.     Upon   this 
again  a  large  dish  is  placed,  and  in  this  dish  is  a 
shank  bone  of  a  shoulder  of  lamb,  with  a  small 
matter  of  meat  on  it,  which  is  burnt  quite  brown 
on  the  fire.     This  is  instead  of  the  lamb  roasted 
with  fire.     Near  this  is  an  e^gy  roasted  hard  in 
hot  ashes,  that  it  may  not  be  broken,  to  express 
the  totality  of  the  lamb.     There  is  also  placed  on 
the  table  a  small  quantity  of  raw  charvil  instead 
of  the  bitter  herbs  ordered ;  also  a  cup  with  salt 
"water,  in  remembrance  of  the  sea  crossed  over 
after  that  repast ;  also  a  stick  of  horse  radish  with 
its  green  top  to  it^  to  represent  the  bitter  labour 


RELIGION.  343 

that  made  the  eyes  of  their  ancestors  water  in 
slavery  ;  and  a  couple  of  round  balls,  made  of  bit- 
ter almonds  pounded  with  apples,  to  represent 
their  labour  in  lime  and  bricks.  The  seat  or 
couch  of  the  master  is  prepared  at  the  head  of  the 
table,  and  raised  with  pillows,  to  represent  the  mas- 
terly authority  of  which  the  Jews  were  deprived 
in  bondage.  The  meanest  of  the  servants  are 
seated  at  the  table  for  two  nights  with  their  mas- 
ters, mistresses,  and  superiors,  to  denote  that  they 
were  all  equally  slaves  in  Egypt,  and  that  all 
ought  to  give  the  same  ceremonial  thanks  for  their 
redemption.  Cups  also  are  prepared  for  the  wine, 
of  which  each  person  must  drink  four  in  the  course 
of  the  ceremony.  One  cup  extraordinary  is  set 
on  the  table  for  Elias,  which  is  drank  by  the  young 
est  in  his  stead. 

All  things  having  been  thus  prepared,  the  guests 
wash  their  hands,  and  seat  themselves  at  ta- 
ble. The  master  of  the  family,  soon  after  this, 
takes  his  cup  of  wine  in  his  right  handy  and  the  rest 
at  the  table  doing  the  same,  he  says,  together 
with  all  the  others,  "  Blessed  art  thou,  O  Lord 
our  God,  King  of  the  Universe,  who  liast  created 
the  fruit  of  tiie  vine."  This  is  followed  by  a 
thanksgiving  for  the  institution  of  the  passover. 
Then  the  cup  of  wine  is  drank  by  all.  Afterwards 
the  master  of  the  family  says,  "  Blessed  art  thou. 


344  RELIGION. 

O  Lord  our  God,  King  of  the  Universe,  who  hast 
sancfified  us  with  thy  commandments,  and  com- 
manded us  to  cleanse  our  hands." 

Then  the  master  of  the  family  desires  the  guests 
to  partake  of  the  charvil  dipped  in  salt  vvater, 
which  he  gives  them  with  an  appropriate  blessing. 
He  makes  them  touch  also  the  dish,  containing 
the  egg  and  shank  bone  of  the  lamb,  and  repeat 
with  him  a  formula  of  words  suited  to  the  subject. 
He  then  takes  the  second  cup  of.  zvi?iey  and  uses 
words  in  conjunction  with  the  rest,  expressive  of 
the  great  difference  between  this  and  any  other 
night.  After  this,  copious  remarks  follow  on  the 
institution  of  the  passover.  Then  follow  queries 
and  answers  of  the  rabbis  on  this  subject :  then 
historical  accounts  of  the  Jews:  then  the  fiiteen 
acts  of  the  goodness  of  God  to  the  Jewish  nation, 
which  they  make  out  thus  : — He  led  the  Jews  out 
of  Egypt:  he  punished  the  Egyptians:  he  executed 
judgment  on  their  gods:  he  slew  their  first-born  : 
he  gave  the  Jews  wealth  :  he  divided  the  sea  for 
them :  he  made  them  pass  through  it  as  on  dry 
land  :  he  drowned  the  Egyptians  in  the  same :  he 
gave  food  to  the  Jews  for  forty  years  in  the  wil- 
derness:  he  fed  them  with  manna:  he  gave  them 
the  sabbath :  he  brought  them  to  Mount  Sinai : 
he  gave  them  the  law  :  he  brought  them  to  the 
r.and  of  Promise :  he  built  the  Temple. 


RELIGION.  345 

When  these  acts  of  the  goodness  of  God,  with 
additional  remarks  on  the  passover  out  of  Rabbi 
Gamaliel,  have  been  recited,  ail  tlie  guests  touch 
the  dish  which  contains  the  three  cakes  of  bread 
before  mentioned,  and  say :  "  This  sort  of  un- 
leavened bread,  which  we  eat,  is  because  there 
was  not  sufficient  time  for  the  dough  of  our  an- 
cestors to  rise,  until  the  blessed  Lord,  the  King  of 
Kings,  did  reveal  himself  to  redeem  them,  as  it  is 
written.  And  they  baked  unleavened  cakes  of  the 
dough,  which  they  brought  forth  out  of  Egypt  S 
for  it  was  not  leavened,  because  they  were  thrust 
out  of  Egypt,  and  could  not  tarry  j  neither  had 
they  prepared  for  themselves  any  victuals."  After 
this  they  touch  the  horse-radish  and  join  in  a  nar- 
ration on  the  subject  of  their  bondage.  Then 
they  take  their  third  cup  of  ivine^  and  pronounce  a 
formula  of  adoration  and  praise,  accompanied 
with  blessings  and  thanksgivings,  in  allusion  to  the 
historical  part  of  the  passover.  After  this  the 
master  of  the  family  washes  his  hands  and  says, 
"  Blessed  art  thou,  O  Lord  our  God,  King  of  the 
Universe,  who  hast  sanctified  us  with  thy  Com- 
mandments, and  commanded  us  to  cleanse  our 
hands."  He  then  breaks  the  uppermost  cake  of 
bread  in  the  dish,  and  says,  "  Blessed  art  thou,  O 
Lord  our  God,  King  of  the  Universe,  who  hast 
VOL.  II.  2  Y 


346  RELIGION. 

brought  forth  bread  from  the  earth."  Then  he 
takes  half  of  another  cake  of  bread,  and  breaks  it^ 
and  says,  "  Blessed  art  thou,  O  Lord  our  God, 
King  of  the  Universe,  who  hast  sanctified  us  with 
thy  commandments,  and  commanded  us  to  eat 
the  unleavened  bread."  Then  he  gix)es  evenj  one 
at  the  fable  of  each  of  the  two  cakes  of  bread  that  are 
broken^  and  every  one  repeats  audibly  the  two  last 
blessings.  He  then  takes  the  green  top  from  the 
horse-radish,  and  puts  on  the  balls  before  mention- 
ed, and  pronounces  a  blessing.  He  then  puts 
these  into  the  hands  of  the  guests,  and  they  pro- 
nounce the  same.  After  this,  he  cuts  the  bottom 
cake,  and  puts  a  piece  of  it  upon  a  piece  of  horse- 
radish, and  pronounces  a  formula  of  words,  in  al- 
lusion to  an  historical  fact. 

These  ceremonies  having  been  thus  completed, 
the  guests  sup. 

After  supper,  a  long  grace  is  said.  Then  the 
fourth  cup  is  filled.  A  long  prayer  follows,  on  the 
subject  of  creation.  This  is  again  followed  by  a 
hymn,  enumerating  and  specifying  the  twelve 
w^onders  which  God  did  at  midnight.  Another 
hymn  succeeds,  specifying  the  fifteen  great  works 
which  God  did  at  diflerent  times,  both  on  the  night, 
and  on  the  day,  of  the  passover.  Then  follows  a 
prayer  in  praise  of  God,  in  which  a  desire  is  ex- 


RELIGION.  347 

pressed,  that  they  may  again  be  brought  to  Jeru- 
salem. Then  follows  a  blessing  on  the  fourth  cup 
"which  is  taken;  after  v.hicli  anollicr  hynni  is  sung, 
in  which  the  assistance  of  the  Almighty  is  invoked 
for  the  rebuilding  of  the  temple.  This  hymn  is 
followed  by  thirteen  canticles,  enumerating  thir- 
teen remarkable  things  belonging  to  the  Jews,  soon 
after  which  the  ceremony  ends. 

This  is  the  manner,  or  nearly  the  manner,  in 
which  the  passover  is  now  celebrated  by  the 
Jews.  The  bread  is  still  continued  to  be  blessed, 
and  broken,  and  divided,  and  the  cup  to  be  bless- 
ed and  handed  round  among  the  guests.  And 
this  is  done,  whether  they  live  in  Asia,  or  in  Eu- 
rope, or  in  any  other  part  of  the  known  world. 


348  ,  KELIGION 


SECT.  II. 


Second  Supper  is  that  enjoined  hij  Jesus  at  Caper- 
naum— It  consists  of  bread  from  Heaven — or  of 
the  flesh  and  blood  of  Christ — But  tJtese  not  of  a 
material  nature,  like  the  passover-bread,  or  cor- 
poreal part  of  Jesus — but  wholly  of  a  spiritual — 
Those  who  receive  it,  are  spiritually  nourished  by 
it,  a?id  may  be  said  to  sup  with  Christ — This  sup- 
per supported  the  Patriarchs — and  must  be  taken 
by  all  Christians — Various  xvays  in  zvhich  this 
supper  may  be  enjoyed. 


±  HE  second  supper  recorded  in  the  scriptures, 
in  which  bread,  and  the  body,  and  blood  of 
Christ,  are  mentioned,  is  that  which  was  enjoined 
by  Jesus,  when  he  addressed  the  multitude  at  Ca- 
pernaum. Of  this  supper,  the  following  account 
may  be  given  : 

^  "  Labour  not,  says  he  to  the  multitude,  for 
the  meat  which  perisheth,  but  for  that  meat  which 
endureth  unto  everlasting  life,  which  the  Son  of 
Man  shall  give  unto  you." 

A  little  farther  on,  in  the  same  chapter,  when 

h  John  C.  27. 


RELIGION.  34^ 

the  Jews  required  a  sign  from  heaven,  (such  as 
when  Moses  gave  their  ancestors  manna  in  the 
wilderness,)  in  order  tliat  they  might  believe  on 
him,  he  addressed  them  thus:  "  Verily,  verily,  I  say 
unto  you,  Moses  gave  you  not  that  bread  from, 
heaven  :  but  my  father  giveth  you  the  true  bread 
from  heaven.  For  the  bread  of  God  is  he  that 
Cometh  down  from  heaven,  and  giveth  light  unto 
the  world." 

Then  said  they  unto  him,  "  Lord,  evermore  give 
us  this  bread."  And  Jesus  said  unto  them,  "  I 
am  the  bread  of  life.  He  that  cometh  to  me  shall 
never  hunger  j  and  he  that  believeth  in  me,  shall 
never  thirst." 

It  appears,  that  in  the  course  of  these  and  other 
words  that  were  spoken  upon  this  occasion,  the 
Jews  took  offence  at  Jesus  Christ,  because  he  said, 
he  was  the  bread  that  came  doAvn  from  heaven  j 
for  they  knew  he  was  the  son  of  Joseph,  and  they 
knew  both  his  father  and  his  mother.  Jesus  there- 
fore directed  to  them  the  following  observations  : 

"  I  am  the  bread  of  life.  Your  fathers  did  eat; 
manna  in  the  wilderness,  and  are  dead.  This  is 
the  bread  which  cometh  down  from  heaven,  that 
a  man  may  eat  thereof  and  not  die.  I  am  the  liv- 
ing bread,  which  came  down  from  heaven.  If 
any  man  eat  of  this  bread,  he  shall  live  for  ever. 


350  RELIGION. 

And  the  bread  that  I  will  give  is  my  flesh,  which 
I  will  give  for  the  life  of  the  world."  The  Jews, 
therefore,  strove  among  themselves,  saying,  How 
can  this  man  give  us  his  flesh  to  eat  ?  Then  Jesus 
said  unto  them,  "  Verily,  verily,  I  say  unto  you, 
except  ye  eat  the  flesh  of  the  Son  of  Man,  and 
drink  his  blood,  ye  have  no  life  in  you.  Whoso- 
ever eateth  my  flesh,  and  drinketh  my  blood,  hath 
eternal  life;  and  I  will  raise  him  up  at  the  last 
day.  For  my  flesh  is  meat  indeed,  and  my  blood 
is  drink  indeed.  He  that  eateth  my  flesh,  and 
drinketh  my  blood,  dwelleth  in  me,  and  I  in  him. 
As  the  living  father  hath  sent  me,  and  I  live  by  the 
father,  so  he  that  eateth  me,  even  he  shall  live  by 
me.  This  is  that  bread  that  came  down  from  hea- 
ven. Not  as  your  fathers  did  eat  manna,  and  are 
dead.  He  that  eateth  of  this  bread,  shall  live  for 
ever." 

As  the  Jews  were  still  unable  to  comprehend 
the  meaning  of  his  words,  which  they  discovered 
by  murmuring  and  pronouncing  them  to  be  hard 
sayings,  Jesus  Christ  closes  his  address  to  them  in 
the  following  words:  "  It  is  the  spirit  that  qiiick- 
eneth.  The  flesh  profiteth  nothing :  the  u  ords 
that  I  speak  unto  you,  they  are  spirit,  and  they 
are  life." 

It  appears  from  hence,  according  to  the  Quakers, 


RELIGION.  351 

that  Jesus  Christ,  in  mentioning  the  loaves,  took 
occasion  to  spiritnalize,  as  he  did  on  all  other  fit 
occasions,  and  to  direct  the  attention  of  his  follow- 
ers from  natural  to  spiritual  food,  or  from  the  food 
that  perisheth,  to  that  which  giveth  eternal  life. 

Jesus  Christ  calls  himself  upon  this  occasion 
the  living  hread.  He  says  that  this  bread  is  hi.«? 
flesh,  and  that  this  flesh  is  meat  indeed.  The  first 
conclusion  which  the  Quakers  deduce  on  this 
subject,  is,  that  this  bread,  or  this  flesh  and  Mood, 
or  this  meat,  which  he  recommends  to  his  follow- 
ers,  and  which  he  also  declares  to  be  himself,  is 
not  of  a  material  nature.  It  is  not,  as  he  himself 
says,  like  the  ordinary  meat  that  perisheth,  nor 
like  the  outward  manna,  which  the  Jews  ate  in  the 
wilderness  for  their  bodily  refreshment.  It  can- 
not therefore  be  common  bread,  nor  such  bread 
as  the  Jews  ate  at  their  passover,  nor  any  bread 
or  meat  ordered  to  be  eaten  on  any  public  occa- 
sion. 

Neither  can  this  flesh  or  this  bread  be,  as  some 
have  imagined,  the  material  flesh  or  body  of  Jesus. 
For  first,  this  latter  body  was  born  of  the  virgin 
Mary;  whereas  the  other  is  described  as  having 
come  down  from  heaven.  Secondly,  because, 
when  the  Jews  said,  "  How  can  this  man  give  us 
his  flesh.?"  Jesus   replied,  "  It  is   the  spirit  that. 


352  RELIGION. 

quickeneth.  The  flesh  profiteth  nothing ;"  that 
is,  material  flesh  and  blood,  such  as  mine  is,  can- 
not profit  any  thing  in  the  way  of  quickening  ;  or 
cannot  so  profit  as  to  give  life  eternal.  This  is 
only  the  work  of  the  spirit.  And  he  adds,  "  the 
words  I  have  spoken  to  you,  they  are  spirit,  and 
the}^  are  life." 

This  bread  then,  or  this  body,  is  of  a  spiritual 
nature.  It  is  of  a  spiritual  nature,  because  it  not 
only  giveth  life,  but  preserveth  from  death.  Man- 
na, on  the  other  hand,  supported  the  Israelites 
only  for  a  time,  and  they  died.  Common  bread 
and  flesh  nourish  the  body  for  a  time,  when  it 
dies  and  perishes;  but  it  is  said  of  those  who 
feed  upon  this  food,  that  they  shall  never  die. 
This  bread,  or  body,  must  be  spiritual  again,  be- 
cause the  bodies  of  men,  according  to  their  present 
organization,  cannot  be  kept  for  ever  alive;  but 
their  souls  may.  But  the  souls  of  men  can  receive 
no  nourishment  from  ordinary  meat  and  drink,  that 
they  should  be  kept  alive,  but  from  th^t  which  is 
spiritual  only.  It  must  be  spiritual  again,  because 
Jesus  Christ  describes  it  as  having  come  down  from 
heaven. 

The  last  conclusion  which  the  Quakers  draw 
from  the  words  of  our  Saviour  on  this  occasion,  is, 
that   ^  spiritual    participation   of  the  body  and 


RELIGION.  353 

bloofl  of  Christ  is  snch  an  essential  of  Christianity, 
tliut  CO  person  uho  does  not  partake  of  them,  can 
be  (;onsi(iereH  to  be  a  Christian;  "  for  except  a 
man  eat  the  fifsh  of  the  Son  of  Man  and  drink  hi? 
blood,  he  has  no  life  in  him." 

The  Quakers  vlierefore  believe,  that  this  address 
of  .Jesi.'s  Chri^^t  to  his  f  diowers  near  Capernaum, 
relates  wholly  to  ''he  neress'ty  of  the  souls  of  men 
being  fed  and  nourished  by  that  food,  uhich  -t  is 
alone  capable  of  receiv  ing,  namely,  tbat  which  is 
of  a  spiritual  nature,  and  which  comes  from  above. 
This  food  is  the  spirit  of  God;  or,  in  thelanguaije 
of  the  Quakers,  it  is  Christ.     It  is  that  celestial 
principle,  which  gives  life  and  light  to  as  many  as 
receive  it  and   believe  in  it.     It  is  that  spiritual 
principle,  which   w^as   in   the    beginning  of  the 
world,  and  which   afterwards  took   flesh.      And 
those  who  receive  it,  are  spiritually  nourished  by 
it,  and  may  be  said  to  sup  with  Christ ;    for  he 
himself  says,  '  "  Behold,  I  stand  at  the  door  and 
knock  :  if  any  man  hear  my  voice,  and  open  the 
door,  I  w\\\  come  in  to  him,  and  will  sup  with  him, 
and  he  with  mc." 

This  supper  which  Jesus  Christ  enjoins,  is  that 
heavenly  manna  on  w  hich  the  Patnarciis  feasted, 

i  Rev.  3.  20. 
VOL».Pr.  2  Z 


354  RELIGION. 

before  his  appearance  in  the  flesh,  and  by  which 
their  inward  man  became  nourished;  so  that  some 
of  them  were  said  to  have  walked  with  God;  for 
these,  according  to  St.  Paul,  ^  "  did  all  eat  the  same 
spiritual  meat,  and  did  all  drink  the  same  spiritual 
drink;  for  they  drank  of  that  spiritual  rock  that 
followed  them,  and  that  rock  was  Christ." 

This  supper  is  also  that  "  daih^  bread,"  since 
his  appearance  in  the  flesh;  or,  as  the  old  Latin 
translation  has  it,  it  is  that  supersubstantial  bread, 
which  Christians   are  desired  to  pray  for   in  the 
Lord's  prayer ;   that  bread,  which,  according  to 
good  commentators,  is  above  all  substance,  and 
above  all  created  things.     For  this  bread  fdls  and 
satisfies.     By  extinguishing  all  carnal  desires,  it 
leaves  neither  hunger  nor  thirst  after  worldly  things. 
It  redeems  from  the  pollutions  of  sin.     It  so  quick- 
ens as  to  raise  from   death  to  life,  ami  it  gives 
therefore  to  man  a  sort  of  new  and  divine  nature, 
so  that  he  can  dwell  in  Christ  and  Christ  in  him. 
This  supper,  which  consists  of  this  manna,  or 
bread,  or  of  this  flesh  and  blood,  may  he  enjoyed 
by  Christians  in  various  ways.     It  may  be  enjoyed 
by  them  in  pious  meditations  on  thcDivine  Being, 
in  which  the  soul  of  man  ma}'  have  communion 

j  1   Cor.   10.  0.  ■*. 


RELIGION.  355 

with  the  spirit  of  God,  so  that  every  meditation 
may  afford  it  a  salutary  supper,  or  a  celestial  feast. 
It  may  be  enjoyed  by  them  when  they  wait  upou 
God  in  silence,  or  retire  into  the  light  of  the  Lord, 
and  receive  those  divine  impressions  which  quicken 
and  spiritualize  the  internal  man.  It  may  be 
enjoyed  by  them  in  all  their  several  acts  of  obe- 
dience to  the  words  and  doctrines  of  our  Saviour. 
Thus  may  men  every  day,  nay,  every  hour,  keep  a 
communion  at  the  Lord's  table,  or  communicate, 
or  sup,  with  Christ. 


356  RELIGION. 


SECT.   III. 


The  qne<!fwn  then  ?>,  zvhefher  Jeans  Christ  instituted 
any  neiv  supper,  distinct  from  that  of  the  passover, 
(and  ivhich  loas  to  render  null  and  void  that  en- 
joined at  Capernaum  J  to  be  observed  as  a  ceremo- 
nial by  Christians — Quakers  say,  that  no  such 
institution  can  be  collected  from  the  accounts  of 
Matthew,  or  of  Mark,  or  of  John — The  silence  of 
the  latter  peculiarly  impressive  in  the  present  case. 


It  appears  then,  that  there  are  two  suppers  re- 
corded in  the  scriptures,  the  one  enjoined  by 
Moses,  and  the  other  by  Jesus  Christ. 

The  first  of  these  was  of  a  ceremonial  nature, 
and  was  confined  exchisively  to  the  Jews  :  for  to 
Gentile  converts  vvho  knew  nothing  of  Moses,  or 
whose  ancestors  were  not  concerned  in  the  de- 
liverance from  Egyptian  bondage,  it  could  have 
had  no  meaning. 

The  latter  was  of  a  spiritual  nature.  It  was  not 
limited  to  any  nation.  It  had  been  enjoyed  by 
many  of  the  Patriarchs.  Many  of  the  Gentiles 
had  enjoyed  it  also.  But  it  was  essentially  neces- 
sary for  all  Christians. 


UELIOION.  >357 

Now  the  question  is,  whether  Jesus  Christ,  when 
he  celebrated  the  passover,  instituted  any  nevf 
supper,  distinct  from  that  of  the  passover,  and 
which  was  to  render  null  and  void,  (as  it  is  the 
tendency  of  ceremonies  to  do)  that  which  he  en- 
joined at  Capernaum,  to  be  observed  as  an  ordi- 
nance by  the  Christian  world. 

The  Quakers  are  of  opinion  that  no  institution 
of  this  kmd  can  be  collected  from  Matthew,  Mark^ 
or  John.  ^  St.  Matthew  mentions  the  celebration 
of  the  passover  supper  in  the  following  manner: 
"  And  as  they  were  eating,  Jesus  took  bread  and 
blessed  it,  and  brake  it,  and  gave  to  his  disciples, 
and  said.  Take,  eat,  this  is  my  body." 

"  And  he  took  the  cup,  and  gave  thanks,  and 
gave  it  to  them,  saying.  Drink  ye  all  of  it." 

"  For  this  is  my  blood  of  the  New  Testament, 
which  is  shed  for  many  for  the  remission  of  sins." 

"  But  I  say  unto  you,  I  will  not  drink  hence- 
forth of  the  fruit  of  the  vine,  until  that  day  when 
I  drink  it  new  with  you  in  my  father's  kingdom." 

Si.  Mark  gives  an  account  so  similar  to  the 
former,  that  it  is  unnecessary  to  transcribe  it. 
Both  mention  the  administration  of  the  cup;  both 
the  breaking  and  giving  of  the  bread ;  both 
the  allusion  of  Jesus  to  his  own  body  and  blood; 

k  Mat.  2fi.  ■?». 


3^8  RELIGION. 

both  the  idea  of  his  not  drinking  wine  any  more 
but  in  a  new  kingdom ;  but  neither  of  them  men- 
tion any  command,  nor  even  any  insinuation  by 
Jesus  Christ  to  his  disciples,  that  they  shoidd  do 
as  he  did  at  the  passover  supper. 

St.  John,  who  relates  the  circumstance  of  Jesus 
Christ  washing  the  feet  of  his  disciples  on  the 
passover  night,  mentions  nothing  even  of  the 
breaking  of  bread,  or  of  the  drinking  of  the  wine 
upon  that  occasion. 

A§  far  therefore  as  the  Evangelists  Matthew, 
Mark,  and  John,  are  concerned,  it  is  obvious,  in 
the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  that  Christians  have 
not  the  least  pretence,  either  for  the  celebration 
of  the  passover,  or  of  that  which  they  usually 
call  the  Lord's  Supper  ;  for  the  command  for  such 
a  supper  is  usually  grounded  on  the  words,  "  do 
this  in  remembrance  of  me."  But  no  such  words 
occur  in  the  accounts  of  any  of  the  Evangelists 
now  cited. 

This  silence  with  respect  to  any  command  for 
any  new  institution  is  considered  by  the  Quakers 
as  a  proof,  as  far  as  these  Evangelists  are  concern- 
ed, that  none  was  ever  intended.  For  if  the  sa- 
crament of  the  supper  was  to  be  such  a  great  and 
essential  rite  as  Christians  make  it,  they  would 
have  been  deficient  in  their  duty,  if  they  had  failerl 


RELIGION.  559 

10  record  it.     St.  Matthew,  who  was  at  the  supper, 
and  St.  Mark,  who  heard  of  what  had  passed  there, 
both  agree  that  Jesus  used  the  ceremony  of  the 
bread  and  the  wine,  and  also  that  he   made  an 
allusion  from  thence  to  his  own  body  and  blood ; 
but  it  is   clear,  the  Quakers  say,   whatever  they 
might  have  heard  as  spoken  by  him,  they  did  not 
understand  him  as  enjoining  a  new  thing.     But 
the  silence  of  John,  upon  this  occasion,  the  Qua- 
kers consider  as  the  most  impressive  in  the  present 
case.     For  St.  John  was  the  disciple,  who  leaned 
upon  the  bosom  of  Jesus  at  this  festival,  and  who 
of  course  must  have  heard  all  that  he  said.     He 
was  the  disciple  again,  whom  Jesus  loved,  and  who 
would  have  been  anxious  to  have  perpetuated  all 
that  he  required  to  be  done.     He  was  the  disciple 
again,  who  so  particularly  related  the  spiritual 
supper  which  Jesus  enjoined  at  Capernaum,  and 
in  this  strong  language,  that,  "  except  a  man  eat 
his  flesh,  and  drink  his  blood,  he  has  no   life  in 
him."     Notwithstanding  this,  St.  John  does  not 
even  mention   what  took  place  on  the  passovcr 
night,  believing,  as  the  Quakers  suppose,  that  it 
was  not  necessary  to  record  the  particulars  of  a 
Jewish  ceremony,  which,  being  a  type,  was  to  end 
when  its  antitype  was  realized,  and  which  ho  con 
sidercdto  be  unnecessary  for  those  of  the  Christian 
name. 


360  RELIGION, 

SECT.  IV. 

Account  of  St.  Luke  examined — According  to  him 
Jesus  celebrated  onli/  tlie  old  Jezvish  passover — 
Signified  all  future  passuvers  zvifh  him  were  to  be 
spiritual — Hence  he  turned  the  attention  of  tliose 
present  from  the  type  to  the  antitype — He  recom- 
mended t/iem  to  take  their  meals  occasionally  toge- 
ther in  remembrance  of  their  la'^t  supper  wi^h  him  } 
or  if  as  Jews^  they  could  not  relinquisii  the  pass- 
over,  to  celebrate  it  ivith  a  new  meaning. 


St.  Luke,  who  speaks  of  the  transactions  which 
took  place  at  the  passover-supper,  is  the  only  one 
of  the  Evangelists  who  records  the  remarkable 
words,  "  do  this  in  remembrance  of  me."  St. 
Luke,  however,  was  not  himself  at  this  supper. 
Whatever  he  has  related  concerning  it,  was  from 
the  report  of  others. 

But  though  the  Quakers  are  aware  of  this  circum- 
stance, and  that  neither  Matthew,  Mai  k,  nor  John, 
give  an  account  of  such  words,  yet  they  do  not 
question  the  authorit}^  of  St.  Luke  concerning 
them.  They  admit  them,  on  the  other  hand,  to 
have  been  spoken  j  tiiey  believe  however,  on  an 


IIELIGION.  351 

examination  of  the  nliolc  of  tlie  narrative  of  St. 
Luke  upon  this  occasion,  that  no  new  institution  of 
a  religious  nature  was  intended.  Tlicy  believe  that 
Jesus  Christ  did  nothing  more  than  celebrate  the 
old  passover;  that  he  intimated  to  his  disciples, 
at  the  time  he  celebrated  it,  that  it  was  to  cease; 
that  he  advised  them,  however,  to  take  their  meals 
occasionally,  in  a  friendly  manner,  together,  in  re- 
membrance of  him;  or  if,  as  Jews,  they  could  not 
all  at  once  relinquish  the  passover,  he  permitted 
them  to  celebrate  it  with  a  new  meaning. 

In  the  first  place  St.  Luke,  and  he  is  joined  by 
all  the  other  Evangelists,  calls  the  feast  now  spok- 
en of  the  passover.  Jesus  Christ  also  gives  it  the 
same  name;  for  he  says,  "  with  desire  I  have  de- 
sired to  eat  this  passover  with  you  before  I  suffer." 

Jesus  Christ,  according  to  St.  Luke,  took  bread 
and  broke  it,  and  divided  it  among  his  disciples. 
He  also  took  the  cup,  and  gave  thanks,  and  gave 
it  among  them.  But  this,  the  Quakers  say,  is  no 
more  than  what  the  master  of  every  Jewish  family 
did  on  the  passover  night:  nor  is  it  any  more,  as 
will  have  already  appeared,  than  what  the  Jews 
of  London,  or  of  Paris,  or  of  Amsterdam,  or  of 
any  other  place,  where  bread  and  wine  are  to  be 
had,  do  on  the  same  feast  at  the  present  day. 

But  though  Jesus  Christ  conducted  himself  se 

VOL.   II.  3   A 


362  RELTGIOISf'. 

far  as  other  masters  of  families  did,  yet  he  departed 
from  the  formula  of  words  that  was  generally  used 
upon  these  occasions.  For  in  the  first  place,  he 
is  described  to  have  said  to  his  disciples,  that  "he 
would  no  more  eat  of  the  passover,  until  it  should 
be  fulfilled  in  the  kingdom  of  God ;"  and  a  little 
farther  on,  that  "  he  would  not  drink  of  the  fruit  of 
the  vine,  till  the  kingdom  of  God  should  come;  or, 
as  St.  Matthew  has  it,  till  he  should  drink  it  new 
with  them  in  his  father's  kingdom." 

By  these  words  the  Quakers  understand,  that  it 
was  the  intention  of  Jesus  Christ  to  turn  the  atten- 
tion of  his  disciples  from  the  type  to  the  antitype, 
or  from  the  paschal  lamb  to  the  lamb  of  God, 
which  was  soon  to  be  offered  for  them.  He  de- 
clared,  that  all  his  passover  suppers  with  them 
were  in  future  to  be  spiritual.  Such  spiritual 
passovers,  the  Quakers  say,  he  afterwards  ate  with 
them  on  the  day  of  pentecost,  when  the  spirit  of 
God  came  upon  themj  when  their  minds  were 
opened,  and  when  they  discovered,  for  the  first 
time,  the  nature  of  his  kingdom.  And  these  spi- 
ritual passovers  he  has  since  eaten,  and  continues 
to  eat  with  all  those  whose  minds,  detached  from 
worldly  pursuits  and  connexions,  are  so  purified 
and  spiritualized,  as  to  be  able  to  hold  commu- 
nion with  God. 


RELIGION.  363 

It  is  reported  of  him  next,  that  "he  took  bread, 
and  gave  thanks,  and  brake  it,  and  gave  to  his 
disciples,  saying,  This  is  my  body  wliicii  is  given 
for  you." 

On  these  words  tlie  Quakers  make  the  following 
observations  : — The  word  '"  this"  does  not  belong- 
to  the  word  "  bread,"  that  is,  it  does  not  mean 
that  this  bread  is  my  body.  For  the  word  "  bread" 
in  the  original  Greek  is  of  the  masculine,  and  the 
word  "this"  is  of  the  neuter  gender.  But.it  al- 
ludes to  the  action  of  the  breaking  of  the  bread, 
from  which  the  following  new  meaning  will  result. 
"  This  breaking  of  the  bread,  which  you  now  see 
me  perform,  is  a  sj'mbol  or  representation  of  the 
giving,  or  as  St.  Paul  has  it,  of  the  breaking  of  my 
body  for  you." 

In  the  same  manner,  the  Quakers  sav,  that  the 
giving  of  the  wine  in  the  cup  is  to  be  understood 
as  a  symbol  or  representation  of  the  giving  of  his 
blood  for  them. 

The  Quakers  therefore  are  of  opinion,  when  they 
consider  the  meaning  of  the  sayings  of  Jesus  Christ 
both  with  respect  to  the  bread  and  to  the  wine, 
that  he  endeavoured  again  to  turn  the  attention 
of  his  disciples  from  the  type  to  the  antitype; 
from  the  bread  and  wine  to  his  own  body  and 
blood;  from  the  paschal  lamb  tliat  had  been  slain 


364  RELIGION. 

and  eaten,  to  the  Iamb  that  was  going  to  be  sa- 
crificed; and  as  the  blood  of  the  latter  was,  accord- 
ing fo  St.  Matthew,  for  the  remission  of  sins,  to 
turn  their  attention  from  the  ancient  object  of  the 
celebration  of  the  passover,  or  salvation  from 
Egyptian  bondage,  to  a  new  object,  or  the  salva- 
tion of  themselves  and  others  by  this  new  sacrifice 
of  himself. 

It  is  reported  of  him  again  by  St.  Luke,  after 
he  had  distributed  the  bread  and  said,  ^'  this  is  my 
body  which  is  given  for  you,"  that  he  added, 
"  this  do  in  remembrance  of  me." 

These  words  the  Quakers  believe  to  have  no 
reference  to  any  new  institution;  but  they  contain 
a  recommendation  to  his  disciples  to  meet  in  a 
friendly  manner,  and  break  their  bread  together,  in 
remembrance  of  their  last  supper  with  him,  or  if, 
as  Jews,  thev  could  not  all  at  once  leave  off  the 
custom  of  the  passo\  er,  in  which  they  had  been 
born  and  educated  as  a  religious  ceremony,  to 
celebrate  it,  as  he  had  then  modified  and  spiritu- 
alized it,  with  a  new  meaning. 

If  they  relate  to  the  breaking  of  their  bread  to- 
gether, then  they  do  not  relate  to  any  passover 
or  sacramental  eating,  but  only  to  that. of  their 
common  meals;  for  all  the  passovers  of  Jesus 
Christ  with  his  disciples  were  in  future  to  be  spi- 


RELIGION.  '!<^  ' 

ritual.  And  in  this  sense  the  primitive  Cliristian;> 
seem  to  have  understood  the  words  in  (}ucstion. 
For  in  their  religious  zeal  they  sold  all  their  goods, 
and,  by  means  of  the  produce  of  their  joint  stock, 
they  kept  a  common  table,  and  lived  together. 
Butin  process  of  time,  as  this  custom  from  vari- 
ous causes  declined,  they  met  at  each  other's 
houses,  or  at  their  appointed  places,  to  break 
their  bread  together,  in  memorial  of  the  passover- 
supper.  This  custom,  it  is  remarkable,  was  de- 
hominated  the  custom  of  breaking  of  bread.  Nor 
could  it  have  had  any  other  name  so  proper,  if  the 
narration  of  St.  Luke  be  true.  For  the  words  "do 
this  in  remembrance  of  me,"  relate  solely,  as  he 
has  placed  them,  to  the  breaking  of  the  bread. 
vThey  were  used  after  the  distribution  of  the  bread, 
but  were  not  repeated  after  the  giving  of  the  cup. 
If  they  relate,  on  the  other  liand,  to  the  cele- 
bration of  tiie  passover,  as  it  had  been  modified 
and  spiritualized  with  a  new  meaning,  then  the 
interpretation  of  them  will  stand  thus  :  "  As  some 
of  yon,  my  disciples,  for  ye  are  all  Jeus,  may  not 
be  able  to  get  over  all  your  prejudices  at  once, 
but  may  celebrate  the  passover  again,  and  as  it 
is  the  last  time  that  I  shall  celebrate  it  witii  you, 
as  a  ceremonial,  I  desire  you  to  do  it  in  remem- 
brance, or  as  a  memorial  of  me.     I  wish  the  cele- 


366  RELIGION. 

bration  of  it  always  to  bring  to  your  recollection 
this  our  last  public  meeting,  the  love  I  bear  to 
you,  and  my  sufferings  and  my  death.  I  wish 
your  minds  to  be  turned  from  carnal  to  spiritual 
benefits,  and  to  be  raised  to  more  important 
themes  than  the  mere  escape  of  your  ancesto  rs 
from  Egyptian  bondage.  If  it  has  been,  hitherto 
the  object  of  the  passover  to  preserve  in  your 
memories  the  bodily  salvation  of  your  ancestors, 
let  it  be  used  in  future,  if  you  canaot  forsake  it, 
as  a  memorial  of  your  own  spiritual  salvation  ; 
for  my  body,  of  which  the  bread  is  a  representa- 
tion, is  to  be  broken,  and  my  blood,  of  which  the 
wine  is  an  emblem,  is  to  be  shed  for  the  remission 
of  your  sins." 

But  in  whatever  sense  the  words  "  do  this  in- 
remembrance  of  me  "  are  to  be  taken,  the  Quakers 
are  of  opinion,  as  far  as  St.  Luke  states  the  cir- 
cumstances, that  they  related  solely  to  the  disci- 
ples themselves.  Jesus  Christ  recommends  it  to 
those  who  were  present,  and  to  those  only,  to  do 
this  in  remembrance  of  him.  But  he  no  where 
tells  them  to  order  cr  cause  it  to  be  done  by  the 
whole  Christian  world,  as  he  told  them  to  "  preach 
the  Gospel  to  every  creature." 

To  sum  up  the  whole  of  what  has  been  said  in 
this  chapter: — If  we  consult  St.   Luke,  and  St. 


RELIGION.  367 

Luke  only,  all  that  we  can  collect  on  tliis  subject 
will  be,  that  the  future  passover-suppers  of  Christ 
with  his  disciples  were  to  be  spiritual ;  that  his 
disciples  were  desired  to  break  their  bread  toge- 
ther in  remembrance  of  him  j  or  if,  as  Jews,  they 
could  not  relinquish  the  passover,  to  celebrate 
it  with  a  new  meaning;  but  that  this  permission 
extended  to  those  only  who  were  present  on  that 
occasion. 


3dS  religion. 


SECT.  V. 


Account  of  St.  Paul — He  states  that  the  words  "  do 
this  in  remembrance  ofme^^  zvere  used  at  the  pass- 
over-supper —  That  they  contained  a  permission/or 
a  custom,  hi  which  J)oth  the  bread  and  the  wine 
ivere  iiicluded — That  this  custom  was  the passover, 
spiritualized  by  Jesus  Christ — But  that  it  was  to 
last  but  for  a  time — Some  conjecture  this  time  to 
be  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem — But  the  2uake?^Sy 
till  the  disciples  had  aitained  such  a  spiritual 
growth,  that  they  felt  Christ's  kingdom  substantial- 
ly in  their  hearts— And  as  it  was  thus  limited  to 
tiiem,  so  it  was  limited  to  such  Jewish  converts  as 
might  have  adopted  it  in  their  times. 


\  HE  last  of  the  sacred  writers,  who  mentions  the 
celebration  of  the  passover-supper,  is  St.  Paul, 
whose  account  is  now  to  be  examined. 

St.  Paul,  in  his  first  epistle  to  the  Corinthians, 
reproves  ^  the  latter  for  some  irregularities  com- 
mitted by  them  in  the  course  of  their  religious 
meetings.     What  these  meetings  were  is  uncer- 

• 

1  Chap.  11. 


RELIGION.  369 

tain..  Tlicy  iiiiglit  have  been  for  the  celebration 
of  the  passovcr-siipper,  lor  there  was  a  synagogue 
of  Jews  at  Corinth,  of  whom  .some  had  been  con- 
verted. Or  they  might  have  been  for  tlio  celebra- 
tion of  the  passover  as  spiritualized  by  J(?sus  Christ, 
or  for  the  breakingof  bread, which  eustomsboth  the 
Jewish  and  Gentile  converts  might  have  adopted. 
The  custom,  however,  at  which  these  irregularities 
took  place,  is  called  by  St.  Paul,  the  Lord's  Supper. 
And  this  title  was  not  inapplicable  to  it  in  either 
of  the  cases  supposed,  because  it  must  have  been, 
in  either  of  them,  in  commemoration  of  the  last 
supper,  which  Jesiis  Christ,  or  the  Lord  and  Mas- 
ter, ate  with  his  disciples  before  lie  sulfered. 

But  whichever  ceremonial  it  was  that  St.  Paul 
alluded  to,  the  circumstances  of  the  irregularities 
of  the  Corinthians,  obliged  him  to  advert  to  and 
explain  what  was  .said  and  done  by  Jesus  on  the 
night  of  the  passo\er-snppcr.  This  ex|)lanalion 
of  the  Apo.stle  has  thrown  new  light  upon  the  sub- 
ject, and  has  induced  the  Quakers  to  believe,  that 
no  new  institution  was  intended  to  take  place  as  a 
ceremonial  to  be  observed  by  the  Christian  world. 

St.  Paul,  in  his  account  of  what  occiuTcd  at  the 

original  passover,  reports  that  Jesus  Clnist  made 

use  of  the  words  "  this  do  in  remembrance  of  me." 

By  this  the  Quakers  understand  (hat  he  permitted 

VOL.  II.  .3  B 


370  RELIGION. 

something  to  be  done  by  those  who  were  present 
at  this  supper. 

He  reports  also,  that  Jesus  Christ  used  these 
wordsj  not  only  after  the  breaking  of  the  bread, 
but  after  the  giving  of  the  cup  :  from  whence  they 
conclude,  that  St.  Paul  Considered  both  the  bread 
and  the  wine,  as  belonging  to  that  which  had  been 
permitted. 

St.  Paul  also  says,  "  for  as  often  as  ye  eat  this 
bread  and  drink  this  cup,  ye  do  show  the  Lord's 
death  till  he  come."  By  these  words  they  believe 
they  discover  two  things  ^  first,  the  nature  of  the 
thing  permitted;  and, secondly,  that  the  thing  per- 
mitted, whatever  it  was,  was  to  last  but  for  a  time. 

The  thing  then,  which  was  permitted  to  those 
who  were  present  at  the  passover-supper,  was  to 
show  or  declare  his  death.  The  Vvords  "  show  or 
declare,"  prove,  in  the  first  place,  the  connexion  of 
the  thing  permitted  with  the  Jewish  passover. 
For  after  certain  ceremonies  had  been  performed 
on  the  passover  night,  "  the  showing  forth  or  decla- 
ration," as  it  was  called,  followed ;  or  the  object 
of  the  meeting  was  declared  aloud  to  the  persons 
present,  or  it  was  declared  to  them  publicly  in 
what  particulars  the  passover  feast  dillVred  from 
all  the  other  feasts  of  the  Jews.  Secondlj^  the 
word  "  death  "  proves  the  thing  permitted  to  have 


RELIGION.  37  i 

been    the    passover,    as    spiritualized    by    Jesus 
Christ ;  for  by  the  new  moditieation  of  it,  his  dis- 
ciples, if  they  were  unable  to  overcome  their  pre- 
judices, were  to  turn  their  attention  from  the  type 
to  the  antitype,  or  from  the  sacrifice  of  the  pas- 
chal  lamb  to  the  sacrifice  of  himself,  or  to  his 
own  sufferings  and  death.      In  short,  Jesus  Christ 
always    attempted   to    reform    by   spiritualizing. 
^\'hen  the  Jews  followed  him  for  the  loaves,  and 
mentioned  manna,  he  tried  to  turn  their  attention 
from  material  to  spiritual  bread.     When  he  sat 
upon  Jacob's  well,  and  discoursed  with  the  wo- 
man of  Samaria,  he  directed  her  attention  from  or- 
dinary or  elementary  to  spiritual  and  living  wa- 
ter.    So  he  did  upon  this  occasion.     He  gave  life 
to  the  dead  letter  of  an  old  ceremony  by   a  new 
meaning.     His  disciples  were  from  henceforth  to 
turn  their  attention,  if  they  chose  to  celebrate  the 
passover,  from  the  paschal  lamb  to  himself,  and 
from  the  deliverance  of  their  ancestors   out  of 
Egyptian  bondage  to  the  deliverance  of  them- 
selves and  others,  by  the  giving  up  of  his  own  bo- 
dy and  the  shedding  of  his  own  blood  for  the  re- 
mission of  sins. 

And  as  the  thing  permitted  was  the  passover, 
spiritualized  in  this  manner,  so  it  was  only  per- 
mitted for  a  time,  or  "  until  he  come." 


37^i  RELIGION. 

By  the  words  "  until  he  come,"  it  ihi  usually  un- 
derstood, until  Christ  come.  But  though  Chris- 
tians have  agreed  upon  this,  they  have  disagreed 
a-s  to  the  length  of  time  which  the  words  may 
mean.  Some  have  understood  that  Jesus  Christ 
intended  this  spiritualized  passover  to  continue 
for  ever  as  an  ordinance  of  his  church,  for  that 
"  till  he  come"  must  refer  to  his  coming  to  judge 
the  world.  But  it  has  been  replied  to  these,  that 
in  this  case  no  limitation  had  been  necessary,  or  it 
would  have  been  said  at  once,  that  it  was  to  be  a 
perpetual  ordinance,  or  expressed  in  plainer  terms, 
than  in  the  words  in  question. 

Others  have  understood  the  words  to  mean  the 
end  of  the  typical  world,  which  happened  on  the 
destruction  of  Jerusalem,  when  the  Jews  were  dis- 
persed, and  their  church,  as  a  national  one,  done 
away.  For  the  coming  of  Christ  and  the  end  of 
the  world  have  been  considered  as  taking  place  at 
the  same  .time.  Thus  the  early  Christians  believ- 
ed, that  Jesus  Christ,  even  after  his  death  and  re- 
surrection, would  come  again,  even  in  their  own 
life  tune,  and  tliat  the  end  of  the  world  would  then 
be.  These  events  they  coupled  in  their  minds; 
'^  for  '"  they  asked  him  privately,  saying,  Tell  us 

lu  Matt.  '2i, 


RELIGION.  373 

when  these  thins^s  shall  he,  and  what  shall  bo  the 
sign  of  thy  coming  and  of  the  end  of  the  world  -" 
Jesus  toh!  thetn  in  reply,  that  the  end'of  the  world 
and  his  coming  would  he,  when  there  were  wars, 
and  rumours  of  wars,  and  earthquakes,  and  famine, 
and  pestilence,  and  tribulations  on  the  earth  ;  and 
that  these  calamities  would  happen  even  before 
the    generation,    then   alive,  would    pass    away. 
Now  all  these  things  actually  happened  in  the 
same  generation;  for  they   happened  at  the  de- 
struction   of  Jerusalem.     Jesus   Christ   therefore 
meant  by  the  end  of  the  world,  the  end  of  the  Jew- 
ish world,  or  of  the  world  of  types,  figures,  and 
ordinances:  and    he   coupled    naturally  his  own 
coining  with  this  event,  because  he  could  not  come 
fully  into  the  hearts  of  any,  till  these  externals 
w^ere  done  away.     He  alluded,  in  short,  to  the  end 
of  the  Jewish  dispensation  and  the  beginning  of 
his  own  spiritual  kingdom,  or  to  the  end  of  the 
ceremonial  and  the  beginning  of  the  Gospel  world. 
Those  therefore  who  interpret  the  words  "  till  he 
come"  to  mean  the  end  of  the  typical  world,  are 
of  opinion  that  the  passover,  as  spiritualized  by 
Jesus  Christ,  was  allowed  to  the  disciples,  while 
they  lived   among   a  people,   so  wedded  to  reli- 
gious ceremonies  as  the  Jews,  with  whom  it  would 
have  been  a  stumbling  block  in  the  way  of  iheir 


.374  RELIGION. 

conversion,  if  they  had  seen  the  Apostles,  who 
were  their  countrymen,  rejecting  it  all  at  once  j 
but  that  it  was  permitted  them,  till  the  destruc- 
tion of  Jerusalem,  after  which  event  the  Jews  be- 
ing annihilated  as  a  nation,  and  being  dispersed 
and  mixed  among  the  infinitely  greater  body  of 
the  Gentiles,  the  custom  was  to  be  laid  aside,  as 
the  disuse  of  it  could  not  be  then  prejudicial  to 
the  propagation  of  the  Gospel  among  the  commu- 
nity at  large. 

The  Quakers,  however,   understand  the  words 
"  till  he  come,"  to  mean  simply  the  coming  of 
Christ   substantially   in   the    heart.     Giving   the 
words  this  meaning,  they  limit  the  duration  of  the 
spiritualized  passover,  but  do  not  specify  the  time. 
It  might  have  ceased  with  some  of  them,  they  say, 
on  the  day  of  pentecost,  when  they  began  to  dis- 
cover the  nature  of  Christ's  kingdom;  and  they 
think  it  probable,  that  it  ceased  with  all  of  them, 
when  they  found  this  kingdom  realized  in  their 
hearts.     For  it  is  remarkable  that  those,  who  be- 
came Gospel  writers,  and  it  is  to  be  presumed 
that  they  had  attained  great  spiritual  growth  when 
they  wrote  their  respective  works,  give  no  instruc* 
tions  to  others,  whether  Jews  or  Gentiles,  to  ob- 
serve the  ceremonial  permitted  to  the  disciples  by 
Jesus,  as  any  ordinance  of  the  Christian  church. 


RELIGION.  37.5 

And  in  the  same  manner  as  tlie  Quakers  conceive 
the  duration  of  the  spiritualized  passover  to  have 
been  limited  to  the  disciples,  they  conceive  it  t(» 
have  been  limited  to  all  other  Jewish  converts, 
whomight  haveadopted  it  in  those  times,  that  is,  till 
ihey  should  find  by  tlic  subslantiaJ  enjoyment  of 
Christ  in  their  hearts,  that  ceremonial  ordinances 
belonged  to  the  old,  but  that  they  were  not  con- 
stituent parts  of  the  nv^v  kinj^dom. 


376  RELIGION. 

SECT.  VI. 

Quakers  believe^  from  the  preceding  evidence,  that 
Jesus  Christ  intended  no  ceremonial  for  the  Chris- 
tian cliurch — for  if  the  custom  enjoined  zvas  the 
passover  spiritualized,  it  was  ynore  suitable  for 
Jezvs  than  Gentiles — If  intended  as  a  ceremonial, 
it  zvould  have  been  commanded  by  Jesus  to  others 
besides  his  disciples,  and  by  these  to  the  Christian 
zcorld — and  its  duration  would  not  have  been  li- 
mited— Quakers  believe  St.  Paul  thought  it  no 
Christian  ordinance — three  reasons  taken  from  his 
own  writings  on  this  subject. 


J.  HE  Quakers  then,  on  an  examination  of  the 
preceding  evidence,  are  of  opinion  that  Jesus 
Christ,  at  the  passover-supper,  never  intended  to 
institute  any  new  supper,  distinct  from  that  of  the 
passover,  or  from  that  enjoined  at  Capernaum,  to 
be  observed  as  a  ceremonial  by  Christians. 

For,  in  the  first  phice,  St.  Matthew,  who  was  at 
the  supper,  makes  no  mention  of  the  words  "  do 
this  in  remembrance  of  me." 

Neither  are  these  words,  nor  any  of  a  similar 
import,  recorded  by  St.  Mark.  It  is  true  indeed 
that  St.  Mark  was  not  at  this  su])per.     But  it  is 


RELIGTOX.  377 

• 

clear  he  never  understood  from  those  who  were, 
either  that  they  were  spoken,  or  that  they  bore 
this  meaning,  or  he  wonhl  have  inserted  them  in 
his  Gospel. 

Nor  is  any  mention  made  of  such  words  ]>y 
St.  John.  This  was  the  beloved  disciple  who 
was  more  intimate  with  Jesiis,  and  who  knew  more 
of  the  mind  of  his  master,  than  any  of  the  others. 
This  was  he  who  leaned  upon  his  bosom  at  the 
passover-supper,  and  who  must  have  been  so  near 
him  as  to  have  heard  all  that  passed  there.  And 
yet  this  disciple  did  not  think  it  worth  his  while, 
except  manuscripts  have  been  mutilated,  to  men- 
tion even  the  bread  and  wine  that  were  used  upon 
this  occasion. 

Neither  does  St.  Luke,  who  mentions  the  words 
"do  this  in  remembrance  of  me,"  establish  any 
thing,  in  the  opinion  of  the  Quakers,  material  on 
this  point.  For  it  appears  from  him  that  Jesus, 
to  make  the  most  of  his  words,  only  spiritualized 
the  old  passover  for  his  disciples,  all  of  whom  were 
Jews,  but  that  he  gave  no  command  with  respect 
to  the  observance  of  it  by  others.  Neither  does 
St.  Luke  himself  enjoin  or  call  upon  others  to  ob- 
serve it. 

St.  Paul  speaks  nearly  the  same  language  as  St. 
Luke,  but  with  this  difference,  that  the  supper,  a.« 

VOL.    II.  3   C 


37S  RELIGION. 

thus  spiritualized  by  Jesus,  was  to  last  but  for  a 
time. 

Now  the  Quakers  are  of  opinion,  that  they  have 
not  sufficient  ground  to  believe  from  these  au- 
thorities, that  Jesus  intended  to  establisli  any  ce- 
remonial as  an  universal  ordinance  for  the  Chris- 
tian church.  For  if  the  custom  enjoined  was  the 
spiritualized  passover,  it  was  better  calculated  for 
Jews  than  for  Gentiles,  who  were  neither  interest- 
ed in  the  motives  nor  acquainted  with  the  cus- 
toms of  that  feast.  But  it  is  of  little  importance, 
they  contend,  whether  it  was  the  spiritualized 
passover  or  not;  for  if  Jesus  Christ  had  intended 
it,  whatever  it  was,  as  an  essential  of  his  new  reli- 
gion, he  would  have  commanded  his  disciples  to 
enjoin  it  as  a  Christian  duty,  and  the  disciples 
themselves  would  have  handed  it  down  to  their  se- 
veral converts  in  the  same  light.  But  no  injunc- 
tion to  this  effect,  either  of  Jesus  to  others,  or  of 
themselves  to  others,  is  to  be  found  in  any  of 
their  writings.  Add  to  this,  that  the  limitation  of 
its  duration  for  a  time,  seems  a  sufficient  argu- 
ment against  it  as  a  Christian  ordinance,  because 
whatever  is  once,  must  be  for^ever,  an  essential  in 
the  Christian  church. 

The  Quakers  believe,  as  a  farther  argument  in 
•their  jfavour,  that  there  is  reason  to  presume  that 


RELIGION.  379 

St.  Paul  never  looked  upon  the  spiritualized  pass- 
over  as  any  permanent  and  essential  rite,  w  Inch 
Chrujcians  were  enjoined  to  follow.  For  nothing 
can  be  more  clear  than  that,  when  speaking  of  the 
guih  and  hazard  of  judging  one  another  bv  meats 
and  drinks,  he  states  it  as  a  general  and  funda- 
mental doctrine  of  Christianit}',  that "  "  the  king- 
dom of  God  is  not  meat  and  drink,  but  righteous- 
ness, peace,  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost." 

It  seems  also  by  the  mode  of  reasoning  which 
the  Apostle  adopts  in  his  epistle  to  the  Corinthians 
on  this  subject,  that*  he  had  no  other  idea  of  the 
observance  of  this  rite,  than  he  had  of  the  observ- 
ance of  particular  days,  namely, that  if  men  thought 
they  were  bound  in  conscience  to  keep  them,  tbcy 
ought  to  keep  them  religiously.  *'  He  that  re- 
gardeth  a  day,  says- the  Apostle,  regardeth  it  to 
the  Lord."  That  is,  "  as  he  that  esteemed  a  day, 
says  Barclay,  and  placed  consqience  in  keeping 
it,  was  to  regard  it  to  the  Lord,  (and  so  it  was  to 
him,  in  so  far  as  he  regarded  it  to  the  Lord,  the 
Lord's  day,)  he  was  to  do  it  worthily  :  and  if  he 
were  to  do  it  unworthily,  he  would  be  gui-lty  of 
the  Lord's  day,  and  so  keep  it  to  his  own  condem- 
nation." Just  in  the  same  manner  St.  Paul  tells 
the  Corinthian  Jews,  that  if  they  observed  the  ce- 

n  Romans  14.  17 


380  RELIGION. 

remonial  of  the  passover,  or  ratliaer,  "  as  often  as 
they  observed  it,"  they  were  to  obserye  it  worthi- 
ly, and  make  it  a  religions  act.  They  were  not 
then  come  together  to  make  merry  on  the  anni- 
versary of  the  deliverance  of  their  ancestors  from 
Egyptian  bondage,  but  to  meet  in  memorial  of 
Christ's  sufferings  and  death.  And  therefore,  if 
they  ate  and  drank  the  passover,  under  its  new 
and  high  allusions,  unworthily,  they  profaned  the 
ceremony,  and  were  guilty  of  the  body  and  blood 
of  Christ. 

It  appears  also  from  the  Syriac,  and  other  ori- 
ental versions  of  the  New  Testament,  such  as  the 
Arabic  and  Ethiopic,  as  if  he  only  permitted  th& 
celebration  of  the  spiritualized  passover  for  a  time 
in  condescension  to  the  weakness  of  some  of  his 
converts,  who  were  probably  from  the  Jewish  sy- 
nagogue at  Corinth.  For  in  the  seventeenth  verse 
of  the  eleventh  chapter  of  his  ftrst  epistle  to  the 
Corinthians,  the  Syriac  runs  thus:  °  "  As  to  that, 
concerning  which  I  am  now  instructing  you,  I 
commend  you  not,  because  you  have  not  gone 
forward,  but  you  have  gone  down  into  matters  of 

o  The  Syriac  is  a  very  ancient  version,  and  as  respectable  or  v)fas  high 
authority  as  any.  LeuMlen  and  Schaaf- transhite  the  Sj'riac  thus  :  "  Hoc 
autem,  quod  pra?cii)i(>j  non  tanquam  laudo  vos,  quia  non  progress!  estis, 
sed  ad  id,  quod  minus  c..t,  dosccudistis."  Compare  this  with  tlie  I'lngliBh 
<  (Vif.itfiK 


RELIGION.  381 

less  importance."  •' It  appears  from  hence,  says 
Barclay,  that  the  Apostle  was  grieved,  that  such 
was  their  condition  that  he  was  forced  to  give 
them  instruction  concerning  these  outward  things, 
and  doting  upon  which  they  showed  that  they 
were  not  gone  forward  in  the  life  of  Christianity, 
but  rather  sticking  in  the  beggarly  elements ;  and 
therefore  the  twentieth  verse  of  the  same  version 
has  it  thus :  ^  *  When  then  ye  meet  together,  ye 
do  not  do  it  as  it  is  just  ye  should  in  the  day  of 
the  Lord  ;  ye  eat  and  drink.'  Therefore  showing  to 
them,  that  to  meet  together  to  eat  and  drink  out- 
ward bread  and  wine,  was  not  the  labour  and  work 
of  that  day  of  the  Lord." 

Upon  the  whole,  in  whatever  light  the  Quakers 
view  the  subject  before  us,  they  cannot  persuadt 
themselves  that  Jesus  Christ  intended  to  establish 
any  new  ceremonial^  distinct  from  tlie  passover- 
supper,  or  which  should  render  null  and  void,  (as 
it  would  be  the  tendency  of  all  ceremonials  to  do) 
the  supper  which  he  had  before  commanded  at 
Capernaum.  The  only  supper  which  he  ever 
enjoined  to  Christians,  was  the  hitter.  This  spi- 
ritual supper  was  to  be  eternal  and  niii\  crsa!.  For 
he  was  always  to  be  present  with  those  "  u  ho  would 

p  Qiuun  igitur  congicgamini,   non  sicut  juslum  tit  die  ilomiui  iiostii, 
oomeditis  ct  bibite?. 

Lc'UsdcQ  ct  Scliaaf  liuduiii  bat.ivorum. 


382  RELIGION. 

let  him  in,  and  they  were  to  sup  with  him,  and  he 
with  them."  It  was  also  to  be  obligatory,  or  an 
essential,  with  all  Christians.  "  For  except  a  man 
were  to  eat  his  flesh,  and  to  drink  his  blood,  he 
was  to  have  no  life  in  him."  The  supper,  on  the 
other  hand,  which  our  Saviour  is  supposed  to  have 
instituted  on  the  celebration  of  the  passover,  was 
not  enjoined  by  him  to  any  but  the  disciples  pre- 
sent. And  it  was,  according  to  the  confession  of 
St.  Paul,  to  last  only  for  a  time.  This  time  is 
universally  agreed  upon  to  be  that  of  the  coming 
of  Christ.  That  is,  the  duration  of  the  spiritual- 
ized passover  was  to  be  only  till  those  to  whom 
it  had  been  recommended,  had  arrived  at  a  state 
of  religious  manhood,  or  till  they  could  enjoy  the 
supper  which  Jesus  Christ  had  commanded  at 
Capernaum ;  after  which  repast,  the  Quakers  be- 
lieve they  would  consider  all  others  as  empty,  and 
as  not  having  the  proper  life  and  nourishment  in 
them,  and  as  of  a  kind  not  to  harmonize  with  the 
spiritual  nature  of  the  Christian  religion. 


END   OF  THE  SECOND  VOLUME. 


'♦--